122 60
English Pages 309 [302] Year 2023
The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926 Ismail Agha Simko and the Campaign for an Independent Kurdish State Mehrdad Kia
The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926
Mehrdad Kia
The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926 Ismail Agha Simko and the Campaign for an Independent Kurdish State
Mehrdad Kia Department of History University of Montana Missoula, MT, USA
ISBN 978-3-031-44972-7 ISBN 978-3-031-44973-4 (eBook) https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4 © The Editor(s) (if applicable) and The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 This work is subject to copyright. All rights are solely and exclusively licensed by the Publisher, whether the whole or part of the material is concerned, specifically the rights of translation, reprinting, reuse of illustrations, recitation, broadcasting, reproduction on microfilms or in any other physical way, and transmission or information storage and retrieval, electronic adaptation, computer software, or by similar or dissimilar methodology now known or hereafter developed. The use of general descriptive names, registered names, trademarks, service marks, etc. in this publication does not imply, even in the absence of a specific statement, that such names are exempt from the relevant protective laws and regulations and therefore free for general use. The publisher, the authors, and the editors are safe to assume that the advice and information in this book are believed to be true and accurate at the date of publication. Neither the publisher nor the authors or the editors give a warranty, expressed or implied, with respect to the material contained herein or for any errors or omissions that may have been made. The publisher remains neutral with regard to jurisdictional claims in published maps and institutional affiliations. This Palgrave Macmillan imprint is published by the registered company Springer Nature Switzerland AG The registered company address is: Gewerbestrasse 11, 6330 Cham, Switzerland Paper in this product is recyclable.
Preface
The present manuscript is an attempt to study the historical causes of the emergence of the first Kurdish proto-nationalist movement in twentiethcentury Iran. This movement was led by Ismail Agha Simko, one of the chiefs of the Shakak tribe in northwestern Iran. The rise of nationalism among Armenian and Assyrian communities, the backlash from the Kurdish tribes of the region against the possibility of the creation of an Armenian or an Assyrian state, the eruption of the First World War, and the militarization of the region by Czarist Russia and the Ottoman Empire before and during the Great War contributed significantly to the outbreak of a major conflict between the Kurdish tribes of the region and Iran’s central government. The hostilities intensified after the Iranian government tried to centralize political power by creating a modern standing army in 1921. The revolt staged and led by Simko Agha commenced shortly after the end of the First World War in 1918 and continued until August 1922. Though he was defeated, the Iranian government agreed to allow Simko to return to Iran in 1925. The Kurdish chief, however, staged a second revolt in 1926. Unlike the first revolt, which had persisted for almost four years, Simko’s second revolt was quickly put down by a rival chief of the Shakak Kurds. Through an in-depth analysis of Simko’s life and political career, this study attempts to identify the underlying causes for the rise of Kurdish proto-nationalism during and after the conclusion of the First World War and how the Iranian government responded to the challenge posed by this movement. The suppression of separatist v
vi
PREFACE
rebellions in the borderlands of the country, including Simko’s revolt, allowed the Iranian state to consolidate its power and initiate an ambitious program of reforms, which intended to transform Iran from an aggregate of autonomous political enclaves to a unified nation-state. Missoula, USA
Mehrdad Kia
Acknowledgments
For my research and in writing this book, I am indebted to many friends and colleagues. I am deeply grateful to my colleagues at the University of Montana (UM), especially Professor Ardi Kia, the co-director of the Central & Southwest Asian Studies Center and Professor Michael Mayer of Department of History, for reading this manuscript and offering mountains of incisive suggestions. I greatly appreciate our many conversations and discussions while I wrote this manuscript. My special gratitude goes to the reviewers who patiently read this manuscript and suggested numerous perceptive and insightful revisions. For generosity of time and spirit, I owe a special debt of gratitude to Joyce Brusin, Sarah McClain, and Ann Marie Carbin, who provided me with much valuable editorial and technical assistance. I am also grateful to Christine Vance, Pam Marek, and Erik Larson at the Maureen and Mike Mansfield Library at the University of Montana who worked diligently to provide me with much of the material necessary to complete this manuscript. I, however, remain solely responsible for the views, as well as the many inaccuracies, deficiencies, and inadequacies this manuscript certainly contains. This work would not have been possible without the steadfast support of Lucy Kidwell, my outstanding editor at Palgrave Macmillan and her exceptional team. Without her patience, encouragement, and unlimited support, I would not have been able to complete this project. My four beloved companions during the long journey of writing this book, Ashley Rose, Fereydoun, Savanak J¯an, and Rostam, deserve all my
vii
viii
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
love and gratitude for their unwavering comradery and companionship. This book is dedicated to the memory of an extraordinary individual, a brilliant woman, Kiadokht Kia, whose life, ideas, and memories from her childhood growing up in western Iran served as a source of inspiration for writing this book. She granted me the honor and privilege of accompanying her on her trips to western and northwestern Iran.
Chronology of Simko’s Life
1887, Ismail Agha Shakak known as Simko is born in Chahriq west of Lake Urumiyeh/Urmia in close proximity to the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. 1889, Committee of Union and Progress (CUP) is founded. 1891, Sultan Abdulhamid II (r. 1876–1909) creates the Hamidiye Light Cavalry. 1891–1892, Protests against Nasser al-Din Shah Qajar (r. 1848–1896) over Tobacco Régie, a concession to a British subject for the production, sale, and distribution of Iranian tobacco. 1894–1896, Massacres of Armenians under Abdulhamid II through attacks by Hamidiye regiments on Armenian communities in eastern Anatolia. May 1, 1896, Nasser al-Din Shah Qajar is assassinated by Mirza Reza Kermani a disciple of Sayyid Jamal al-Din Afghani (i.e., Assadabadi). 1896–1907, Mozaffar al-Din Shah (r. 1896–1907) rules. 1901, British subject, William Knox D’Arcy, is granted a 60-year concession for oil exploration in all regions of Iran except the country’s five northern provinces of Khorasan, Astarabad, Mazandaran, Gilan, and Azerbaijan. 1904–1905 Russo-Japanese War: Empire of Japan defeats Czarist Russia. January 1905, Russian Revolution. July 4, 1905, Simko’s brother, Jafar Agha, is murdered in Tabriz by the order of the Qajar crown prince, Mohammad Ali Mirza.
ix
x
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
October 1905, Ottoman Turks invade and occupy several rural districts in western Azerbaijan. 1905, Jafar Agha’s father, Mohammad Agha, appeals to the Ottoman sultan, Abdulhamid II, to avenge the murder of his son. 1905, Simko and his followers seek Ottoman protection. Tahir Pasha, the Ottoman governor of Van offers land to Simko near Lake Van. December 1905, Constitutional Revolution commences in Tehran. August 5, 1906, Victory of the Constitutional Revolution in Iran. October 7, 1906, First Majlis is convened. January 9, 1907, Mozaffar al-Din Shah dies. January 1907, Mohammad Ali Shah (r. 1907–1909) rules. February 1907, Simko’s father, Mohammad Agha, travels to Istanbul to make a personal appeal to the Ottoman sultan, Abdulhamid II, to avenge the murder of his son by Iranian authorities. He eventually dies in an Ottoman prison. Spring 1907, Simko returns to Iran. August 31, 1907, Russia and Britain sign the Saint Petersburg Convention partitioning Iran into spheres of influence. Shakak-populated territory in western Azerbaijan falls under the Russian sphere of influence. June 23, 1908, Mohammad Ali Shah destroys the first Iranian parliament. June 23, 1908, Fighting erupts between pro-shah and constitutionalist forces in Tabriz. Spring-Summer 1908, Simko joins Eqbal al-Saltaneh, the governor of Maku, and attacks constitutionalist forces in the towns of Khoy and Salmas. Simko is appointed governor of Qotur on the Iran-Ottoman frontier. July 3, 1908, A CUP cell in the Ottoman Third Army in Macedonia openly calls for restoration of the 1876 Ottoman constitution. July 18, 1908, Turkish troops accompanied by the Shakak chief, Ismail Agha (not to be mistaken with Simko), occupy Qulonji, near Urumiyeh. Ismail Agha addresses letters to various villages informing them that they have been annexed by Ottoman Turkey. July 23, 1908, Abdulhamid II restores the 1876 constitution and calls for elections. 1909, D’Arcy concession becomes the Anglo-Persian Oil Company. April 12–13, 1909, Opponents of CUP mount a counter-revolution in Istanbul.
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
xi
April 27, 1909, Sultan Abdulhamid II is deposed from the throne and replaced by Mehmed V (r. 1909–1918). April 29, 1909, Russian troops occupy Tabriz, the provincial capital of Azerbaijan. July 13, 1909, Constitutionalist forces from Isfahan and Rasht enter Tehran. July 16, 1909, Mohammad Ali Shah takes refuge in the Russian Legation in Zargandeh (north of Tehran) and abdicates his throne. July 1909, Ahmad Shah (r. 1909–1925) rules. November 15, 1909, Second Majlis is inaugurated. 1910, The Second Majlis establishes the Iranian gendarmerie as a rural police force with assistance from Swedish officers. Autumn 1910, Ottoman-Kurdish statesman and diplomat, Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, arrives in Tiflis, Georgia, where he meets with Russian military authorities. Shortly after, the Kurdish dignitary tours the IranianOttoman borderlands and meets with Simko. October 1910, Mehmed Zeki, the Ottoman kaymakam/qaimmaqam (deputy commissioner in charge of the administration) of the Mahmudi district in the Lake Van region, threatens Simko and demands that the Kurdish chief hand over the district of Qotur to Ottoman authorities. March 1911, With Russian encouragement and support, the Kurdish leader, Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, initiates close collaboration with Simko. September 29, 1911, Ottoman war with Italy over Libya. November 1911, Russia and Britain issue an ultimatum to the Iranian government demanding the expulsion of Morgan Shuster, the American financial adviser, who had been hired to reform the Iranian financial system. December 21–25, 1911, Russian troops attack constitutionalists in Tabriz. December 26, 1911, Russian army reinforcements from south Caucasus attack Tabriz to crush constitutionalist forces. December 27, 1911, Tabriz under Russian control. December 31, 1911, (10th of Moharram in the Islamic calendar), A group of constitutionalist leaders and activists, including the prominent Shi’i religious leader, Seqat al-Islam Tabrizi, are hanged in Tabriz by Russian occupation forces. 1912, Kurdish leader, Sayyid (Sheikh) Taha II of Nehri, travels to Tiflis, where he meets Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan.
xii
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
1912, Sayyid Taha II and Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan tour Kurdish tribal areas in the Ottoman-Iranian borderlands. Sometime during this trip, the two Kurdish dignitaries are joined by Simko. 1912, With support from Russians authorities, Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan publishes a Kurdish-language newspaper called Rozhi Kurd in Urumiyeh. When the Russians remove Abdurrezzak Bey from western Azerbaijan, the task of supervising the publication of Rozhi Kurd falls on Simko, who continues to publish the newspaper until 1914. October 8–December 3, 1912, First Balkan War between the members of the Balkan League-Serbia, Bulgaria, Greece, and Montenegro-and the Ottoman Empire. December 1912–January 1913, Ottoman Empire withdraws its forces from western Azerbaijan. June 29–August 10, 1913, Second Balkan War: Ottoman Empire is increasingly dominated by the triumvirate of Enver Pasha, Jemal Pasha, and Talat Pasha. 1912–1913, Simko, backed and encouraged by Russian authorities in western Azerbaijan, carries out plundering raids in Ottoman territory. 1914, In return for his services to the Czarist government, Simko is invited to Tiflis, where the Russian governor-general of the Caucasus, Vorontsov-Dashkov, decorates him and appoints the Shakak chief as the governor of Somai in western Azerbaijan. 1914, British government buys a majority share in the newly founded Anglo-Persian Oil Company. July 21, 1914, Ahmad Shah’s coronation a week before the outbreak of the First World War. July 28, 1914, First World War commences. November 1, 1914, Iran declares its neutrality in the First World War. October 29, 1914, Admiral Souchon opens hostilities against Russia’s Black Sea fleet by sinking a gunboat and a mine-laying vessel. The city of Sevastopol is also shelled. November 2, 1914, Russia declares war on the Ottoman Empire. November 5, 1914, Great Britain declares war on the Ottoman Empire. November 14, 1914, Ottoman sultan declares Holy War. December 1914, Ottoman troops backed by Kurdish tribal units from the Mangur, Mamash, and Dehbokri tribes, defeat the Russian client and the Shahseven tribal chief, Shoja’a al-Dowleh, near Maragheh in eastern Azerbaijan. January 2, 1915, Russian troops evacuate Urumiyeh.
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
xiii
January 4, 1915, Ottoman forces enter Urumiyeh. Simko joins the Ottoman Turks. January 6, 1915, Russian consul general in Tabriz evacuates the city and withdraws to Russia. January 8, 1915, Ottoman forces occupy Tabriz. January 30, 1915, Russian troops re-occupy Tabriz. March 6, 1915, Russian troops backed by Armenian and Assyrian units drive the Ottoman Turks and their Kurdish allies, including Simko, out of Dilman/Dilmaqan (present-day Salmas) the capital of the district of Salmas. May 15, 1915, Ottoman forces evacuate Urumiyeh. May 23, 1915, Ottoman government orders the deportation of all Armenians. May 24–25, 1915, Russian troops occupy Urumiyeh. Summer 1915, Russian authorities exile Simko to Tiflis. November 1915, Russian forces advance as far as the outskirts of Tehran. A group of Iranian nationalists leave Tehran and later form a government in western Iran. 1916, Russian authorities allow Simko to return to Iran. July 14, 1915–March 10, 1916, Hussein-McMahon Correspondence. April 26, 1916–October 23, 1916, Sykes-Picot Agreement. 1915–1916, South Persia Rifles (SPR) created and commanded by British officers in the provinces of Fars and Kerman. March 15, 1917, Revolution in Russia; Czar Nicholas II abdicates, and a provisional government is established. November 7, 1917, Russian Bolshevik Revolution (the October Revolution by the old Russian calendar). January 8, 1918, President Woodrow Wilson of the United States proclaims his 14 points. March 3, 1918, Russia signs the Treaty of Brest Litovsk with the Central Powers (Germany, Austria-Hungary, Ottoman Empire, and Bulgaria) ending its participation in the First World War. The Bolsheviks and the Ottoman Turks reiterate their commitment to withdraw their troops from Iranian territory. March 3, 1918, Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun, and a group of his bodyguards are assassinated by Simko and his men. The murder of Mar Shimun ignites a civil war between Christians (Assyrians and Armenians) and Muslims (Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks) in western Azerbaijan.
xiv
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
March 1918, An Assyrian armed band led by Agha Petros capture Simko’s stronghold at Chahriq. Simko escapes to Khoy where he slaughters Assyrian refugees. April-July 1918, Assyrians under the leadership of their military commander, Agha Petros, fight several campaigns against the Ottoman Turkish armies. May 28, 1918, Republic of Armenia established. June 26, 1918, Soviet Union renounces Czarist Russia’s privileges in Iran. July 30, 1918, Assyrians of western Azerbaijan abandon Salmas and Urumiyeh, turning south in an attempt to reach British lines at Hamadan in western Iran. August 3, 1918, An Ottoman army backed by irregular Kurdish units enters Urumiyeh and immediately attacks the fleeing Assyrians and Armenians. Simko joins the Turks in attacking the Assyrian refugees. September 15, 1918, Ottoman Turks capture Baku. October 1, 1918, An Arab army under the command of Amir Faisal, a son of Sharif Hussein of Mecca, enters Damascus. Mehmed VI (r. 1918– 1922) ascends the Ottoman throne. October 30, 1918, Mudros Armistice, Allied Occupation of Istanbul. November 11, 1918, First World War ends. Late 1918, Former Ottoman diplomat, Sherif Pasha, who will lead a Kurdish delegation to the Paris Peace Conference, establishes contact with several Kurdish leaders, including Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji, Sayyid Taha II, and Simko in order to promote the idea of an independent Kurdish state. December 1918, Simko commences his revolt in western Azerbaijan by attacking rural communities in the districts of Salmas and Khoy. 1919, Soviet-backed Jangal movement under the leadership of Mirza Kuchak Khan controls the Caspian province of Gilan. January 1919–January 1920, Paris Peace Conference. January 1919, At the Paris Peace Conference, the Society for the Advancement of Kurdistan led by Sherif Pasha proposes the creation of a Kurdish state. April–May 1919, Acting as Simko’s ambassador, Sayyid Taha II visits Iraq. During this visit, Sayyid Taha II presses British officials in Baghdad for a united Kurdistan under British auspices. May 1919, Deputy governor of Azerbaijan hatches a plot to assassinate Simko by sending him a parcel bomb disguised as a box of sweetmeats.
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
xv
Simko escapes the assassination attempt, but his brother, Ali Agha, and several of his attendants are killed. June 1919, Two men falsely accused of participating in the bombing plot against Simko are handed over to Simko who executes them. August 9, 1919, Anglo-Persian Agreement signed. November 1919, Simko with strong military and logistical support from nationalist Turks holds country from Khoy to Urumiyeh completely terrorized. November 1919, The British government withdraws its vice-consul from Urumiyeh. December 1919, Simko attacks the villages of Lakistan in the district of Salmas, pillaging and massacring their inhabitants. January–February 1920, Punitive expedition against Simko under the command of the Russian officer, Colonel Philipov. January 17, 1920, According to a British report, Iranian government forces score a decisive victory over Simko and they seize Dilman in the Salmas district. Simko is forced to retreat to his stronghold at Chahriq. February 22, 1920, Colonel Philipov proposes terms of peace to Simko. March 1920, Simko accepts conditions of peace proposed by Philipov. April 5–April 8, 1920, Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani seizes power in Tabriz. April 19, 1920, Abd al-Majid Mirza Ain al-Dowleh, the new governor of Azerbaijan, arrives in Tabriz. May 18, 1920, Soviet forces land at various points on the Iranian coast of the Caspian Sea, including the port of Anzali. June 5, 1920, Soviet Republic of Gilan established. June 24, 1920, Ain al-Dowleh leaves Tabriz for Tehran. Khiyabani consolidates his authority over Tabriz. August 10, 1920, Treaty of Sèvres provides for an independent Armenia and an autonomous Kurdistan. August 1920, Simko captures Salmas and appoints one of his confidants, Teymur Agha, as its governor. August 1920, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat is appointed governor of Azerbaijan. September 1920, Sayyid Taha II asks for arms and money for an independent Kurdistan from British authorities in Iraq. September 13, 1920, Iranian Cossacks seize control of Tabriz and disperse Khiyabani’s supporters.
xvi
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
September 14, 1920, Khiyabani is killed by Iranian Cossacks in Tabriz. After the death of their leader, Tabriz democrats establish contact with Simko and encourage the Kurdish chief to attack Urumiyeh. September–October 1920, Simko resumes his attacks against Urumiyeh. November 1920, Turkish nationalists defeat Armenia. December 2, 1920, Peace Treaty of Alexandropol (Gümrü) ends the Turkish-Armenian War. December 1920, Simko and Sayyid Taha II seize Urumiyeh. February 21, 1921, Sayyid Ziya al-Din Tabatabi and Reza Khan stage a coup d’état. Sayyid Ziya is appointed prime minister and Reza Khan is appointed commander of the Cossack Brigade. February 26, 1921, Iran abrogates the 1919 Anglo-Persian Agreement. February 26, 1921, Iran signs a treaty of friendship with the Soviet Union. February 27, 1921, Ahmad Shah bestows upon Reza Khan the title of Sardar Sepah (the Commander of the Army). March 16, 1921, Treaty of friendship between the Soviet Union and the Turkish nationalists. March 1921, Simko defeats an Iranian army under the command of Zafar al-Dowleh (later Brigadier General Hassan Moqaddam) at Tasuj north of Lake Urumiyeh. April 24, 1921, Reza Khan Sardar Sepah is appointed minister of war. June 22, 1921, Majlis denounces the 1919 Anglo-Persian Agreement. August 1921, A gendarmerie officer in Khorasan, Colonel Mohammad Taqi Khan Pessyan, revolts against the central government. August–September 1921, Turkish nationalists defeat Greek forces. October 1921, General Amanollah Mirza Jahanbani is appointed Chief of Staff of the Army. October 3, 1921, Gendarmerie commander, Colonel Mohammad Taqi Khan Pessyan, is killed in a skirmish with a pro-government Kurdish tribal force in northern Khorasan. October 7, 1921, Simko captures Savojbolagh (Mahabad) after defeating a gendarmerie detachment commanded by Major Hassan Malekzadeh. October 7, 1921, Simko leaves Savojbolagh for Chahriq. December 5, 1921, Minister of War, Reza Khan Sardar Sepah, initiates the process of reorganizing the Iranian army by issuing the Army Order No. 1, which announces the creation of a national army through the unification of the Cossack Brigade, the Gendarmerie, and provincial troops.
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
xvii
December 15, 1921, An Iranian government force recaptures Savojbolagh, but it quickly loses control over the town. December 1921, At the battle of Tasuj, Simko defeats a government force under the command of Amir Arshad (i.e., S¯am Khan Hajialilu Qarajadaghi) who is killed on the battlefield. December 1921, Mirza Kuchak Khan, the leader of the Jangal Movement, dies from frostbite in the Talish mountains. January 30, 1922, Iranian gendarmerie troopers and officers stationed in Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh revolt. The rebels handpick Major Abolqassem Khan Lahuti as their leader. February 1, 1922, Lahuti and his supporters seize the city of Tabriz. February 8, 1922, Lahuti’s uprising is suppressed. Lahuti escapes to the Soviet Union. Early March 1922, British intelligence reports state that Simko had recaptured Savojbolagh once again, but inter-tribal friction had erupted between Simko, the Kurds of Savojbolagh, and local tribal chiefs, forcing Simko’s men to evacuate the town. May 1922, Simko’s forces led by Sayyid Taha II defeat an Iranian army detachment under the command of Khalu Qorban, who is killed together with more than two hundred of his men. June 1922, General Amanollah Khan Jahanbani is appointed commander-in-chief in Azerbaijan to lead the operations against Simko. June 1922, As Amanollah Mirza prepares himself to depart for Tabriz, another large military force is dispatched to reinforce the MaraghehMiandoab line east and south of Lake Urumiyeh. June 17, 1922, Amanollah Mirza leaves Tehran for Tabriz. June 22, 1922, Iranian statesman and diplomat, Momtaz al-Dowleh, ˙ arrives at the Black Sea port town of Inebolu. June 24, 1922, Momtaz al-Dowleh arrives in Ankara. June 30, 1922, Momtaz al-Dowleh submits his credentials to Mustafa Kemal in an official ceremony, and he holds a meeting with the Turkish leader followed by meetings with Fevzi Pasha (Fevzi Chakmak), Chief of the General Staff, and Fethi Bey (Fethi Okyar), the deputy minister of internal affairs of the provisional Ankara government. June 1922, As Amanollah Mirza leaves Tehran, a Turkish detachment of 1000–1500 men assembles in Van in eastern Turkey. July 9, 1922, Simko sends a three-man delegation to the British authorities in Mosul in northern Iraq.
xviii
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
July 18, 1922, Amanollah Mirza leaves Tabriz for the port of Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh where he sets up his headquarters. End of July 1922, Simko controls all territory west of Lake Urumiyeh from the outskirts of Khoy in the north to Baneh in the south. August 5–21, 1922, Military campaign against Simko. August 9, 1922, Government forces defeat Simko, who flees to his stronghold, Chahriq. August 10, 1922, Government troops march through Dilman the capital of the Salmas district. August 14, 1922, Government troops capture Simko’s stronghold at Chahriq. August 16, 1922, Government troops enter Urumiyeh. August 21, 1922, Deputy governors are appointed for Urumiyeh and Savojbolagh. August 25, 1922, Iran’s minister of war instructs the governors of Urumiyeh, Salmas, and Khoy to grant amnesty to all Kurds who would forsake Simko and submit to the government. September 1922, Turkish nationalists seize Izmir and drive the Greeks out of Anatolia. October 1922, Simko and Sayyid Taha II visit northern Iraq. November 1, 1922, Turkish Grand National Assembly abolishes the Ottoman sultanate. January 8, 1923, Simko arrives in Sulaymaniyah in northern Iraq as a guest of Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji. March 1923, Simko returns to Turkey and joins Ozdemir Bey, the commander of Turkish forces in Rawanduz. April 22, 1923, Rawanduz is occupied by British forces. April 1923, Simko retires to Nehri in southeastern Turkey. June 1923, Simko is reported to be near Qotur, on the Turkish side of the frontier, working with the local Kurds, who are robbing travellers along the Van-Qotur Road. July 24, 1923, Treaty of Lausanne is signed between Turkey and Britain, France, Italy, Japan, Greece, Romania, and the Kingdom of Serbs, Croats, and Slovenes (i.e., Yugoslavia) after a seven-month conference. July 1923, Simko appeals to Soviet officials for support. October 26, 1923, Reza Khan is appointed prime minister of Iran. October 29, 1923, Republic of Turkey is established with Mustafa Kemal as its first president.
CHRONOLOGY OF SIMKO’S LIFE
xix
December 6, 1924, Sheikh Khazal of Mohammareh (Khoramshahr) submits to Reza Khan. March-June 1925, Turkey suppresses Sheikh Said’s rebellion. May 1925, Simko, his family, and 200 of his followers return to Iran. June 1925, Reza Khan meets Simko during his visit to Azerbaijan. October 1925, Qajar prince, Salar al-Dowleh, stages a revolt in western Iran. December 15, 1925, Iran’s parliament abolishes the Qajar monarchy and proclaims Reza Shah Pahlavi the new shah of Iran. April 22, 1926, Iran signs a treaty of security and friendship with Turkey. April 25, 1926, Reza Shah’s coronation. June 26, 1926, Troops stationed in the town of Salmas in western Azerbaijan revolt. August 1926, Qajar prince, Salar al-Dowleh, organizes a second tribal revolt in Kermanshah and Kurdistan, and he establishes contact with Simko. August 1926, Salar al-Dowleh’s rebellion fizzles and the Qajar prince is detained by authorities in Iraq. October 1926, Simko revolts, but he is quickly defeated. The Kurdish chief flees to Iraq. May 1928, Simko departs Iraq for Turkey. April 1929, Iran recognizes Iraq. July 1929, Simko returns to Iraq with about 50 followers and establishes himself in a village in the Rawanduz district. July 1930, Simko returns to Iran after he is appointed governor of Oshnaviyeh southwest of Lake Urumiyeh. July 19, 1930, Simko is killed in an ambush by Iranian authorities at Oshnaviyeh.
Contents
1
1
Introduction
2
Historical Setting: Iran on the Brink of Collapse Qajar Dynasty and European Imperialism Anglo-Russian Rivalry and the Constitutional Revolution Iran During First World War Reza Shah Pahlavi Western Azerbaijan, the Home of Simko and the Shakak Tribe Kurds of Western Azerbaijan
23 25 27 30 37 46 52
3
Shakak Tribe and the Rise of Simko Shakak/Shikak Kurds Rise of Simko Ottoman Turks Invade Western Azerbaijan Simko, Constitutional Revolution & Ottoman Invasion Simko & the Russian Occupation of Azerbaijan Simko & Sayyid Taha II
57 58 65 70 75 80 87
4
Simko, Competing Nationalisms, and the Great War On the Eve of the First World War Simko, Russian Evacuation & Ottoman Invasion Assyrian Refugees Arrive in Western Azerbaijan An Assyrian-Armenian-Kurdish Line of Defense Murder of Mar Shimun Mar Shimun’s Murder Ignites a Civil War
95 96 98 105 109 115 120 xxi
xxii
CONTENTS
5
Fall of Empires and Simko’s Revolt Simko’s Rebellion Commences First Military Campaign Against Simko Khiyabani’s Revolt Sayyid Taha II as Simko’s Ambassador End of Khiyabani
125 131 137 141 147 150
6
Simko’s Wars and the Rise of Reza Shah Sayyid Taha II and Simko’s Revolt Battle of Tasuj Simko Captures Savojbolagh (Mahabad) Simko Defeats Amir Arshad Creating a Standing Army Momtaz al-Dowleh’s Mission to Ankara
157 158 161 165 171 179 184
7
Simko’s Downfall Lahuti’s Rebellion Khalu Qorban: yet Another Debacle for the Government Amanollah Mirza Jahanbani Defeat of Simko Simko’s Tribal Coalition Fizzles
189 190 197 202 207 213
8
In Search of a New Patron: Simko Sandwiched Between Iran and Turkey Simko in Northern Iraq Simko, Turkish Nationalists, and Russian Bolsheviks Simko Returns to Iran Simko and Salar al-Dowleh End of Simko
219 220 224 231 238 244
Conclusion
251
9
Bibliography
265
Index
279
List of Maps
Map Map Map Map Map
0.1 1.1 2.1 2.2 5.1
Iran and its neighbors Iran and the location of West Azerbaijan Province Western Azerbaijan’s Districts Kurdish Tribes of Iranian Kurdistan Treaty of Sèvres
xxiv 22 55 56 128
xxiii
Map 0.1 Iran and its neighbors
CHAPTER 1
Introduction
Ismail Agha Shakak/Shikak/Shekak (1887–1930) also known by the Kurdish diminutive of Simko or Semko or Simitqu or Semitqu has always been something of an enigma.1 The bare facts of his life are well known, but despite his notoriety, the man himself remains elusive. Descriptions by contemporaries, especially those written by Iranian historians and British officials, regarded him with varying measures of revulsion and loathing; they denounced the Kurdish chief as a vicious brigand and a treacherous 1 For Simko’s life and career, see, Hashem Ahmadzadeh and Gareth Stansfield, “The Political, Cultural, and Military Re-awakening of the Kurdish Nationalist Movement in Iran,” Middle East Journal, Vol. 64, No. 1 (Winter, 2010), pp. 11–27. Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, (London: Oxford University Press, 1966). Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, (New York: William Morrow & Co, 1965). Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran Dar Qarn-e 12th, 13th, and 14th Hijri, 6 Volumes, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1979). Kaveh Bayat, “Ismail Aqa Semitqu,” in Farhang-e Namavaran-e Moaser-e Iran, Vol. 1 (Tehran, 2002), pp. 578–580. Kaveh Bayat, Ravabet-e Iran va Turkiyeh: Az Soqut-e. Dolat-e Osmani ta baramadan-e Neza.m-e Jomhuri (1297– 1302 Shamsi), (Tehran: Pardis-e Danesh, 2015). Ahmad Chupani, Masale-ye Ismail Agha Semko dar Azerbaijan va Mokrian, (Tehran: Nashr-e Ana, 2015). Donyaha, Daneshnamehye Farsi, https://donyaha.ir/biography/Ismail-Agha-Simko. Michael Gunter, Historical Dictionary of the Kurds, (Lanham, MD, and Oxford: The Scarecrow Press, Inc., 2004). Muhammad Rasul Hawar, Simko u bzutnaway natawayatiy Kurd, Hikumeti Herêmi Kurdistanê, (Silêmanî: Wazarati Roshnbiri, 2005). Hassan Malekzdeh-ye Hirbad, Sarnevesht-e Heyratangiz, (Tehran: Bina, 1949). Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak: Zendeginameh-ye Khodnevesht-e Sepahbod Amanollah Jahanbani, Edited by Parviz Jahanbani, (Tehran: Ferdows Press, 2001). Amanollah Jahanbani,
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_1
1
2
M. KIA
villain who plundered and murdered unarmed and defenseless communities in northwestern Iran. Dismissing the Kurdish leader as a ruthless and bloodthirsty bandit, some went so far as to blame the American missionaries and diplomats stationed in northwestern Iran, for instigating Simko’s separatist uprising.2 In more recent times, a group of scholars and writers has striven to salvage Simko’s seemingly tattered reputation. They presented a sympathetic portrayal of the tribal chief as a popular leader, who was victimized by oppressive Iranian authorities and dehumanized by a biased anti-Kurdish historiography. Some among these have claimed that Simko’s revolt originated “as a reaction to the homogenizing Az Tezar ta Shah: Zendeginameh va Khaterat-e Sepahbod Amanollah Jahanbani, (Tehran: Elm Press, 2019). Wadie Jwaideh, Kurdish National Movement Its Origins and Development, (Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 2006). Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azarbaijan, (Tehran: Amir Kabir Press, 1978). Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashrutehye Iran, (Tehran: Amir Kabir Press, 1978). Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Avamel-e Moasser dar Piruzi-ye Qoshun-e Mottahad al-Shekl dar Jang-e Shakar Yazi (Mordad-e 1301),” Motaleat-e Tarikhi-ye Jang, Vol. 4, No. 3, Autumn 1399 (Solar) (2020), pp. 55– 73. Sirwan Khosrozadeh, Shekast-e Ordu-ye Ahanin, Gozareshi az Hamleh-ye Simko beh Mahabad va Enhedam-e Hang-e Chahardahom-e Jhanadermeri, (Mehr 1300 Shamsi), (Tehran: Shirazeh Ketab-e Ma). Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Vakavi-ye Avamel-e Moasser dar Shuresh-e Dovvom-e Simko (Mehr 1305),” Motaleat-e Tarikhi-ye Jang, Vol. 6, No. 3, 1401 (Solar) (2021), pp. 35–46. Farideh Koohi-Kamali, The Political Development of the Kurds in Iran: Pastoral Nationalism, (London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2003). Chris Kutschera, Le Mouvement National Kurd, (Paris: Editions Flammarion, 1979). Hussein Madani, Kurdistan u stratejiy dewletan, Vol. 2, (Stockholm: Spartryck. 2001). David McDowall, A Modern History of the Kurds, (London: I.B. Tauris, 1997). Rahmatollah Khan Moatamed al-Vozara, Urumiyeh dar Moharebeh-ye Alamsouz az Moghaddameh-ye Nesara ta Balva-ye Ismail Agha, 1298–1300, Edited by Kaveh Bayat, (Tehran: Shirazeh Press, 2001). Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Khaterat va Khatarat, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1982). Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Gozaresh-e Iran, (Tehran: Noghreh Press, 1985). Kamal Soleimani, “The Kurdish Image in Statist Historiography: The Case of Simko,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 53, No. 6 (2017-11-02), pp. 949–965. Abbas Vali, Kurds and the State in Iran: The Making of Kurdish Identity in Iran, (London: I.B. Tauris & Co Ltd., 2011). Martin van Bruinessen, “Kurdish Tribes and the State of Iran: The Case of Simko’s Revolt,” in Richard Tapper, The Conflict of Tribe and State in Iran and Afghanistan, (London: Croom Helm, 1983). Martin van Bruinessen, “A Kurdish War Lord on the Turkish-Persian Frontier in the Early Twentieth Century: Isma’il Agha Simko,” in Touraj Atabaki, Iran and the First World War: Battleground of the Great Powers, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2006), pp. 69–93. Martin van Bruinessen, Kurdish EthnoNationalism Versus Nation-Building States, Collected articles, (Istanbul: ISIS Press, 2000). Martin van Bruinessen, “Shakak,” in C.E. Bosworth, E. van Donzel, W.P. Heinrichs, and G. Lecomte (ed.), Encyclopaedia of Islam, New Edition, Vol. IX, (Leiden: Brill, 1997). 2 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, (Tehran: Amir Kabir Press, 1978), p. 830.
1
INTRODUCTION
3
Persian-first policy of Reza Shah, who wanted to build a nation based on the cultural and linguistic features of the Persians as the dominant ethnic group.”3 This assertion, however, ignores the basic fact that Simko’s rebellion commenced in late 1918, when Reza Shah was an ordinary officer in the Iranian Cossack Brigade, and the rebellion was suppressed in August 1922, three years before Reza Shah seized the throne of Iran. Even Simko’s short-lived revolt in September–October 1926, after Reza Shah had ascended to the throne of Iran, was caused primarily by a conflict between Simko and a tribal rival, rather than by any policy implemented by the central government in Tehran, which was barely in control of northwestern Iran. Other authors, in their attempt to salvage Simko’s reputation, have gone even one step further and, ignoring the appalling violence and brutality perpetrated by the Kurdish chief, celebrated him as a refined and elegant man, a rare modernizer, who not only kept a piano in his frontier outpost at the fortress of Chahriq on the border between Iran and the Ottoman Empire, but also “installed telephone lines that linked his headquarters in Chahriq” to nearby towns of “Savojbolagh, Dilman and the other main centers of the territory he controlled.”4 The campaign to rehabilitate the Kurdish chief as a nationalist icon has resulted in the emergence of a new Simko Agha whose name appears on billboards and streets, especially in the Kurdistan Region of northern Iraq, while his military exploits are celebrated in Kurdish-language television shows and websites. These programs and productions often depict Simko’s activities as motivated by the nationalistic dream of unifying the Kurdish tribes of northwestern Iran and creating an independent Kurdish state. Such claims may resonate with a segment of contemporary Kurdish viewership,
3 Hashem Ahmadzadeh and Gareth Stansfield, “The Political, Cultural, and Military Re-awakening of the Kurdish Nationalist Movement in Iran,” Middle East Journal, Vol. 64, No. 1 (Winter, 2010), pp. 11–27, p. 13. Simko’s rebellion commenced in late 1918, when Reza Shah was a junior army officer, and it ended in August 1922 more than three years before Reza Shah (at the time, Reza Khan Sardar Sepah) seized the throne of Iran. As a minister of war, who was trying to create a unified and integrated army, Reza Khan did not have either the power or the authority to introduce “homogenizing Persian-first” policies even if he wished to. Reza Shah’s cultural policies belong to a period long after the suppression of Simko’s uprising, and many of them date back to the decade of 1930s after Simko had already been assassinated by Iranian authorities. 4 Kutschera, Chris, Le Mouvement National Kurde, (Paris: Flammarion, 1979), p. 48.
4
M. KIA
but they fail to reveal the complexity of Simko as a historical figure and political leader. Far more intriguing than the English, Kurdish, and Persian narratives on Simko is a rather innovative attempt by Turkish nationalist historians, who, in writing about the Kurdish-Assyrian conflict, portrayed Simko and the Kurdish leader, Sayyid (Sheikh) Taha II, “as warriors who fought for the Turkish army” against Russian imperialism. In addition, both men “cooperated” with the Turkish military and even the local “Turcomans” to put an end to “Assyrian atrocities.”5 This last effort falls under the category of fictional romance and is, therefore, beyond the scope of this humble study. Instead of becoming engrossed in the battle of nationalistic narratives and issuing a guilty or innocent verdict, this book attempts to highlight the main contours of Simko’s life and to capture this elusive figure. My objective in writing this book is to analyze the underlying political and historical circumstances that shaped Simko and enabled him to emerge as the leader of the first major Kurdish separatist movement in twentieth-century Iran. I believe that the Kurdish chief’s life and career can provide us with a useful framework to discuss how radical transformations on the immediate periphery of the Kurdish-populated region in Iran impelled him to demand an independent state. Simko’s revolt was directly impacted by the dramatic transformation of the Middle East from a region dominated by multi-ethnic, multi-linguistic, and multireligious empires to a region littered by “nation-states,” some of which were created by the British and French colonial administrators. To the north, Czarist Russia collapsed, and out of two revolutions, the first in March 1917 and the second in November 1917 (the October Revolution by the old Russian calendar), a new entity called the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics (USSR) emerged. In the underbelly of Russia, in the south Caucasus, three new countries, Azerbaijan, Armenia, and Georgia, also declared their independence in the aftermath of the collapse of the Russian Empire only to be attacked, occupied, and annexed by the Red Army and converted into Soviet socialist republics in 1920 and 1921. To the west in Anatolia, the Ottoman Empire disintegrated, and from its
5 Metin Atmaca, “Fragile Frontiers: Sayyid Taha and the role of Kurdish Religio-Political Leadership in the Ottoman East During the First World War,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 54, No. 3 (2018), p. 372.
1
INTRODUCTION
5
ashes a secular and nationalist Turkish republic arose under the leadership of Mustafa Kemal (Atatürk). To the south in Mesopotamia, Britain and France carved several artificial states from the carcass of the Ottoman Empire, including a new country called Iraq that contained an unruly mix of diverse religious and ethno-linguistic communities. By patching up three dissimilar provinces of the former Ottoman Empire, Mosul, Baghdad, and Basra, with disparate populations of Shi’i Arabs, Sunni Arabs, Kurds, Assyrians, Armenians, Jews, Turkmens, etc., who had never displayed any desire to cohabit the same national space, the British created a country that was far from being a nation. Finally, to the east in Iran, the feeble, fragile, and utterly inept Qajar state was first jolted by a military coup and eventually overthrown and replaced by a modernizing and centralizing regime under Reza Shah, the founder of the Pahlavi dynasty (1925–1979). As age-old empires collapsed and a new political map of the region emerged, Kurdish leaders in Iraq and Turkey attempted to create autonomous or independent enclaves or states; Simko Agha’s rebellion in northwestern Iran was just one example of such efforts. Much of the scholarly work on Simko has focused on the postFirst World War period, especially the four years between 1918 and 1922, when he staged his revolt and gained control of the territory corresponding with much of the present-day Iranian province of West Azerbaijan. Consequently, the formative period in his political development between 1905 and 1918, and the last eight years of his life following his defeat at the hands of the Iranian government in 1922 have been downplayed or completely ignored. Worse, much of the literature on the role and impact of Simko after the First World War has emphasized the military campaigns against the Kurdish chief and his efforts to thwart them. This approach has generally overlooked the extensive relationships between Simko and Iranian, Russian, Turkish, and British authorities, as well as the political and ideological aspects of Simko’s rebellion, especially the significant influence of prominent Kurdish leaders, such as Sayyid Taha II of Nehri. Simko’s tumultuous political career was born out of his rage at the treachery and violence unleashed against his brother by the Iranian government. His alienation from Iran was reinforced by the support he received from the Ottoman Turks and their pan-Islamic propaganda after 1905. As a young khan, Simko witnessed the rapid disintegration of the Qajar state, the victory of the constitutional revolution in 1906, the
6
M. KIA
subsequent conflict between the Qajar monarchy and Iranian constitutionalists, the invasion and occupation of parts of northwestern, first by Ottoman Turks and then by Czarist Russia, and finally, the open warfare in Azerbaijan between the pro-shah forces backed by Russia and the constitutionalist forces supported by revolutionaries from south Caucasus. As an up-and-coming tribal leader, Simko learned how to survive on the borderlands of empires by forming an alliance with one power, and then switching his loyalty to another as conflicts raged and the balance of power shifted. Thus, from 1905 to 1907, the Kurdish chief sought the protection and patronage of Ottoman Turks, but in 1908, as the fighting erupted between the pro-shah and constitutionalist forces in western Azerbaijan, Simko joined the Khan of Maku in his devastating attacks against the revolutionaries in the towns of Khoy and Salmas. In return for his services to the Iranian monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah (r. 1907–1909), Simko was appointed governor of the frontier district of Qotur in northwestern Iran. In 1909, after Russia occupied parts of Azerbaijan, the Kurdish chief established a close patron-client relationship with Russian authorities, going so far as to become a paid and armed agent of the Russian government before the commencement of the First World War. In his capacity as a local client of Russia, Simko organized plundering raids against rural communities inside Ottoman territory, and he instigated Kurdish revolts against Turkish rule. Simko’s personal relationship with prominent Kurdish leaders, including Sayyid Taha II and Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, acquainted him with influential Kurdish leaders in the Ottoman Empire and Europe. At the same time, these contacts planted the seeds of an embryonic form of nationalism in his mind. But, Simko’s actual drive to establish an independent Kurdish state originated not as a reaction to Reza Shah’s nationalist policies, but much earlier during the First World War, as a response to Assyrian and Armenian nationalists, who with support from Czarist Russia had embarked on a campaign to carve autonomous or independent enclaves or states in northwestern Iran and eastern Anatolia. This was not the first time that Kurdish nationalistic sentiments had been aroused by the possibility of an Assyrian or an Armenian state being created with support from European powers. Such a Christian political entity could reduce the status of Kurds of the region to that of secondclass subjects and undermine the economic power and political prestige of the Ashirats or the Kurdish tribal elites. Almost thirty-five years before the
1
INTRODUCTION
7
eruption of hostilities between Simko and Christian Assyrians and Armenians, the Kurdish leader, Sheikh Ubeydullah of Nehri, had warned about the eruption of a Kurdish nationalist backlash if European powers insisted on carving an independent Armenian state in eastern Anatolia: What is this I hear that the Armenians are going to have an independent state in Van, and the Nestorians [Assyrians] are going to hoist the British flag and declare themselves British subjects? I will never permit it, even if I have to arm the women.6
Almost four decades later, Sheikh Ubeydullah’s grandson, Sayyid Taha II, who was also a close confidant and brother-in-law of Simko, repeated his grandfather’s sentiments when expressing his opinion regarding reparations for the Assyrian refugees who intended to return to Iran and reclaim their lost homes in western Azerbaijan after they had been evicted forcibly by the Ottoman Turks and their Kurdish allies in the summer 1918: There you are, these Christians [Assyrians] are not returning to their homes in peace. They aspire to become a big nation with us Kurds as their subjects, so much so that they have an ‘ambassador’ in London, which is much more than we have.7
As with many other parts of Iran, western Azerbaijan, the home of the Shakak Kurds and their chief, Simko, contained a mosaic of ethnic, linguistic, and religious groups. Kurdish tribal groups lived side by side with non-Kurdish groups, including Shi’i Azerbaijani Turks, Turkic Qara Papakhs, Christian Assyrians and Armenians, as well as a small Jewish community scattered among various urban centers of the region. The Shi’i Azerbaijanis, Assyrians, and Armenians not only dominated the urban and rural economies of northwestern Iran, but also enjoyed significant support from power centers outside of the region. Shi’i Azerbaijanis and especially the Turkic Shi’i tribal groups acted as allies of Iran’s central 6 Wadie Jwaideh, Kurdish National Movement Its Origins and Development, (Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 2006), p. 83. The remark was made by Sheikh Ubeydullah to an Ottoman official and repeated in a report by Vice Counsel Clayton to Major Trotter, Bashkale, July 11, 1880, Parliamentary Papers (Turkey, 1881), 5:7. 7 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920, (Washington, DC: Westphalia Press, 2016), p. 308.
8
M. KIA
government, while the Assyrians received assistance and protection not only from the Russian government, but also from various American and European Christian missionaries. Since 1836, foreign missionaries had introduced modern schools, colleges, and hospitals as well as western ideas, values, and institutions among the Assyrian and Armenian communities. By 1914, the Assyrians of western Azerbaijan enjoyed the privileged position of being the most urbanized and educated segment of the society, a position that made them a subject of envy and resentment by their Muslim neighbors, especially by the Kurds, who had remained semipastoral, semi-rural, poor, and uneducated. To counter the alliances made by the Assyrian and Armenian Christians with European powers, Simko relied at times on the patronage and support of Ottoman Turks and later Turkish nationalists, though he also served Russian political and military objectives—especially before and intermittently during the First World War. On several occasions, he also pleaded for assistance from British authorities in Iraq, but there is no evidence that he ever received any. Exploiting the general anxiety and insecurity of Kurdish tribal chiefs, which had been aroused by the reports of the Assyrian and Armenian schemes for independence, Simko mobilized the support of Kurdish tribes in northwestern Iran under his leadership. The Kurdish ruling elite, as represented by the warrior caste of powerful tribal groups, monopolized military and pastoral life. They owned a vast amount of real estate, including villages where the subject class, namely the peasant population, also called Gurans or Ra’ayat, resided. The peasant cultivators, some of whom were Assyrian Christians, had no voice in the affairs of the tribes who ruled them, and they were generally treated as an inferior caste.8 Though the tribal warrior caste were far less numerous than the peasants, they ruled as the lords of the country.9 The Kurdish tribal chiefs understood that the creation of an Assyrian or Armenian state posed a direct threat to their political and economic privileges.
8 For a detailed analysis of the term, “G¯ ur¯an,” see, V. Minorsky, “The G¯ur¯an,’ in Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, University of London, Vol. 11, No. 1 (1943), pp. 75–103, (Cambridge University Press on behalf of School of Oriental and African Studies). 9 William Spottiswoode, “Sketch of the Tribes of Northern Kurdistan,” Transactions of the Ethnological Society of London, Vol. 2 (1863), pp. 244–248, Published by: Royal Anthropological Institute of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, p. 244.
1
INTRODUCTION
9
By the winter 1918, Simko had concluded that the Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan must unify under his leadership and use every means possible, including open warfare, to prevent the Assyrians and Armenians from realizing their nationalistic dreams. Alarmed by the possibility of an independent Assyrian state and convinced that the Assyrians aimed at nothing less than the subjugation of the Kurdish populations trapped within their borders, Simko treacherously murdered the Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun. The murder of Mar Shimun ignited a civil war between the Christian (i.e., Assyrian and Armenian) and their Muslim (i.e., Kurdish and Azerbaijani Turk) neighbors. Thousands of defenseless civilians were slaughtered in the ensuing bloodbath, including a significant number of defenseless Kurds. In spring–summer 1918, after Ottoman Turks invaded northwestern Iran, the Kurdish chief re-ignited his relentless and murderous rampage against the Assyrian and Armenian communities of western Azerbaijan. Simko joined Ottoman troops and local Iranian officials as they unleashed a campaign of physical expulsion directed against the Assyrian and Armenian communities of northwestern Iran. The fall of Czarist Russia and the subsequent withdrawal of Russian forces from Iran after the Bolshevik revolution, the defeat and the disintegration of the Ottoman Empire at the conclusion of the Great War in October 1918, the total collapse of Iranian governmental authority in western Azerbaijan during and after the end of the Great War, as well as the defeat of armed Assyrian and Armenian groups in the summer 1918 created a political and military vacuum that Simko tried to fill for nearly four years. Simko feared the return to western Azerbaijan of Assyrians and Armenians, who were living as refugees under British protection in Iraq. He gained access to a large quantity of arms and ammunition abandoned by the Russian and Ottoman armies, and he recruited several hundred members of the disbanded Ottoman artillery units for his army. He then felt confident that he could fill the vacuum left behind by the Russians and Ottoman Turks and convert western Azerbaijan to a territorial base for his future Kurdish state. From December 1918 to August 1922, the Kurdish chief rallied the support of his tribe, the Shakak, as well as the neighboring Kurdish tribes, to his cause. With significant support from remnants of Ottoman army units, and after 1919, with direct assistance from the Turkish nationalist movement led by Mustafa Kemal, Simko created a formidable army. His newly organized military force allowed him to impose his authority over
10
M. KIA
a vast region in western Azerbaijan, extending from Salmas in the north to Baneh in the south.10 Though initially victorious against the small and ill-equipped armies dispatched against him by the Iranian government, Simko failed to transform his political base from a mosaic of small and unruly tribes into a unified confederation capable of laying the foundation for a functioning state. He also refused to address the socio-economic grievances of the Kurdish, as well as the non-Kurdish communities, of the region. Worse, Simko’s Kurdish fighters acted as an irregular body of raiders, who lacked regular rations and organizational discipline. They relied almost exclusively on plundering villages to feed themselves, carrying off grain and cattle, and killing many of the defenseless inhabitants. Simko’s refusal to convert his campaign of destruction into a movement for construction of a new political and social order undermined his legitimacy as a serious leader with a credible roadmap for the future of the region. Because of his devastating attacks against rural and urban communities of the region, Simko alienated a significant segment of the local population and failed to gain any support from the non-tribal population of northwestern Iran. Worse yet, by treating the non-Kurdish communities as existential enemies whose very physical presence constituted a direct threat to the security of a future Kurdish state, he forced them to seek the support and protection of power centers outside the region. With the emergence of a modern standing army in Iran under Reza Khan (later Reza Shah) in autumn 1921, and the victory of the nationalist movement led by Mustafa Kemal (later Atatürk) in Anatolia in summer 1922, Simko ran out of time, support, and the resources necessary to realize and implement his dream. In the absence of any written documents or detailed pronouncements that would shed light on Simko’s ideas and beliefs, the best we can do is to reconstruct the Kurdish chief’s political goals through a critical and non-ideological inquiry of all available historical sources, including reports and analyses by European officials, diplomats, and intelligence officers. In a detective-like inquiry, the investigator is obligated to collect and analyze all available evidence and examine it regardless of its origin and biases. The detective goes where the evidence leads him/her. As for this manuscript, my initial reading of secondary sources led me to the erroneous conclusion that Simko’s revolt was a direct response to the 10 Edmonds, C. J. Kurds Turks and Arabs, (London: Oxford University Press, 1957), p. 305.
1
INTRODUCTION
11
centralizing policies of the Iranian government. A more in-depth search through primary sources, however, revealed that my initial findings were faulty and deficient. Understanding Simko’s revolt requires an in-depth study of the intricate and multi-faceted relationship between Iran, the Ottoman Empire (later the Kemalist Turks), Russia (later the Soviet Union), and Britain before, during, and immediately after the First World War, when Iranian Azerbaijan emerged as a battlefield for contending powers and competing forms of nationalism. Any historical analysis of this critical period also demands a more thorough appreciation of the divisive and acrimonious relationship between the Kurds, Azerbaijani Turks, Assyrians, and Armenians of northwestern Iran in the first two decades of the twentieth century. Without the emergence of nationalist movements among Christian Assyrians and Armenians, who were supported by Russia and western Christian missionaries, a Kurdish nationalist uprising backed by nationalist Turks would not have come to fruition. My approach does not ignore or dismiss the crucial role of the Iranian government and its policies with regard to Simko, especially after the rise of Reza Shah. However, it does emphasize that Simko’s revolt commenced long before the Iranian state adopted a set of nationalistic policies. Additionally, I maintain that Simko’s uprising targeted much more than one center of political power, namely Tehran. In this context, I propose a more holistic approach that highlights the role and impact of local and regional players, including the Ottoman and Kemalist Turks, the British in Iraq, the Armenians and the Assyrians of Urumiyeh, Salmas, and the Hakkari region of southeastern Anatolia, and the Russians, both Czarist and Bolshevik. I believe that such an approach allows us to develop a much less knee-jerk and a far more nuanced understanding of the historical context in which Simko’s separatist movement emerged. Simko lived a tumultuous and chaotic life filled with conflicts and contradictions. He was at once a victim and a victimizer, a shrewd tactician and a wily schemer, a source of inspiration, as well as a target of deep-seated hatred and revulsion, a frontier warlord, and a desperado fighting for survival in a multi-ethnic, multi-linguistic, and multi-religious setting that was undergoing a radical transformation as a result of the rise of competing nationalisms and the eruption of imperial conflicts and wars. For a time, Simko dreamt of creating his own independent state though he lacked both the social base and the actual means to implement it.
12
M. KIA
In the second chapter of the book, I offer a historical framework for the rise of Simko and his separatist movement in the context of the disintegration of the Qajar state, especially after the victory of the constitutional revolution of 1906. My argument in this chapter is that at the dawn of the twentieth century, Iran contained a mosaic of ethnic, linguistic, and religious groups and environments. This mosaic had evolved for centuries through migration, adaptation, and assimilation. Each community possessed its own unique social organization and political leadership. Thus, heterogeneity constituted the most basic characteristic of Iranian society. The Qajar state, which came to power in 1794, failed to integrate these disparate and fragmented communities into one unified system. In this same chapter, I also focus on the defeats the Qajars suffered at the hands of Russia and Britain. These defeats undermined the legitimacy and credibility of the central government. The humiliating treaties Iran was forced to sign with Russia and Britain opened Iranian markets to cheaply made goods from European countries. The flooding of Iranian bazaars with European products destroyed the viability of the country’s native industries, driving a large number of manufacturers into bankruptcy. The anger and alienation of Iran’s traditional middle class ultimately ignited a popular movement that forced the Qajar monarch, Mozaffar al-Din Shah (r. 1896–1907), to grant a constitution in August 1906. Instead of strengthening the position of the central government visà-vis the tribal zones of the country, the new parliament became involved in a power struggle with the reactionary monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah. The conflict between the shah and the parliament resulted in the erosion of state power in the country’s distant provinces. The disappearance of governmental authority enhanced the power and prestige of tribal chiefs and provincial magnates. It also encouraged direct military intervention by Iran’s neighbors, namely the Ottoman Empire, Russia, and Britain. The First World War and the occupation of the country by foreign armies only intensified the disintegration of the Iranian state. I also argue that after Russian and Ottoman forces evacuated Iranian territory, the weak central government in Tehran could not fill the gap left by them. The situation in the tribal zones of the country, especially in Azerbaijan, was chaotic, and the Iranian government was completely incapable of putting things in order. The inability of the Iranian state to impose its authority over the distant provinces of the country allowed tribal chiefs and provincial power centers to organize separatist movements. Sensing the inability of the Iranian government to consolidate
1
INTRODUCTION
13
its authority, Simko organized a strong army and rose in open rebellion. In the absence of any effective resistance by the state, the Kurdish chief quickly imposed his authority over significant parts of western Azerbaijan. In response to the growing disintegration of governmental power and propelled by the nationalist dream of preserving the territorial integrity of their country, elements within the Iranian intelligentsia and the military staged a coup d’etat in February 1921. The victory of this coup signaled the rise of Reza Khan, who would be crowned as Reza Shah Pahlavi in April 1926. Before seizing the throne, Reza Khan ended the political fragmentation of the country by embarking on a campaign to suppress powerful provincial magnates and tribal chiefs, including Simko. The second chapter ends with a brief description of the physical and human geography of western Azerbaijan, the home of the Shakak tribe and the birthplace of Simko. In Chapter 3, I have attempted to present a brief and episodic history of the Shakak, the most powerful Kurdish tribal group of northwestern Iran, which had settled in the rural districts of Somai-Baradoost (Bradost), Chahriq, and Qotur. As a tribe on the Iranian–Ottoman frontier, the Shakaks were expected to serve as the wardens of the frontier defending Iranian territory against Ottoman military incursions. In reality, however, the Shakak frequently switched their loyalty, at times to the Ottoman sultan. In this chapter, I have attempted to discuss Simko’s political career after Iranian authorities in Azerbaijan treacherously killed his brother, Jafar Agha. The death of his brother, followed by the passing of his father in an Ottoman prison, allowed Simko to emerge as one of the leaders of the Shakak. Simko’s rise to the leadership of the Shakak corresponded with the invasion of several rural districts in western Azerbaijan by Ottoman Turks in 1905. Russia countered the Ottoman invasion by occupying parts of northern and eastern Azerbaijan in 1909. Czarist forces extended their control over Azerbaijan in 1911, eventually forcing the Ottoman Turks to evacuate their troops from northwestern Iran in 1912. The growing rivalry between Russia and the Ottoman state over the vital strategic region split the Kurdish tribes into two warring camps, namely those who sided with the Ottoman Turks and those who threw their lot behind Russia. As I describe in this chapter, in 1905 Simko lent his support to the Ottoman Turks and even moved with a group of his followers to the territory east of Lake Van. In 1907, however, he returned to Iran, and, during the semi-civil war between Mohammad Ali Shah and
14
M. KIA
the Iranian constitutionalists, joined the pro-shah forces and slaughtered anti-shah revolutionaries in Khoy and Salmas. This chapter ends with a description of the Russian occupation of Azerbaijan and notes how Simko was recruited by the Czarist authorities to carry out plundering raids in Ottoman territory. In the years immediately prior to the First World War, the Kurdish chief served as a functionary of Russian imperial administration in Azerbaijan, receiving a regular salary from the Russian government. In Chapter 4, I focus on Simko’s activities during the First World War. When the war commenced, Simko was an ally of Czarist Russia. In early January 1915, however, Russia suddenly withdrew its forces from Azerbaijan. Shortly after the Ottomans invaded the province, Simko abandoned his alliance with the Russians and joined the Turks. During the Ottoman occupation of western Azerbaijan, Simko attacked and plundered Assyrian and Armenian communities. He also watched the forced deportations and massacres committed by the Ottoman government against its own Armenian population in eastern Anatolia. As refugees crossed into Iran, Simko and his men lay in ambush at the Qotur Pass and attacked the bruised and battered Armenians. Because of his collaboration with the Ottoman Turks, Russian authorities banished Simko to Tiflis, after they re-occupied Azerbaijan in the winter and spring 1915. The Kurdish chief, however, was allowed to return to western Azerbaijan a year later, this time as an ally and agent of Russian forces in the province. In this chapter, I pay special attention to the period following the victory of the two Russian revolutions in 1917 and the subsequent withdrawal of Russian forces from northwestern Iran. To fill the gap left behind by the retreating Russian army and to organize a line of defense that would resist the impending Ottoman invasion of the region, the British proposed an alliance between armed Armenian and Assyrian bands and Simko (the most powerful Kurdish chief in the region). The proposed British scheme failed to materialize, but the negotiations for the creation of a united front created a direct link between Simko and the Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun. Mar Shimun hoped that, through an alliance with Simko, the Assyrians could defend and protect themselves against a Turkish invasion of northwestern Iran. Simko used this opportunity to propose a meeting with Mar Shimun. After the conclusion of the meeting, Simko and his supporters treacherously murdered Mar Shimun and most of his bodyguards. The murder of Mar Shimun in March 1918 ignited a civil war between the Christian and Muslim communities of
1
INTRODUCTION
15
western Azerbaijan, resulting in the death of thousands of innocent civilians. The principal objective of this chapter is to demonstrate that Simko had developed an embryonic form of Kurdish nationalism characterized by intense anti-Assyrian and anti-Armenian sentiments during the First World War. In Chapter 5 of this book, I discuss the beginning of Simko’s revolt, which commenced in December 1918 and ended in August 1922, when it was suppressed by Iran’s armed forces. I argue that the evacuation of foreign forces from Azerbaijan, and the inability of the Iranian government to re-impose its authority over the province, created a vacuum that Simko tried to fill. I also explain how Simko created a formidable army by recruiting several hundred Ottoman artillery officers. Outside Iran, the fall of the Russian Empire resulted in the creation of three new countries in southern Caucasus, namely Azerbaijan, Armenia, and Georgia, while the defeat and disintegration of the Ottoman Empire in the Great War, allowed the victorious western powers to make provision for a Kurdish state in the treaty of Sèvres in 1920, though they forsook this pledge three years later in the treaty of Lausanne. In this chapter, I also describe how Simko commenced his revolt by attacking and plundering villages in the rural districts of Khoy and Salmas. These attacks caused enormous pain and suffering among the rural population of the region, who demanded the suppression of Simko by state authorities in Tehran and Tabriz. The government responded to Simko’s raids by raising an army and dispatching it to western Azerbaijan. Simko was defeated in a costly military campaign in January–February 1920. Though victorious against Simko, the central government could not impose its authority over Azerbaijan because much of Iran’s meager military resources were concentrated against Mirza Kuchak Khan and his Soviet-backed movement based in the Caspian province of Gilan. Thus, Simko survived his defeat at the hands of government forces, and he managed to re-ignite his revolt after the veteran democrat, Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani, seized power in Tabriz, the provincial capital of Azerbaijan, in April 1920. Khiyabani’s revolt further undermined the authority of the central government in northwestern Iran and allowed Turkic and Kurdish tribal chiefs, including Simko, to act as independent leaders who commanded their own armies and conducted their own foreign policy. The collapse of governmental authority in Azerbaijan, as well as the signing of the Treaty of Sèvres on August 10, 1920, which provided for an
16
M. KIA
independent Armenia and an autonomous Kurdistan, encouraged Simko to send his closest confidant, Sayyid Taha II, to northern Iraq in order to request financial and military support from the British authorities in the country. I use Simko’s revolt and Khiyabani’s seizure of power in Tabriz to explain why the Iranian government embarked on a campaign to reimpose its authority over Azerbaijan by sending a new governor, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, to Tabriz. The new governor suppressed Khiyabani’s revolt, but he failed to defeat Simko. In Chapter 6, I discuss the military campaigns organized by Iranian authorities to suppress Simko’s rebellion, and I try to explain why they failed. As long as the bulk of government forces was concentrated against Mirza Kuchak Khan in Gilan, Tehran could not raise a large military force to quell the Kurdish revolt in western Azerbaijan. It is not surprising, therefore, that the armies dispatched against Simko were generally small, ill-equipped, and poorly commanded. Lacking any knowledge of modern warfare, Iranian officials in Azerbaijan divided their small forces into even smaller units and tried to attack Simko’s position from both north and south. The Kurdish chief understood well the fundamental flaws of this strategy and defeated government troops by assembling larger and better equipped armies. Simko’s victories against government forces in March 1921, October 1921, and December 1921 increased his popularity and enhanced his prestige among Kurdish tribes in both northwestern Iran and eastern Anatolia. Consequently, the size of his army grew as chiefs from neighboring tribal groups rallied to his flag. Despite his growing power and influence, however, Simko failed to convert his tribal force into an institutional foundation for creating an independent state. Tribal armies were internally fragmented entities that lacked political, organizational, and ideological cohesion. They also relied exclusively on raiding and plundering rural and urban communities rather than building a new, effective, and operational political order. One section of this chapter focuses on the creation of a unified and integrated national army by Reza Khan, Iran’s minister of war in autumn 1921. The establishment of a modern army allowed the Iranian government to suppress Simko’s rebellion and restore state authority over western Azerbaijan after it had suffered a series of embarrassing defeats at the hands of the Kurdish chief. The last section of this chapter has been devoted to the diplomatic efforts by the Iranian government to isolate Simko and deny him any military assistance from foreign sources. In this
1
INTRODUCTION
17
context, I have described how Iranian authorities established a close diplomatic relationship with the Turkish nationalists in Ankara as a means of cutting off one of Simko’s main sources of military, financial, and logistical support. Tehran understood that neutralizing Simko required more than a strong and unified army. The campaign to defeat Simko demanded that his main foreign backer, namely the Kemalist Turks, be convinced that Simko and his rebellion posed a threat to the security of both Iran and Turkey. Once Tehran and Ankara had reached an understanding on the need to suppress Simko’s revolt, and the two armies had coordinated their operations against the Kurdish rebel, the Iranian forces could attack Simko’s positions in western Azerbaijan. In Chapter 7, I analyze the campaign organized by the Iranian government to defeat Simko and the significant obstacles and setbacks it faced in imposing its authority in Azerbaijan. The first of these was the revolt staged by Iranian gendarmerie officers stationed at the port of Sharafkhaneh on the northern shores of Lake Urumiyeh in late January 1922. The rebels led by Major Abolqassem Khan Lahuti quickly seized the city of Tabriz and arrested the governor-general, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat. The rebels were joined by Tabriz democrats, who had not forgotten and forgiven the murder of their leader, Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani, by Mokhber al-Saltaneh and the Iranian Cossacks. Panicked by the sudden collapse of governmental authority in the provincial capital of Azerbaijan, the Iranian government ordered all military forces that had been sent against Simko to divert their attention to Tabriz and the suppression of Lahuti’s revolt. Though the uprising was defeated on February 8, 1922, the challenges confronting the central government were far from being over. In late May as the government troops were once again preparing themselves for a final assault against Simko, a government military unit led by the Kurdish leader, Khalu Qorban, suffered a humiliating defeat at the hands of Simko’s forces. The defeat and the death of Khalu Qorban caused a panic among government troops who fled their posts, allowing Simko’s army to penetrate as far east as Maragheh in eastern Azerbaijan. The minister of war Reza Khan responded to the embarrassing defeat suffered by Khalu Qorban by appointing a new commander, General Amanollah Mirza Jahanbani, as the head of all government forces in Azerbaijan. The last section of this chapter is devoted to the introduction of General Jahanbani and how he organized and led a successful campaign against Simko, who was finally defeated in August 1922. The Kurdish chief and a large group of his
18
M. KIA
followers fled into the Turkish territory. The majority of the tribal leaders who had joined Simko surrendered and opened negotiations for a pardon with the central government. In Chapter 8, I have tried to reconstruct Simko’s life and activities after he was defeated by the Iranian government. During the last period of his life, extending from 1922 to 1930, Simko became a true nomad and a rebel without a cause. Travelling from Turkey to Iraq, he tried to re-arm his supporters and re-ignite a tribal uprising inside Iran. He negotiated with the British authorities in northern Iraq and pleaded for military and financial support from them, but they turned down his requests. He then appealed to influential Kurdish chiefs in northern Iraq, especially Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji, the then ruler of Sulaymaniyah, for assistance, but he did not receive any. Distraught by a lack of sympathy and support, Simko left Iraq and allied himself with the Turkish nationalists, who recruited him in their campaign to capture Mosul. After it became clear that the Turks were negotiating with the British to resolve their territorial disputes, and that they planned to apply an iron fist policy to control their own Kurdish population, Simko returned to Iran. But the Iran to which he returned was very different from the Iran from which he had fled in 1922. In place of a feeble and incompetent Qajar state, a new modernizing and centralizing government had emerged under the leadership of Reza Khan, soon to become Reza Shah. In sharp contrast to his Qajar predecessor, the Pahlavi shah had no tolerance for insubordination and rebellious behavior, especially on the part of tribal chiefs. With hopes of regaining his former status as the supreme leader of the Shakak fading fast, Simko rolled the dice and revolted in a loose coalition with several neighboring tribes. This rebellion was quickly put down with a great deal of support from other branches of the Shakak. Even his Kurdish allies defected and abandoned him to his fate. Simko had no alternative but to seek refuge in Iraq. His presence in northern Iraq was viewed by Baghdad as a security threat. Thus, after long and protracted negotiations between the governments of Iraq and Iran, Simko returned to the bosom of a regime that had never forgotten or forgiven his rebellions. He was enticed to return to Iran with a promise that he would assume a position of authority as a district governor of Oshnaviyeh, but this was, from the very beginning a trap, a deadly trap, which would cost him his life. Simko was a frontier warlord who utilized the patron-client system to maintain and expand his power. For two years, extending from 1905 to 1907, he served as the client of the Ottoman Turks who had invaded
1
INTRODUCTION
19
and occupied several rural districts in western Azerbaijan. In 1907, he returned to Iran and adopted the Khan of Maku and through him the Qajar monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah, as his new patron. When the Russians invaded Iran in 1909, Simko switched his loyalty and offered his services to the Czarist authorities in northwestern Iran. Russia used her Kurdish clients, including Simko, to destabilize Ottoman rule by organizing tribal revolts in eastern Anatolia. Regardless of which patron he served, Simko remained a warlord determined to increase his power and influence on the borderlands of three empires. The most comprehensive definition of a warlord has been articulated by Kimberly Marten, who identifies four shared characteristics. First, a leader and his armed men “take advantage of the disintegration of central authority to seize control over relatively small slices of territory.”11 Second, the motivation and actions of this leader and his supporters are rooted in self-interest rather than ideology.12 Third, the authority of the warlord is based on personal charisma and ties of patronage.13 Fourth, “the personalistic rule” of the warlord intensifies “the fragmentation of political and economic arrangements across the country.”14 Within this theoretical framework, I argue that, under a unique set of historical circumstances characterized by the collapse of state power, eruption of inter-ethnic and inter-religious violence, and incessant intervention by neighboring imperial powers, a warlord operating on the frontiers of empires could transition from a brigand and a client of imperial powers to a leader of a separatist movement. As a warlord in the borderlands of empires, Simko could only maintain his power by playing the role of a tightrope walker. He had no other alternative but to adjust himself to the shift in balance of power in the region. A variety of statements and letters attributed to Simko clearly demonstrate that he changed the tone and content of his statements in accordance with the nationality and political orientation of the individual he was communicating with. Thus, when he met an American missionary
11 Douglas Carr, “Roman Warlords and the Early Medieval World,” p. 2, in H. Christie and M. Kasten (ed.) Current Approaches to People Places and Things in the Early Medieval Period; Proceedings of the 12th Annual Early Medieval Archaeology Student Symposium, (Oxford: British Archaeological Reports), pp. 83–94. See also, Kimberly Marten, “Warlordism in Comparative Perspective,” International Security, Vol. 31, No. 3 (Winter, 2006/2007), p. 48. 12 Ibid. 13 Ibid. 14 Ibid.
20
M. KIA
in 1920, the Kurdish chief appealed to humanitarian impulses of his audience and emphasized the plight and suffering of his people, while at the same time adopting an anti-Russian, anti-Turkish, and anti-Iranian posture: Here I am living at the no one about us but Persians. How can my need help and we look
top of my mountain, my people eating grass….and the false Russians, the false Turks and the false voice reach Paris? You must carry my appeal. We especially to America.15
Five years later, when he was desperate to save his neck by fleeing Turkish territory, Simko used a pro-Iran disguise and pleaded to Iranian authorities to allow him to return to Iran. In a letter to the governorgeneral of Azerbaijan, the previously anti-Iranian rebel posed as an Iranian patriot determined to demonstrate his loyalty and fidelity to the shah and his motherland, Iran: My companions and I are Iranians, and our race is also Iranian, but, because of traitorous paid agents, who are known to everyone, we were forced to leave our homeland and take residence in a foreign country. I want to prove that I have never intended to betray, and I have always been mindful of the independence and dignity of my homeland.16
A short time after Iranian authorities allowed him to return to his birthplace, Chahriq, Simko discarded his expressions of devotion to Iran and the Iranian monarch and began to organize a new anti-government revolt for which he sought British assistance. According to a British intelligence report, Simko was cherishing the dream of establishing an autonomous Kurdish state with support from Britain, “the only power,” according to the Kurdish chief, which could “save the Kurdish race from being crushed to death between the Persian and the Turk.”17
15 H. Mackensen, “A Remarkable Rescue,” The Kurdistan Missionary, June 1920, as quoted in Susan Meiselas, Kurdistan In the Shadow of History, (New York: Random House, 1997), p. 101. 16 Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Vakavi-ye Avamel-e Moasser dar Shuresh-e Dovvom-e Simko (Mehr 1305),” Motaleat-e Tarikhi-ye Jang, Vol. 6, No. 3, 1401 (Solar) (2021), pp. 35–46, p. 38. 17 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, July 3, 1925 [E 4280/82/34], No. 361, Intelligence Summary No. 18, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Edited by R. M. Burrell, 14 Volumes, Volume 7, (London: Archive Editions, 1997), p. 303.
1
INTRODUCTION
21
Simko began his career as a frontier brigand in a geographical region characterized by the growing erosion of state power and the mounting polarization among its ethnic and religious communities. As a result of the impotency of Iran’s central government and the interventionist policies of Russia and the Ottoman Empire, western Azerbaijan became increasingly politicized and militarized, with each community being forced to choose an imperial patron to protect itself against its own neighbors. Assyrian and Armenian communities opted for Russian patronage, while some of the Kurdish tribes sided with the Ottoman Turks. The commencement of the First World War converted Simko from a run-of-the-mill brigand into a political actor fighting for his tribe’s survival. When neighboring empires disappeared and inter-ethnic and inter-religious violence was settled, the former brigand and client of imperial powers transitioned into the leader of a campaign that aimed at creating a Kurdish state in northwestern Iran. After the Iranian army defeated him in August 1922, Simko sought the patronage and protection of British authorities in northern Iraq. When his pleas for support and protection were rejected by the British, he threw himself at the mercy of nationalist Turks and served them for a time as a loyal client in their fight against the British. In 1925, when he realized that the Kemalist Turks were determined to crush any form of Kurdish autonomy or independence in Anatolia, he pleaded with Iranian authorities to allow him to return to his homeland, pledging that his sole purpose was to demonstrate that he was not a traitor, but a loyal client of his majesty, the shah. Survival in the borderlands of empires never allowed Simko to transcend the imperial framework and the patron-client system in which he had operated for much of his life. His attempts at creating a Kurdish autonomous or independent enclave were condemned to failure because he always relied on the support of a regional power to sustain his campaign. Reliance on a patron simply meant that he was always being manipulated as a tool so that his patron could gain the upper hand in a larger power play in the region. This book is divided into nine chapters. Aside from the first chapter (Introduction), the second chapter, which focuses on the decline of the Qajar state and the growing intervention of foreign powers in the internal affairs of Iran, and the last chapter (Conclusion), the remaining six chapters follow a chronological order tracing the development of Simko from a frontier brigand to an ally and client of the Ottoman state and Russia, eventually emerging as the leader of a separatist movement at a historical juncture characterized by the collapse of the Qajar state, Czarist Russia,
22
M. KIA
and the Ottoman Empire. The present narrative makes no pretense of offering bold new interpretations. It is designed as an introduction to the study of the relationship between tribalism and proto-nationalism in the borderlands of early twentieth-century Iran. In the process, this book hopes to provide the reader, who does not have any prior knowledge or expertise on the subject, with an overview of the fascinating political history of northwestern Iran and the role of a prominent Kurdish tribal leader in shaping that history before, during, and immediately after the First World War (Map 1.1).
Map 1.1
Iran and the location of West Azerbaijan Province
CHAPTER 2
Historical Setting: Iran on the Brink of Collapse
Far from being a unified nation, Iran entered the twentieth century a fragmented political entity comprising a mosaic of ethnic, linguistic, and religious communities. Each region of the country possessed its own unique characteristics, which distinguished it from others in geography, climate, ethnic and linguistic composition, social organization, religion, and local customs. Thus, heterogeneity constituted the most fundamental characteristic of the country. The Qajar dynasty, which was established in 1794, lacked the two pillars of a modern state, namely a professional standing army and an efficient bureaucracy to impose its authority. In the absence of a strong centralized government, the country was divided into numerous semi-autonomous regions in which local notables, provincial magnates, and tribal chiefs reigned as despotic potentates with a high degree of independence within the regions they controlled. In theory, the shah stood at the top of the power pyramid and ruled as an absolute monarch. In reality, however, the Qajar monarchs enjoyed no effective power outside of their capital, Tehran. To finance the state and its various departments, they had to rely on tribal chiefs, influential landowners, and provincial power brokers to collect taxes. The age-old Iranian theory of the divine right of kings enhanced the importance and centrality of monarchy. According to this theory, the institution of monarchy had been created by God, and the monarch functioned as God’s representative on earth. As the representative of God on earth, © The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_2
23
24
M. KIA
the shah was obligated to preserve the peace, security, and stability of the empire he ruled. Administering justice constituted the most important duty of a sovereign. The failure to protect his subjects from injustice and foreign invasion could justify the overthrow of the government. Despite his absolute power, the shah could not violate the precepts of the Islamic law or the sharia (Persian: shariat ); the opinion of the Muslim community, expressed through the Shi’i ulama, had a strong influence on his decisions and actions. In the Shi’i Muslim-populated areas of Iran, the spiritual domain belonged to the Shi⊂i religious hierarchy, who acted as the sole interpreters and guardians of Islamic heritage and identity. They preached that God had entrusted his flock (i.e., the people) to the shah and the ruler was, therefore, responsible for the care and protection of the Shi⊂i community. In the predominantly Sunni Muslim-populated regions of the country, especially in the Kurdish-populated areas of northwestern and western Iran, tribal chiefs, who owned villages and vast landed estates, dominated political and pastoral life, while the sheikhs and sayyids of various Sufi orders, many of whom were also large landowners, constituted the cultural elite of the community. For most of its existence, the Qajar state lacked sufficient means to impose its authority. In a vast country such as Iran, which did not have modern roads and railroads, and where regions were separated by rugged mountains, arid plains, lush forests, and vast deserts, the ruling elite deployed divide-and-rule tactics to neutralize any challenge to its rule. As such, when a tribal chief or a provincial magnate revolted against the authority of the central government, the shah appealed to regional power centers in close proximity to the rebellious subject to suppress the mutiny. After all, the drive to undermine the fragile balance of power in a province posed a direct threat, not only to the power and prestige of the central government, but also to the authority and autonomy of the surrounding provincial magnates.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
25
Qajar Dynasty and European Imperialism The Qajars tried to consolidate their authority over the provinces of their empire by appointing loyal tribal chiefs, who were “entrusted with duties of tax collection and of providing military forces for the government.”1 Any hope of centralizing power was significantly undermined, however, after Czarist Russia humiliated the Qajars first in 1813 and again in 1828. As a result of the devastating defeats it suffered, Iran was forced to sign the humiliating treaties of Golestan (1813) and Turkmenchay (1828), ceding Georgia, Armenia, Shirvan, and Erran (the present-day Republic of Azerbaijan) to Russia and pay a heavy war indemnity. The treaty of Turkmenchay also granted extraterritorial privileges to Czarist Russia in Iran. Following the model set by Russia, “fifteen other countries, including the United States, obtained capitulation rights” in Iran “between 1855 and 1900.”2 The legitimacy of the Iranian state was further damaged when the British landed troops in southern Iran and forced the Qajar monarchy to renounce its claims to Afghanistan. In the Treaty of Paris, signed in 1857, the British, who were anxious to protect their most precious colony, India, from a future military attack from Russia, forced Iran to renounce its claims to Afghanistan, especially the city of Herat. The defeats at the hands of Russia and Britain, and the loss of vast territories, caused a sharp decrease in the revenue coming into the central government in Tehran. Further pressure from Russia and Britain forced the Qajars to remove existing tariffs and taxes and open the Iranian market to cheaply made goods from Europe. This policy resulted in a sharp increase in the volume of imported consumer products from Russia, England, and other European countries. The flooding of Iranian bazaars with factory-made products from Europe and the inability of the native manufacturers to compete with European goods intensified antigovernment sentiments among the country’s traditional middle classes centered in the bazaar. During the second half of the nineteenth century, a growing number of Iranian artisans and handicraftsmen lost their small
1 Farhad Kazemi, “The Military and Politics in Iran: The Uneasy Symbiosis,” in Towards A Modern Iran: Studies in Thought, Politics and Society, Eli Kedourie and Sylvia G. Haim (eds.) (London: Frank Cass, 1980), p. 218. 2 Yeselson, Abraham. United States-Persian Diplomatic Relations, 1883–1921, (New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 1956), p. 16.
26
M. KIA
businesses and fell into the ranks of a newly emerging working class that was forced to search for jobs in Russia’s industrial centers such as Baku. Beginning in the 1870s, Russia and Britain embarked on a policy of obtaining political and commercial concessions from the Qajar state. In 1879, Russia organized the Cossack Division as an elite cavalry force for the Qajar monarch, Nasser al-Din Shah (r. 1848–1896). Russian enterprises also established financial and economic monopolies in Iran. These included Caspian fisheries and telegraph lines, as well as road and railroad construction (especially in Azerbaijan), and the Discount and Loan Bank (Bank-e Esteqrazi-ye Russ ). Through this bank, the Russian government provided loans to Qajar shahs and members of the Iranian aristocracy, thus expanding its influence over the country’s ruling elite. Meanwhile, in 1888, the British gained the right to open the Karun River, the only navigable river in Iran, to steam navigation and international trade. A year later, they established the Imperial Bank of Persia (Bank-e Shahanshai-ye Iran) with a monopoly over issuing currency. In 1890, a British national was granted a monopoly for the sale and distribution of all tobacco in Iran, while in 1901, a concession was granted to a British syndicate, headed by William Knox d’Arcy, to explore for oil and produce petroleum anywhere in Iran except the country’s northern provinces. Thus, the rapid decline of the Qajar state and its dependency on Russia and Britain, which had already commenced in the first half of the nineteenth century, accelerated during the long reign of Nasser al-Din Shah and the much shorter reign of his successor, Mozaffar al-Din Shah (r. 1896–1907). As the British representative in Tehran wrote in 1895: The governorships of provinces and other high posts are systematically sold by the Shah to the highest bidder, and sold for short periods, so that the country is plundered and the administration disorganized. The Central Government is weak, and is defied not only by the provincial authorities, but by the Mullas, or priesthood, whose power has become greater than it should be. The finances are in disorder, and during the last three years there has been an annual deficit of £50,000. Heavy arrears of pay are due to the troops and the civil establishment. The army is a worthless rabble, without serviceable arms or drill, or the semblance of discipline. There are no trustworthy courts of justice. There are practically no roads, so that the expansion of trade is greatly hampered; finally, the country is being flooded with copper money, which is causing much loss and suffering to the poorer classes and is giving rise to bread riots. Among the principal causes of this state of affairs are the greed and timidity of the Shah. It is
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
27
his want of firmness and courage that has led to the regrettable increase in the power of priesthood, for whom the Persians have little love, and his perpetual demands for money can only be met by starving the public departments.3
Anglo-Russian Rivalry and the Constitutional Revolution For much of the nineteenth century, as the country descended into a long period of turmoil and decline, the rivalry between Russia to the north and Britain to the south in India continued unabated. By 1903, Russia’s political and economic position in Iran had attained such domination that the Russian consul general in Tabriz viewed Azerbaijan “as an offshoot of the Caucasus and almost a Russian province,”4 while another high Czarist official could state brazenly that “our task is to make Persia an obedient and useful but sufficiently strong tool in our hands and to retain for our own economic interest a large Persian market.”5 The Russo-Japanese War (1904–1905), which ended with the humiliating defeat of Russia, followed by the eruption of the Russian revolution of 1905, undermined, albeit temporarily, the dominant position of Russia inside Iran. The disappearance of Russia from the Iranian theater emboldened the Ottoman Empire, Iran’s neighbor to the west. The Ottomans invaded and occupied several Kurdish-populated rural districts in western Azerbaijan in late 1905. They pressured the Kurdish tribes of northwestern Iran to declare their allegiance to the Ottoman sultan as the caliph or the religious and spiritual head of all Sunni Muslims. The Shakak, a Sunni Kurdish tribe on the Iranian-Ottoman frontier and their chiefs, including Ismail Agha, also known as Simko, initially joined the Ottoman Turks. The temporary withdrawal of Russia from Iran’s internal affairs, the economic crisis caused by events in Russia, and the impotence of the Qajar dynasty in the face of the political and economic challenges confronting 3 FO 60, No. Confidential 6704, December 1895, Memorandum by M. Durand on the Situation in Persia, British Public Record Office, Kew. 4 Wratislaw, A. C., A Consul in the East, (Edinburgh: William Blackwood and Sons, 1924), p. 184. 5 Eudin, Xenia Joukoff and Robert C. North. Soviet Russia and the East 1920–1927 A Documentary Survey, (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1957), p. 7.
28
M. KIA
Iranian society provided a golden opportunity for a coalition of urban classes in Tehran to demand the establishment of a constitutional form of government. The Iranian constitutional revolution, which erupted in December 1905 and culminated with the granting of a constitution and a parliamentary system of government in August 1906, was an urban movement based on the participation of the Shi’i clergy, traditional middle classes centered in the bazaar, and western-educated notables and intellectuals. The movement represented the first systematic attempt in the history of Iran to reject absolutist monarchy and replace it with a new political system based on a representative government. The newly established parliamentary system as embodied by the National Consultative Assembly (Majlis-e Showra-ye Melli) imposed significant limitations on the powers of the shah. It, however, failed to replace the traditional institutions of the country with a new political and legal structure that could lay the foundation for a unified and integrated nation-state. One of the fundamental weaknesses of the new political system was the complete absence of cooperation between the executive branch as represented by the shah and the legislative branch as personified by the Majlis. Another critical drawback was the total lack of a financial structure, including a unified tax system, to generate sufficient revenue for the central government to introduce badly needed reforms. While the newly elected parliament attempted to consolidate its position, Russia and Britain were busy reformulating their relationship regarding Iran, Afghanistan, and Central Asia. On August 31, 1907, the two powers signed the Anglo-Russian Convention in Saint Petersburg. This secret agreement aimed to remove Iran, Afghanistan, and Tibet as sources of discord between the two powers. To end their centuryold rivalry, Britain and Russia divided Iran into spheres of influence, a Russian zone in the north, a British zone in the south, and a neutral zone covering the rest of the country and presumably left to be ruled by the Iranian government. In negotiating the Saint Petersburg Convention, Russia and Britain maintained total secrecy and refused even to share the content of their agreement with the Iranian government, thus effectively treating Iran as their protectorate or a country that lacked the legal right to have any say in its own political future. It is not surprising, therefore, that the Anglo-Russian Agreement of 1907 was widely interpreted
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
29
as the first step toward the eventual partition of Iran by the two European powers.6 Western Azerbaijan, the home of Simko and the Shakak Kurds, fell within the Russian sphere of influence as defined by the Saint Petersburg Convention. Meanwhile, the Iranian parliament’s increasingly hostile and uncooperative attitude toward the shah, as well as an assassination attempt on his life, pushed the reigning monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah (r. 1907–1909), a highly religious, superstitious, and reactionary man, who already feared and despised the Majlis, and the press, into the arms of his Russian military advisers and ultra conservative members of the ulama. The growing unity among these anti-democratic forces allowed the shah to utilize the increasing chaos and anarchy in the provinces, as well as the naked attacks on his power by the parliament, to rally and mobilize his base in support of a military coup that destroyed the first Iranian parliament on June 23, 1908. In reaction to the suppression of the parliament, Tabriz, the provincial capital of Azerbaijan, rose in rebellion against the authority of the shah. Constitutionalist forces led by charismatic figures such as Sattar Khan and Baqer Khan, who hailed from the lower social strata, armed the population and seized control of the city. To suppress the rebellion in Tabriz, Mohammad Ali Shah raised an army and dispatched it to Azerbaijan. He also called on the tribal chiefs of Azerbaijan to rally to his flag and to attack constitutionalist forces wherever they found them. Among the Kurdish leaders who threw their support behind the Qajar monarch was one of the chiefs of the Shakak, Simko, who targeted constitutionalist forces in Khoy and Salmas. At the same time, he raided and plundered Assyrian, Armenian, and Shi’i Azerbaijani villages. In April 1909, the raging battle between the shah’s supporters and the constitutionalists in northwestern Iran provided a convenient excuse for the Russian forces to invade Azerbaijan in the name of opening the roads to food supplies and restoring law and order in the province. Russian military presence in Azerbaijan gradually expanded from Tabriz to other major urban centers of the province, eventually forcing the Ottoman troops, who had occupied several rural districts in western Azerbaijan since 1905, to withdraw in late 1912.
6 Toynbee, Arnold J. Survey of International Affairs 1925, Volume I, The Islamic World Since the Peace Settlement, (London: Oxford University Press, 1927), p. 534.
30
M. KIA
Back in Tehran, the parliament was restored in July 1909, after chiefs of the Bakhtiyari tribe seized Isfahan and pro-constitution forces captured Rasht. The two constitutionalist armies from the south and the north marched to Tehran and forced the reigning Mohammad Ali Shah to abdicate by seeking refuge at the Russian embassy at Zargandeh north of Tehran. On the evening of 17 July, a day after the Qajar monarch had abdicated, an extraordinary grand council composed of notables, prominent members of the clergy, and some of the former deputies of the first Majlis proclaimed Mohammad Ali Shah’s second son, Sultan Ahmad Mirza, the shah.7 Because the new monarch was only 12 years old, the constitutionalists appointed the head of the Qajar tribe as the Regent. Once again, however, the Majlis failed to institutionalize its authority by establishing a strong and stable government capable of defending the country and introducing badly needed reforms. In November 1911, Russia and Britain issued an ultimatum to the Iranian government demanding the expulsion of Morgan Shuster, the American financial adviser, who had been hired to reform the Iranian financial system. Then, on 21 December, Russian troops in Tabriz launched attacks against constitutionalists in the city. Five days later, Russian army reinforcements from south Caucasus attacked Tabriz and crushed the constitutionalist forces in the city. By 27 December, Tabriz was under full Russian military control. Four days later, on December 31, 1911 (corresponding to 10th of Moharram in the Islamic calendar when Shi’i Muslims mourn the death of Hussein, the grandson of Muhammad, the prophet of Islam and their third imam), a group of constitutionalist leaders and activists, including the prominent Shi’i religious leader, Seqat al-Islam Tabrizi, were executed in Tabriz by Russian occupation forces. Under pressure from Czarist Russia, the second Majlis was closed down and, with the exception of a short and aborted session in 1914, was not re-opened until 1921.
Iran During First World War In spite of declaring its neutrality, Iran was invaded by Russian, Ottoman, and British troops during the First World War. In addition, German spies began to operate in various parts of the country, especially in the south among tribal groups. Russia and Russians “excited almost universal 7 Barclay to Grey, Tehran, February 10, 1910, Persia Annual Report, 1909, Confidential 9642, [8669], No. 19., in Iran Political Diaries. Volume 4, p. 403.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
31
hatred” among Iranians, and this feeling was extended to Britain as the ally of Russia and its “partner in the Anglo-Russian Convention of 1907,” which had partitioned Iran into spheres of influence.8 The Ottoman Empire was also feared for its expansionist designs in northwestern and western Iran, but at the same time, the Ottoman Pan-Islamic propaganda commanded a certain amount of sympathy among Muslim Iranians.9 The invasion of Iran by foreign forces resulted in famine and starvation throughout the country, especially in its western and northwestern provinces. During “the last months of 1914, and in 1915 and 1916,” famine prevailed, and deadly diseases spread. Compounding matters, the whole area west of Lake Urumiyeh was stripped “bare of supplies and of flocks by the Russians or the Turks.”10 Widespread famine introduced diseases in its wake; “hundreds of thousands fell victim to starvation, typhus, cholera,” and influenza.11 Typhus and influenza “each in turn brought destruction to the country.”12 In Urumiyeh alone, an epidemic of typhoid killed four thousand people.13 Most towns and villages located in western Azerbaijan and Kurdistan were bombarded and laid waste by the Russians and Ottoman Turks. Nearly all homes were gutted or destroyed. Whether kept for agricultural use or for breeding purposes, livestock were killed and consumed. As disease and famine conditions spread throughout the country, the Qajar monarch, Ahmad Shah (r. 1909–1925), seized it as an opportunity to enrich himself by hoarding “the country’s entire grain crop” and selling it “to his starving subjects at colossal prices.”14 While in the capital, Tehran, many of his subjects
8 British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 15, Supplement to Eastern Affairs Volumes, 1918–1939. Edited by Robin Bidwell, (University Publications of America, 1989), p. 21. 9 Ibid. 10 Wilson, Arnold T. Loyalties Mesopotamia, Volume II 1917–1920 A Personal and
Historical Record, (London: Oxford University Press, 1936), p. 31. 11 Abraham Yeselson, United States-Persian Diplomatic Relations, 1883–1921, p. 137. 12 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, Persia. Annual Report, 1922, Confidential
(12221), [E 8057/8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 359. 13 Coan, Frederick G. Yesterdays in Persia and Kurdistan, (Claremont: Saunders Studio Press, 1939), p. 276. 14 Time Magazine, September 8, 1941, p. 18.
32
M. KIA
died from starvation every day, the shah insisted on receiving special payments from the government before he could release the grain he was hoarding. It is not surprising, therefore, that his subjects bestowed upon the young monarch the title of Ahmad the Grocery Boy or Ahmad All¯ af in Persian.15 Devastation and depopulation hit the Kurdish-populated regions of Iran especially hard, in particular those on the Ottoman-Iranian frontier, which were ravaged and ransacked by both Russian and Ottoman troops. The flocks of Kurdish tribal groups in western and northwestern Iran were so “depleted by the depredations of the Russians that they had nothing to barter for food, which was scarce and dear.”16 A once powerful Kurdish tribe, the Mamash, which at one time “boasted of 2,000 horsemen,” could “scarcely muster 200 infantry” after the end of the war.17 Because tribal groups possessed large quantities of arms and horses, they were frequently treated as a military threat by foreign armies. On many occasions, Russian troops killed “males able to bear arms” and left “women and children, old men and dogs” to starve “amidst the smoking ruins of their homes.”18 The destruction of the tribal and rural communities by opposing foreign forces brought the trade of the country to “a standstill.”19 Further, the central government in Tehran was unable “to collect internal taxes.”20 In the absence of any local or governmental supervision, the country’s intricate system of irrigation also broke down, causing trees and vineyards to die. In Urumiyeh, landlords and peasants were reduced to poverty, and many of them resorted to begging on the streets.21 As the Iranian memorandum to the Paris Conference stated:
15 Malekzadeh, Mehdi. Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Mashrutiyat-e Iran, (Tehran: Elmi Press, 1980), 7 Volumes, Volume 7, pp. 1622–1623. See also, Time Magazine, September 8, 1941, p. 18. 16 Arnold T. Wilson, Loyalties Mesopotamia Volume II 1917–1920, p. 84. 17 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920,
p. 227. 18 Arnold T. Wilson, Loyalties Mesopotamia Volume II 1917–1920, p. 32. 19 Millspaugh, A. C. The American Task in Persia, (New York & London: The Century
Co., 1925), p. 114. 20 Ibid. 21 Frederick G. Coan, Yesterdays in Persia and Kurdistan, p. 280.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
33
La Perse, bien que pays neutre, a souffert par la guerre des pertes plus sensibles que certains belligérants. Sa position spéciale de pays envahi par les armées belligérantes, ses provinces dévastées, sa population décimée, lui donnent équitablement droit, par analogie, aux réparations et dédommagemments dus aux pays belligérants……..Les provincesde Hamadan, Kermanshah, Kurdistan et Azerbaidjan formant les régions les plus fertiles et les plus riches de La Perse, devinrent alors des champs de batailles entre les Russes et les Turcs, qui y commirent pillages, incendies, massacres…et viols. Des villes et des villages furent bombardés; des forêts et des vergers détruits, pour faciliter les opérations militaires et fournir du combustible….Une des plus riches villes d’Azerbaidjan Ourmia [Urumiyeh], a été pillée et incendiée à plusieurs reprises.22 (Persia, although a neutral country, suffered greater losses from the war than some belligerents. Her special position as a country invaded by belligerent armies, her devastated provinces, her decimated population, give it an equitable right, by analogy, to reparations and compensation due to belligerent countries. The provinces of Hamadan, Kermanshah, Kurdistan and Azerbaijan, forming the most fertile and richest regions of Persia, then became battlefields between the Russians and the Turks, who committed looting, burning, massacres…and rapes. Towns and villages were bombed; forts and orchards destroyed to facilitate military operations and provide fuel…..One of Azerbaijan’s richest cities, Urumiyeh, was looted and burned several times)
Thus, a country that had not been a belligerent during the First World War suffered more from the war than any other non-belligerent country, its territory having been invaded and occupied by both Axis and Allied powers.23 As one author wrote during the war, Iran “had been exposed to violations and sufferings not endured by any other neutral country.”24 In the earlier stages of the war, the Ottoman Turks, and then the Russians,
22 Droit aux Réparations. Copie extraite du Mémorandum préparé la Paix (Communicated by Persian Minister for Foreign Affairs, December 138 [157766], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and 1918–1939, Volume 16, pp. 97–98.
Conférence de la 3, 1919.), Doc. Papers from the the Middle East,
23 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, Persia Annual Report, 1922, Confidential (12221), [E 8057/8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 359. 24 Nicolson, Harold, Curzon: The Last Phase 1919–1925: A Study in Post-War Diplomacy, (New York: Harcourt, Brace and Company, 1939), p. 129.
34
M. KIA
had been mainly responsible for converting Iranian territory into a devastated war zone. After the withdrawal of Russian forces in 1917, the British were left in occupation of parts of Iran, and upon them fell the full force of Iranian resentment and hatred. By the time Britain and the Ottoman Empire signed the Armistice of Mudros on October 30, 1918, marking the end of the First World War in the Middle East, nearly two million Iranians had perished from starvation and disease. The end of the First World War and the departure of foreign troops from Iranian territory left a vacuum that the feeble and inept Qajar state could not fill. The Qajar monarchy lacked the military and administrative muscle to impose its authority and to restore law and order to the devastated country. Three distinct military units existed in Iran at the time: the Russian-officered Cossack Division; the Swedish-officered gendarmerie under the supervision of the Iranian government; and the Britishorganized—and British paid—South Persia Rifles.25 The South Persia Rifles were controlled by British officers and for the most part confined to the two provinces of Fars and Kerman, while the Gendarmerie, organized with the support of Swedish officers, were untrained for anything but simple police duties.26 The Cossack Brigade was “slightly better drilled,” but the discipline of its units was at best untrustworthy, and the attitude of their Russian officers was unpredictable.27 The absence of a unified standing army caused the spread of banditry, anarchy, chaos, and the general absence of security and order in the provinces. This made the government appear weak, impotent, and irrelevant to the life of ordinary people, especially outside the capital. It is not surprising, therefore, that immediately after the end of the First World War, Iran witnessed the eruption of several movements challenging the authority of the central government. Beginning in 1915 and extending all the way to autumn 1921, in the Caspian province of Gilan, the nationalist, anti-Russian and anti-British
25 British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 15, p. 34. 26 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, June 18, 1920, Doc 253, [204984], No. 394., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 182. 27 Ibid.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
35
leader, Mirza Kuchak Khan (1880–1921) organized an anti-government movement. Mirza Kuchak Khan denounced the central government in Tehran as undemocratic, corrupt, inept, and a puppet of British imperialism. He advocated implementation of major socio-economic reforms that called for improvement in the living conditions of the peasant cultivators. On May 18, 1920, a Soviet force landed at the port of Anzali on the southern shore of the Caspian and hastily advanced to the city of Rasht, the capital of the province of Gilan. On June 5, 1920, Mirza Kuchak Khan, the leader of the Jangal movement, declared the establishment of the Soviet Republic of Gilan in collaboration with the Communist Party of Iran, also known as Hezb-e Adalat or Justice Party.28 The Sovietbacked socialist republic based in Gilan lasted until October 1921 when government forces entered Rasht. Additionally, in April 1920, the veteran democrat and former Majlis deputy, Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani (1880–1920), seized the city of Tabriz, the capital of Azerbaijan, which he re-named Azadistan (Land of Liberty). Khiyabani remained the master of Tabriz until mid-September 1920, when he was overthrown and killed by the Iranian Cossack Division. Like Mirza Kuchak Khan in Gilan, Khiyabani denounced the central government in Tehran as weak, corrupt, and subservient to foreign powers. Finally, starting in late 1918, one of the chiefs of the Shakak tribe in western Azerbaijan, Ismail Agha, known by his nickname Simko (1887–1930), raised the flag of rebellion and embarked on a campaign to establish an independent Kurdish state. By spring 1922, Simko enjoyed the support of numerous Kurdish tribal chiefs in both Iran and eastern Anatolia. In sharp contrast to the earlier-mentioned movements based in Gilan and Tabriz, Simko’s uprising enjoyed a tribal base, and it did not express any particular opposition to the pro-British policies of the ruling establishment in Tehran. In fact, in sharp contrast to Kuchak Khan in Gilan and Khiyabani in Tabriz, Simko enjoyed a cordial relationship with British authorities in Iraq through the agency of his brother-in-law and close confidant, Sayyid Taha II of Nehri, and he sought their support for his efforts to establish an independent state in northwestern Iran. Simko’s movement was also unique in that it made no claim to stand for Iranian nationalist aspirations of independence from foreign powers and a true 28 For the origins and history of the Soviet Socialist Republic of Gilan, see Cosroe Chaqueri, The Soviet Socialist Republic of Iran, 1920–1921, (Pittsburgh: University of Pittsburgh Press, 1995).
36
M. KIA
democratic system of government. Instead, Simko called for separation of the Kurdish-populated regions of northwestern Iran as the prerequisite for the creation of an independent Kurdistan. The revolts in Gilan, Azerbaijan, and among the Kurds of northwestern Iran undermined the authority and legitimacy of the Qajar state and the archaic ruling class in Tehran.29 While separatist movements smoldered in northern and northwestern regions of the country, the Shahseven tribes raided and looted urban and rural communities in eastern Azerbaijan; “unrest and lawlessness prevailed among the Turkmen tribes” of northern Khorasan; in the west and northwest the Kurdish tribes were challenging the authority of the central government; and “any success by Simko might have led them to throw in their lot” with that Kurdish chief, “with the likely result of a general revolt and a separatist movement” in Iranian Kurdistan.30 Also in the west, southwest, and the south, the weakness of the central government left the Lurs, the Bakhtiyari (i.e., Lur-e Bozorg), the Qashqai, the Khamseh tribe of Fars, the Arab ruler of Mohammareh (i.e., Khoramshahr), Sheikh Khazal, and all the tribal groups in the hinterland of the Persian Gulf ports in a state of practical independence.31 This “state of affairs was seriously aggravated by an intense Bolshevik propaganda…aiming at the destruction of British influence” in Iran and “the acquisition of a dominant position” for the Soviet Union “through a process of disintegration.“32
29 Between April and early October 1921, a third uprising erupted in the northeastern province of Khorasan under the leadership of the nationalist gendarmerie officer, Colonel Mohammad Taqi Khan Pessyan (1892–1921). The challenge to the authority of the central government in Tehran came after Pessyan’s nemesis, the former governor of Khorasan, Qavam al-Saltaneh, was appointed prime minister. To suppress Colonel Pessyan’s uprising, the central government in Tehran appealed to the Kurdish tribes of northern Khorasan to stage a rebellion. In a confrontation between the pro-government Kurdish tribal forces and Pessyan’s detachment, the colonel was shot and killed. The death of Pessyan ended the rebellion and restored the central government’s authority in northeastern Iran. 30 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, May 21, 1923, Doc. 231 [E 6353/77/34] No. 221., in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 340. 31 Ibid. 32 Ibid.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
37
Reza Shah Pahlavi Desperate for restoration of governmental authority, introduction of fundamental reforms, and rejuvenation of Iran’s armed forces, the prime minister, Vosuq al-Dowleh, negotiated a highly unpopular agreement with the British government on August 9, 1919. Though the agreement reiterated the British respect for the independence and territorial integrity of Iran, it also undertook to supply the Iranian government with expert advisers, who would be invested with sufficient power to introduce modern administrative reforms. Additionally, the agreement made a commitment to dispatch a British military mission, which would assist the Iranian government with the creation of a uniform army supplied by modern military equipment and munitions.33 The British government also pledged to provide the Iranian government with a substantial loan and to cooperate with Iran in constructing railways and improving the country’s road communications. The security for the British loan was to be provided by the revenues generated by Iranian customs or other sources of income at the disposal of the Iranian government. Finally, the two governments agreed to the creation of a joint committee of experts for the purpose of examining and reorganizing Iran’s customs tariff system. If ratified by the Majlis, the Anglo-Persian Agreement would have granted the British government a dominant financial and military position in Iran and effectively converted the country into a de facto British protectorate. Several writers, including the historian, Hossein Makki, the author of the multi-volume, Tarikh-e Bist Sale-ye Iran, claimed that in sharp contrast to his prime minister, the reigning monarch, Ahmad Shah (r. 1909–1925), opposed the Anglo-Persian Agreement of August 1919, refusing to endorse it when he visited London several months later. This claim was mere fiction. The available documents clearly demonstrate that Ahmad Shah had accepted a monthly payment of £2,500 from the British in return for lending his support to Vosuq al-Dowleh.34 On August 16, 33 British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 15, p. 33. 34 See, Memorandum on the Persian Question, Foreign Office, June 14, 1920, No. 464, [2044900/150/34], in Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , Edited by Butler, Rohan, J. P. T. Bury, M. E. Lambert, (London: Her Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1963), p. 518.
38
M. KIA
1919, a week after the agreement had been signed, Ahmad Shah left Iran for Europe. As his devastated country confronted the aftermath of four years of war, famine, disease, and foreign occupation, Ahmad Shah having entered into a bribery scheme with the British government chose to spend the next ten months vacationing, gambling, and entertaining himself in Italy, Switzerland, France, and England. The shah eventually reneged on his promise to the British and withdrew his support for his prime minister, furious not so much over the agreement, but rather because Vosuq al-Dowleh had delayed reimbursing him for his exuberant lifestyle in Europe’s gambling houses. The Anglo-Persian Agreement of 1919, which had been negotiated secretly, aroused a storm of indignation and outrage in Iran. Intense antiBritish sentiments erupted across the country when the terms of the agreement were revealed. Though the agreement had been signed by the representatives of the two governments, it could not go into effect without being ratified by a majority of deputies in the Majlis. The Fourth Majlis, however, had not been elected at the time when the agreement was signed. Assuming erroneously that the Iranian parliament would ratify the agreement without any serious opposition, the British government and the pro-British prime minister, Vosuq al-Dowleh, proceeded with its implementation. The presumptuous attitude of the British government and their ally, Vosuq al-Dowleh, backfired, enraging the public and many among the members of the political class in Tehran. The public mood was further exacerbated when it was revealed that Vosuq al-Dowleh and two of his ministers, the minister of foreign affairs, Firuz Mirza Nosrat al-Dowleh, and the minister of finance, Akbar Mirza S¯arem al-Dowleh (both princes of the Qajar ruling family), had received handsome bribes from the British for signing the agreement. This added fuel to an already volatile situation characterized by a resurgent Iranian nationalism. On May 18, 1920, as the row between the pro-British Vosuq alDowleh and his opponents was reaching a new height, Soviet Red Army units landed at the port of Anzali on the southern shore of the Caspian Sea. From Anzali, the Soviet forces marched against Rasht, the provincial capital of Gilan, forcing the British army units in the city to withdraw. The message from Moscow to both Tehran and London was very clear: As long as the British retained their role as the dominant imperial power in Iran, the Soviet Union reserved the legitimate right to establish itself in northern Iran through buffer republics between Russia’s fragile southern belly and the British to the south. If the British intended to take over Iran
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
39
by bribing the shah, his prime minister, and two of the cabinet ministers, then the Soviets reserved the right to establish their own revolutionary client regime in Gilan. With the shah withdrawing his support from his prime minister, the Soviet army units in occupation of Gilan, and newspapers clamoring over the 1919 agreement and denouncing it as a national disgrace that posed a direct threat to the independence of the country, Vosuq al-Dowleh resigned as the prime minister on June 24, 1920, and immediately left the country. Though they had lost their closest ally in Tehran, the British expected the shah, who had received a monthly subsidy from the British government, to persist in his support for the Anglo-Persian Agreement. The shah himself expressed hope to the British ambassador in Tehran that if he replaced Vosuq al-Dowleh’s cabinet with one equally acceptable to the British government, his monthly subsidy would be continued.35 The recommendation from the British ambassador in Tehran was to continue paying the shah his monthly subsidy because if London wished to keep the Qajar monarch well-disposed to British policies, then it had to shower him with money because money was the thing the shah loved the most: He [Ahmad Shah] is now thoroughly well disposed towards us and determined to work with us in his own rather odd way. Best method of keeping him in this frame of mind is to give him…as much money as we can for that is what he loves most in the world.36
Despite relentless pressure from the British government and the complete subservience of Ahmad Shah to British demands, the new prime minister, Mirza Hassan Khan Moshir al-Dowleh, imposed a moratorium on the implementation of the agreement arguing that before any further enactment of its clauses, the treaty had to be first ratified by the new parliament. Before the new Majlis could convene, however, an earthquake shook the foundation of Iran’s political order. In the early hours of February 21, 1921, detachments of the Iranian “Cossack brigade, numbering 2,500–3,000 men, with 8 field guns and 18 machine guns under the command of Colonel Reza Khan, marched from Qazvin on
35 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, June 25, 1920, [206097/150/34], No. 417., in Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , p. 538. 36 Ibid.
40
M. KIA
Tehran, and entered the town…shortly after midnight.”37 The Cossacks “encountered no serious opposition from the gendarmerie or the police, and assumed control of town, which was immediately put under martial law.”38 Shortly after seizing the capital, the civilian leader of the coup, the pro-British journalist Sayyid Ziya al-Din Tabatabai, was appointed prime minister. The commander of the Cossack division that had marched to the capital, Reza Khan, was elevated to the command of the Cossack Brigade, receiving the title of Sardar Sepah (Commander of the Army). In April, Sayyid Ziya reshuffled his cabinet and appointed Reza Khan Sardar Sepah as the minister of war. Many in Iran, both then and now, have claimed that the British government had prior knowledge of the February 1921 coup and in fact conceived, designed, and implemented it. The belief among many Iranians and even some Europeans at the time was that the coup was supported by the British authorities in Tehran and Qazvin.39 No details or protestations on the part of the British embassy in Tehran “had the slightest effect in dispelling this belief.”40 The Cossacks themselves “strengthened the prevailing impression by boasting that they had British support,” presumably because “their leaders” had told them so “in order that they might be encouraged in their enterprise by the feeling that they had a force behind them ready to help them if necessary.”41 According to the conspiracy theory, which was developed and embellished later by its opponents, the coup was a British plot designed to secure the long-term geopolitical interests of Britain in the Middle East and South Asia by creating a neutral but unified Iran that served as a buffer between Communist Russia and British India. If the takeover was organized by the British officers in Iran, then it follows that the Iranian military leader of the February coup, Reza Khan, was nothing 37 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, February 21, 1921, [E 2379/2/34], No. 681., in Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , p. 729. 38 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, March 31, 1921, [E 6160/2004/34], No. 39., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, pp. 7–8. 39 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, March 1, 1920, Doc 505, [4926/2/34], No. 31., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 376. 40 Ibid. 41 Ibid.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
41
but a puppet and a stooge of British imperialism, and whatever he would do in the next twenty years must be viewed as somehow serving the political and economic interests of Great Britain. What is true is that the British commander, General Ironside, “who was then supervising the withdrawal of remaining British troops” from Iran, had “met Reza Khan several times, and was very impressed by his military abilities.”42 He and perhaps other British officers were also aware of the impending coup. There is, however, no evidence in any of the available documents to suggest that the British government had any plans to replace the Qajar dynasty. Indeed, both the available documents, as well as Reza Shah’s policies during his reign, clearly demonstrate that, far from being an instrument of British foreign policy, he was an independent-minded Iranian nationalist who suppressed all provincial power centers, centralized all authority in his own hands, and significantly reduced the influence of Britain and the Soviet Union in Iran. Under his leadership, the Iranian government expelled British influence from Iran, getting rid of British advisers and disbanding the British—officered—and British—paid—South Persia Rifles. Reza Shah’s policies may be viewed as a series of audacious attempts to transform and modernize Iran after a century of defeat, humiliation, and inept governance. Reza Khan was a man of humble origin. He was born on March 15, 1878, in the village of Alasht, in the district of Savad Kuh, in the Caspian province of Mazandaran. His father, Abbas Ali Khan known as Dadash Beyk, who died a few months after Reza’s birth, was an army colonel from Mazandaran. His mother, Nush Afarin Khanom, was the daughter of a family of mohajerin or “the refugee inhabitants of the Caucasian districts wrested by Russia” from Iran by the Treaty of Turkmenchay (1828), who chose to emigrate to Iran “rather than remain in their native land under Russian rule.”43 Powerfully built and “well above the average height, with a quiet voice and a direct manner of speech” which was most unusual among his compatriots, Reza began his career as a soldier in the Iranian
42 R. M. Burrell (ed.), Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 6, p. v. See also, Lord Ironside (ed.). High Road to Command: The Diaries of Major-General Sir Edmund Ironside, (London: Leo Cooper Ltd, 1972), pp. 147–168. 43 Lorraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 31, 1922, Doc. 233 [E 3074/6/34], No. 62, in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 283.
42
M. KIA
army at the age of fifteen.44 He then joined the Iranian Cossack Brigade, a military unit that had been organized as an elite cavalry force by the Russian government for the Qajar monarch, Nasser al-Din Shah, after he returned from his second trip to Europe in 1879.45 After serving as a trooper for several years, Reza gradually “rose from the ranks” through sheer energy and ability, gaining “the approval of the Russian instructors” of the Cossack Division “for his courage and fearlessness.”46 After the coup of February 1921, Reza used his position as the commander of the Cossack Brigade, and later as the minister of war, to create a modern and highly centralized national army based on universal military service. This army would act as the principal vehicle for suppression of powerful tribal khans and provincial power centers. Steady progress in the strength, organization, and efficiency of the new military force was made in the next two years much of it due to “the untiring efforts” of Reza Khan, “whose declared policy, ever since he had come into power,” was to create and maintain an army, “capable, firstly of ensuring peace and order” within the confines of Iran, and “secondly, of protecting the country from external aggression.”47 Having secured much of the country under his control, Reza Khan emerged as the new prime minister on October 28, 1923. On December 12, 1925, a constituent assembly abolished the Qajar dynasty and designated Reza Khan as the new shah of Iran and the founder of the Pahlavi dynasty (1925–1979). Reza Shah used the newly created army not only to concentrate all power in his own hands, but also to hasten the modernization and transformation of Iran from an aggregate of autonomous communities into a unified and integrated nation-state. Determined to create a modern, centralized, and secular political system, in 1927 Reza Shah introduced a judiciary based on the French legal system. A year later, he invited an American expert, Arthur Millspaugh, to reorganize the country’s public 44 Ibid. 45 E’temad al-Saltaneh, Mohammad Hassan Khan. Tarikh-e Montazam-e Nasseri,
(Tehran: Donya-ye Ketab, 1988), 3 Volumes, Volume 3, p. 1991. 46 Biographies of Leading Personalities in Persia, Persia Confidential [E 693/693/34], No. 1, February 7, 1930, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 8, p. 582. 47 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia, Annual Report, 1923, Confidential (12445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 717.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
43
finances. A central bank, or Bank-e Melli-ye Iran, was also founded in 1928. By 1933, the British Imperial Bank of Persia had “to relinquish its note-issuing powers.”48 Through a massive construction program, roads, as well as modern factories and plants, were built across the country. Roads and railroads allowed the government to send its troops to the four corners of the country and quell the tribal rebellions that challenged the authority of the new shah. In 1927, Reza Shah initiated the project of building the Trans-Iranian Railway connecting the Persian Gulf to the Caspian Sea. The 1,397-kilometer-long railroad (868 miles) required the construction of 174 large bridges, 186 small bridges, and 224 tunnels, including 11 spiral tunnels.49 This massive construction project, which was funded by national taxes to avoid foreign investment and control, was completed eleven years later in 1938.50 Government-sponsored projects such as the Trans-Iranian Railway created new jobs. In response to the growing demand for a modern educational system, schools and colleges were introduced. The first modern university in the country, the University of Tehran, was established in 1934. Iranian students were also sent abroad with support from the Iranian government. When he was asked whether it was a good idea to educate Iran’s “best men in Europe,” Reza Shah explained that “it would be much better to educate them” in Iran where they were “going to live, and with whose progress they must inevitably be concerned,” but the country did not yet have “the necessary machinery.”51 Iran needed all sorts of technical experts, and these had to be trained in Europe: I hope that the young men we send to France and Italy will realize that civilization is different for every country. I don’t want to turn the Persian into a bad copy of a European. That is not necessary, for he has mighty traditions behind him. I want to make out of my countrymen the best possible Persians. They need not be particularly Western or particularly Eastern. Each country has a mold of its own, which should be developed
48 Geoffrey Jones, “The Imperial Bank of Iran and Iranian Economic Development, 1890–1952,” Business and Economic History, 1987, Volume 16, pp. 69–80, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1987), p. 71. 49 See, UNESCO World Heritage Convention, https://whs.unesco.org/en/list/1585. 50 Ibid. 51 Forbes, Rosita, Conflict Angora to Afghanistan, (New York: Frederick A. Stokes Company, 1933), p. 202.
44
M. KIA
and improved till it turns out a citizen who is not a replica of anyone else, but an individual sure of himself and proud of his nationality.52
Concurrent with establishment of new educational institutions and study abroad programs, modern medical care facilities grew and developed extensively to prevent and control the major epidemics and endemics prevalent in Iran at the time, including plague, cholera, small-pox, typhus, influenza, and malaria. Agriculture also expanded and agricultural production increased significantly as roads and railroad lines opened new markets. A nationalist modernizer as forceful and driven as Reza Shah was bound to have his detractors. Impressed by his reforms, but angered by his disregard for rule of law, these critics denounced Reza Shah as a pseudo-modernizer who had merely introduced the façade of modernity. He built railroads, airports, factories, hospitals, and modern schools and colleges, but he also rejected the institutions that serve as the prerequisites for a democratic society based on a representative government. He was also condemned as a dictator who refused to tolerate any criticism or opposition by his opponents, especially among the members of the Shi’i clergy, the urban intelligentsia, and large landowning families and tribal chiefs. Determined to impose the authority of the central government in the tribal zones of the country, Reza Shah embarked on a campaign to disarm all tribal groups especially the larger and the more powerful tribal confederations such as the Bakhtiyari and the Qashqai though the campaign also targeted the Lur and Kurdish tribes of western and northwestern Iran, as well as the Turkmen tribes of the northeast. Once the tribes had been disarmed, the government began to carry out a policy of forced sedentarization, an idea promoted and advocated by many reform-minded intellectuals and political leaders since the constitutional revolution of 1906. This campaign compelled migratory tribal groups to abandon their nomadic mode of existence and settle in newly created villages. In April 1923, Reza Khan presented a bill for conscription to the Majlis, making “military service compulsory” for all Iranian subjects “between 20 and 45 years of age.”53 The new law effectively abolished the traditional 52 Ibid., pp. 202–203. 53 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confi-
dential (12,445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
45
Bonicheh system under which “each village, district, or tribe” was “obligated to furnish a certain quota of recruits proportionate to the amount of its revenue assessment.”54 The drafting of young men under the military conscription law aroused the opposition of the Shi’i clergy, the bazaar, and the country’s tribal chiefs. On August 2, 1935, the government also banned the usage of all honorific titles such as ayatollah, grand ayatollah, agha, amir, beyk, ilkhan, and khan. This policy was aimed at eliminating class distinctions but also intended to further weaken and undermine the power and prestige of the prominent members of the clergy, as well as the large landowners and tribal khans. In the process of secularizing Iranian society, Reza Shah significantly curbed the power of the Shi’i clergy, unveiled the women of Iran, and required men to shave their beards and abandon their traditional garb and headgears in favor of the newly introduced Pahlavi hat. He also attempted to introduce a new national identity that glorified Iran’s ancient history as well as the Persian language and culture. The construction of a new and homogenized national identity minimized, and at times ignored, differences in language, culture, social organization, local traditions, and regional identities and loyalties. When the state’s nation-building policies aroused the reaction of regional power centers, the government resorted to repression to silence the opposition. Tribal chiefs, who were believed to pose a threat to Reza Shah’s authority, were jailed and at times executed. Throughout the Qajar rule (1794–1925), one of the most serious challenges confronting the Iranian state was the problematic relationship between the center and the periphery. Under weak governments, the tribal zones of the country functioned independent of the center and were often ruled by their own powerful tribal chiefs or provincial magnates, who possessed their own armies and administered justice in accordance with local customs and traditions. Though there is no scientific computation of the nomadic and semi-nomadic population, the majority of sources guesstimate that before the commencement of the First World Volume 6, p. 718. See also, M. Saunders, Tehran, April 14, 1923, Intelligence Summary No. 15, Doc. 214 [E 5823/71/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 307. 54 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 9, Tehran, March 4, 1922, Doc. 178 [E 4077/69/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 269.
46
M. KIA
War, nearly one-quarter of Iran’s roughly 10 million population, that is over two million, lived as members of a tribal group.55 As long as the central government lacked the military and administrative muscle to exercise any authority over this mosaic of tribes and regional power centers, it had no option but to resort to a divide-and-rule strategy, fomenting intertribal jealousies and rivalries, setting one tribal chief against another, and at times, bribing one chief or powerful landlord with gifts and promises of special favor and support in his struggle against a neighboring rival. Reza Shah’s reign signaled the beginning of a process that would reverse the relationship between the center and the periphery, converting the central government to the dominant power and the tribal groups into subservient parties condemned to submission. Simko’s rebellion commenced nearly three years before the emergence of Reza Khan as Iran’s strongman. From late autumn 1918 to summer 1922, the central government in Tehran lacked the military means to confront the Kurdish chief and suppress his rebellion. The absence of a standing national army allowed Simko to expand his power and impose his authority over much of the territory of present-day West Azerbaijan. Once a modern army was organized, and after Iran signed a treaty of security and friendship with the newly emerging Turkish nationalist government in Ankara under the leadership of Mustafa Kemal (later Atatürk), Simko’s fate was sealed, and his rebellion was doomed.
Western Azerbaijan, the Home of Simko and the Shakak Tribe The area corresponding to the present-day territory of the Iranian province of West Azerbaijan bordered the Ottoman Empire to the west, the Russian Empire to the north, the Kurdish-populated province of Ardalan (present-day Kurdistan) to the south, and Lake Urumiyeh56 and eastern Azerbaijan to the east. The plains of western Azerbaijan, including the plain of Urumiyeh, the plain of Salmas, and the plain of Khoy, were some of the most productive and prosperous areas of Iran. For example, the villages in the plain of Urumiyeh, which stretched fifteen 55 Curzon, George N. Persia and the Persian Question, (London: Frank Cass & Co. Ltd., 1966), 2 Volumes, Volume 2, p. 270. 56 For the names of the Lake Urumiyeh also known as Lake Shahi, see Nader Mirza, Tarikh va Joghrafiya-ye Dar al-Saltaneh-ye Tabriz, (Tehran, 1972).
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
47
miles south and twenty miles north of the ancient city of the same name, were for miles “covered in summer with gardens” that produced “melons and cucumbers in abundance;” with “orchards laden with apples, pears, peaches, plums, apricots, quinces, cherries, and mulberries,” while the “grapes of the vineyards” were “proverbial for their excellence.”57 Agricultural crops, including “wheat, maize, beans, melons, potatoes, carrots, turnips, beets, capsicum, chilis, ….eggplants, lady’s fingers, castor-oil (for burning), cotton, madder, salsify, scorzonera, celery, oil-seeds of various sorts, opium, and tobacco” all flourished around Urumiyeh.58 It is not surprising, therefore, that the immensely rich plain received the title of the Paradise of Iran.59 As with many other regions of Iran, western Azerbaijan contained a mosaic of ethnic, linguistic, and religious communities. The area was populated by a highly heterogeneous population of Shi’i Azerbaijani Turks, Sunni Muslim Kurds, Shi’i Turkic Qara Papakhs, Christian Assyrians (Nestorians), and Armenians, as well as a small Jewish community and even smaller Chaldean and Russian Orthodox enclaves. The majority of the Azerbaijani Turks, Assyrians, Armenians, and Jews lived in villages and towns, including Maku, Khoy, Dilman (formerly Shahpur and presentday Salmas), Savojbolagh (present-day Mahabad), Miandoab, Sulduz (present-day Naqadeh), and Urumiyeh, as peasant farmers, shopkeepers, handicraftsmen, traders, and merchants, while the majority of the Kurdish population lived either as semi-nomadic tribal groups or as peasant cultivators in the districts of Sulduz and Oshnaviyeh (Ushnu), as well as several mountain frontier districts, including Qotur, Chahriq, SomaiBaradoost, Anzal, Targavar, Margavar, Lahijan, and Dasht. Kurdishpopulated villages were scattered on the slopes of the Zagros Mountain range that separated western Azerbaijan from eastern Anatolia. The town of Urumiyeh, the largest urban center of western Azerbaijan with a population estimated either between 20,000 and 30,000, or 30,000 and 40,000 in the second half of the nineteenth century,
57 Jackson, A. V. Williams. Persia Past and Present a Book of Travel and Research, (London: The Macmillan & Co., Ltd., 1906), p. 88. 58 Bird, Isabella. Journeys in Persia and Kurdistan, (The Perfect Library, 1891), 3 Volumes, Volume III, p. 147. 59 Ibid. See also, A. V. Williams Jackson, Persia Past and Present, p. 86.
48
M. KIA
contained a majority Afshar Turk population with a considerable sprinkling of Assyrian, Armenian, and Jewish families.60 The city also served as an operational base for Shi’i Muslim merchants from southern Caucasus, including the towns of Yerevan, Shusha, and Orduabad.61 The Afshar were a Turkic tribal group from whose branches in Khorasan hailed the Iranian monarch, Nader Shah (r. 1736–1747), who, at the zenith of his power, ruled a vast empire that stretched from northern India in the east to northern Iraq in the west. The chiefs of the Afshar were the most powerful landowners in western Azerbaijan. They owned numerous Muslim- and Christian-populated villages in the region. In the second half of the nineteenth century, the Afshar tribe furnished three regiments of infantry and 800–900 horsemen to the central government.62 The authorities in Azerbaijan relied heavily on the chiefs of the Afshar to maintain law and order in the region west of Lake Urumiyeh. Aside from the Afshars, Urumiyeh was home to an ancient and vibrant Christian Assyrian population. Two wards of the town were inhabited only by Christians, most of them Assyrians, while 25,000 Assyrians and 5,000 Armenians lived in villages surrounding Urumiyeh before 1900.63 Aside from the plains of Urumiyeh and Salmas, Assyrians also inhabited northernmost areas of Mesopotamia and the Hakkari region of the Ottoman Empire in southeastern Anatolia. In western Azerbaijan, Assyrian communities extended as far west as the rural districts of Targavar, Margavar, Baradoost, and Chahriq, on the border with the Ottoman Empire. The majority of the Assyrian Christians were peasant farmers who lived in compact villages along rivers such as Nazlu Chai, to the north of Urumiyeh, the Shahar Chai, flowing through Urumiyeh, 60 Curzon, George N., Persia and the Persian Question, (Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 2015), 2 Volumes, Volume 1, p. 536. See also, A. C. Wratislaw, A Consul in the East, p. 195. See also, Cities and Trade: Consul Abbott on the Economy and Society of Iran 1847–1866. Edited by Abbas Amanat. (London: Ithaca Press, 1983), p. 226. See also, Wilson, S. G. Rev., Persian Life and Customs, (New York: Fleming H. Revell Company, 1900), p. 94. 61 J. I. Eadie, Report of Eadie-Bristow Mission Addressed to Advanced General Head-
quarters, Tiflis, in Doc. 54, in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 36. 62 Cities and Trade: Consul Abbott on the Economy and Society of Iran 1847–1866, p. 230. 63 S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, p. 94.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
49
and Barandouz Chai to the south of the town.64 All these rivers flowed eastward from the Zagros Mountains and emptied into Lake Urumiyeh. In the second half of the nineteenth century, the British diplomat, K. E. Abbott wrote that there were 30,000–40,000 Assyrian Christians in the district of Urumiyeh, and they dwelt in 166 villages.65 Writing in the last decade of the nineteenth century, the British statesman, George Curzon, estimated the population of the Assyrian community of the region to be somewhere between 20,000/25,000 and 44,000.66 The British diplomat, Albert Charles Wratislaw, however, estimated the population of Assyrians to be 30,000 on the Iranian side and 100,000 on the Ottoman side.67 The Russian diplomat and scholar, Basile Nikitine, who served as his country’s consul in Urumiyeh during the First World War stated that thirty-seven villages in the plain of Urumiyeh were inhabited by Christians only, and fifty-nine had a mixed population.68 Before the First World War, “nearly a third of the Assyrians held their land freehold, and a large number had definite and permanent rights of tenure.”69 The Assyrian sharecroppers were obligated to pay a rent to the village aghas or landlords, who were most often Azerbaijani Turks or Kurdish tribal chiefs.70 As for the Armenian population in Azerbaijan, according to an American Presbyterian missionary, there were 4,000–5,000 in Tabriz, 10,000 in the district of Salmas, a small number in Khoy, and between 6,000 and 7,000
64 M. Saunders, Tehran, January 7, 1922, Intelligence Summary No. 1, Doc. 147 [E 2463/69/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 220. 65 Cities and Trade: Consul Abbott on the Economy and Society of Iran 1847–1866, p. 211. 66 George Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, Volume 1, p. 546. 67 A.C. Wratislaw, A Consul in the East, p. 196. 68 Basile, Nikitine, “Le vie domestique des Assyro-Chaldeens du plateau d Ourmiyah,” in Ethnographie, 1925, p. I-25. Ethnographic, 1926, p. 25. 69 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confidential (12445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 731. 70 George Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, Volume 1, p. 547.
50
M. KIA
in Urumiyeh and the surrounding rural communities.71 By the beginning of the First World War, one source estimated the total population of Christians in Urumiyeh and the surrounding communities at 35,000.72 Given the significant size of the Christian population in western Azerbaijan, Christian missions were established in Urumiyeh and other urban centers of the region. Beginning in 1835, an American Presbyterian mission was introduced in Urumiyeh with the goal of building primary schools, high schools, a college, a hospital, and a printing house.73 The first mission school opened in 1836 under the direction of Rev. Justin Perkins. In addition to the American Presbyterian establishment, there was also a Roman Catholic mission organized by French priests based in Urumiyeh.74 Beginning in 1858, French Roman Catholics “established two stations among the Chaldean Catholics in Urumiah and the plain of Salmas.”75 By the end of the nineteenth century, “there were seven French priests in the field.”76 The Anglican Church also sent missionaries to Iran in the 1840s, but they did not establish themselves until 1888, when they began to work actively among Assyrians. By 1891, the Anglican missionaries had “established a College for Priests and Deacons, and schools for boys and girls.”77 To the south of Urumiyeh, in Savojbolagh, a German Lutheran Orient Mission had been established in 1905. As one American traveller and scholar wrote at the turn of the century, “America, France, England, and Russia” were “all represented in the
71 “Urmia: Statement by the Rev. William A. Shedd, D.D., of the American (Presbyterian Mission Station at Urmia: Communicated by the Board of Foreign Missions of the Presbyterian Church in the U.S.A,” in Viscount Bryce, The Treatment of Armenians in the Ottoman Empire 1915–16, (London: G. Doniguian & Sons, 1916), p. 101. 72 Ibid. 73 Wishard, John G. Twenty Years in Persia A Narrative of Life Under the Last Three
Shahs, (London: Fleming H. Revell Company, 1908), p. 125. See also, Hooman Estelami, The Americans of Urmia: Iran’s First Americans and Their Mission to the Assyrian Christians, (New York: Bahar Books, 2021). See also, Michael Zirinsky, “American Presbyterian Missionaries at Urmia During the Great War,” Iran Chamber Society. See also, Michael P. Zirinsky, “Harbingers of Change: Presbyterian Women in Iran, 1883–1949,” American Presbyterians: Journal of Presbyterian History (1992), pp. 173–186. 74 Ibid. 75 Abraham Yeselson, United States-Persian Diplomatic Relations, 1883–1921, p. 7. 76 Ibid. 77 Ibid., p. 8.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
51
cause, and some work” was “done by Germans and Swedes in the villages of the Urumiah plain.”78 Given the presence of various missionary groups, it is not surprising that the rate of literacy among the Assyrians of Urumiyeh was much higher than the non-Assyrian communities, and educated Assyrians staffed all missionary schools, newspapers, and hospitals under the supervision of foreign missionaries. The high level of education and political awareness allowed Assyrians, even in the rural areas of western Azerbaijan, to introduce their own political and professional associations. By September 1911, the inhabitants of the large Assyrian village of Khosrowabad had created a new organization called “Union Nationale Chaldéenne” or the Chaldean National Union.79 Although Christian missionaries introduced modern education, as well as western values, ideas, and institutions to the Assyrian community, their activities had a polarizing impact on the region. The privileged position of the Assyrians made them a subject of envy and resentment by their Muslim neighbors, especially the Kurds, who remained pastoral, rural, and desperately poor. Furthermore, as a result of proselytizing by foreign missionaries, the Assyrian community itself was divided up into several religious communities. In many villages, one could find Nestorians, Chaldeans, Russian Orthodox, American Presbyterians, and “protégés of the English mission.”80 Adding to the remarkable diversity of western Azerbaijan’s population was the presence of the Turkic Qara Papakhs of Sulduz (Naqadeh) and Sardasht, who had emigrated to the region from the neighborhood of Yerevan in southern Caucasus, when the district they inhabited was ceded to Russia by the Treaty of Turkmenchay signed in 1828.81 At the 78 A. V. Williams Jackson, Persia Past and Present, p. 105. 79 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1911, [FO 371/1178-
1179 & FO 416/51], Barclay to Grey, Tehran, December 1, 1911, [Confidential 50544], No. 236, Enclosure in No. 1, Diary (No. 7) of the Itinerary of the British and Russian Delegates from Urmia to Tabreez through Anzal and Salmas, September 9–16, 1911, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Edited by Richard Schofield, (Oxford: Archive Editions, 1989), 11 Volumes, Volume 4, p. 536. 80 O’ Conor to Grey, Constantinople, February 5, 1908, [4587], No. 57, Report by Vice-Consul Dickson on His Recent Journey Through Turco-Persian Territory, Enclosure 2 in No. 174., in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958. Volume 4, p. 265. 81 Marling to Grey, Tehran, January 24, 1908, [5420], Enclosure in No. 200, Wratislaw to Marling, Urmi, December 28, 1907, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958. Volume 4, p. 271.
52
M. KIA
time when the Iranian authorities settled the Qara Papakhs in Sulduz southwest of Lake Urumiyeh, the town and its surrounding communities were populated by Mamash, Mangur, and Zarza Kurds, as well as smaller Assyrian and Jewish communities. In return for keeping “four hundred horsemen at the service,” the Qara Papakhs were “exempted from all taxes.”82 The central government regarded the Qara Papakhs as a body the Qajar shah could rely on as a sort of local rural police, as well as “auxiliaries to his army in times of emergency.”83
Kurds of Western Azerbaijan While most Azerbaijani Turks, Assyrians, Armenians, and Jews lived as peasant cultivators or urban dwellers on the fertile plains of western Azerbaijan, the majority of the population in the foothills and the uplands of the Zagros Mountain range, separating Iran from the Ottoman Empire, were Sunni Muslim Kurds. The Kurdish population of western Azerbaijan comprised two principal social classes. The first were “the Kurds proper,” or in actuality, the warrior caste of powerful tribal groups called Ashirat.84 The second was the subject class or the peasant cultivators called “Gurans” or “Ra’ayat.”85 The peasant population had no voice in the affairs of the tribes who ruled them, and they were generally treated as an “inferior caste.”86 Though the tribal warrior caste or the Ashirat were far less numerous than the Ra’ayat, they ruled as lords of the country.87 The Ashirat Kurds monopolized “military and pastoral life,” while the Ra’ayat cultivated the soil, “an occupation intolerable to the spirit of a
82 Ibid. 83 Ibid. 84 William Spottiswoode, “Sketch of the Tribes of Northern Kurdistan,” Transactions of the Ethnological Society of London, p. 244. See also, Amir Sharaf Khan Bitlisi, Sharafnameh: Tarikh-e Mofassal-e Kurdistan, (Tehran: Elmi Press, 1964), p. 34. 85 Ibid. See also, V. Minorsky, “Shakak,” in Encyclopaedia of Islam, First Edition (1913– 1936). Edited by Th. Houtsma, T.W. Arnold, R. Basset, R. Hartmann. See also, V. Minorsky, “The G¯ur¯an,’ in Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, University of London, Vol. 11, No. 1 (1943), pp. 75–103, (Cambridge University Press on Behalf of School of Oriental and African Studies), p. 77. 86 V. Minorsky, “The G¯ ur¯an,’ in Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, p. 78. 87 William Spottiswoode, “Sketch of the Tribes of Northern Kurdistan,” p. 244.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
53
true nomad.”88 The tribal population lived under the reign of their hereditary chiefs or aghas or khans, who were usually quarrelsome; feuds and inter-tribal wars were common. The tribal chiefs who “combined a ruthless medieval authority with a plentiful supply of rifles” were “a scourge not only to the Christian population and the government, but also to their own settled tribesmen, who were little better than serfs.”89 The Kurdish peasant cultivators lived “nearly entirely from wheat cultivation and cattle farming.”90 They inhabited small villages organized into patriarchal households. The mountain villages were for the most part small and isolated from one another and from the plains.91 Warfare and raids defined social groupings, and tribal warriors dominated public life. Individual chiefs and tribes built their reputation on warfare. The more successful a tribe was in warfare, the more clans it attracted and the greater its position became. Rival branches within a tribe dealt with one another brutally. Conflict took the form of feud, and each act of aggression brought retaliation in kind. The chief of the tribe was a patriarchal despot whose authority had no limits.92 He could dispose of the property of anyone as he saw fit.93 Tribal chiefs could also order the caning, and even the execution, of any of their subjects at their discretion.94 They measured their status by the number of villages they owned, the horsemen and cattle they controlled, and their marital productivity. Like the number of cattle, the number of wives showed a man’s social position. Polygyny was, therefore, common among the chiefs. The Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan lived on the border between Iran and the Ottoman Empire. Survival on the borderlands of two
88 Ibid. 89 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell. Review
of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, (Franklin Classics, 2018), p. 57. 90 M. Berberian and J. S. Tchalenko. “Field Study and Documentation of the 1930 Salmas (Shahpur-Azarbaidjan) Earthquake,” Imperial College, London: Geological Survey of Iran, 39, 271–342, 1976, p. 154. For the Kurdish tribes of West Azerbaijan, see Ebrahim Eskandar Niya, Sakhtar-e Sazman-e Eilat va Shive-ye Maeishat-e Ashayer-e Azarbaijan, (Urumiyeh: Anzali Press, 1987). 91 Ibid. 92 Basile Nikitine. Les Kurdes. Étude Sociologique et Historique, (Paris: Imprimerie
Nationale, Librairie C. Klincksieck, 1956), p. 120. 93 Ibid. 94 Ibid.
54
M. KIA
empires meant that the Kurdish tribal chiefs had to deal with two governments rather than just one. It also meant that the tribal groups were under constant pressure to shift their loyalty, especially when conflict erupted between the two neighboring states. Beginning with the Safavid dynasty (1501–1736) in the sixteenth century, and especially after the Ottoman Empire defeated Iran at the Battle of Chaldiran in 1514, Iranian rulers viewed the Kurdish tribal groups of western Iran as buffering entities against Ottoman incursions from the west. Kurdish loyalty and cooperation with Iran’s central government was, therefore, necessary to maintain peace and order on the western frontiers of the country. Though the Kurdish tribal groups remained essential for the maintenance of border security, Iranian governments also viewed them as a threat, because they were armed and enjoyed boundless mobility. The Ottoman-Iranian frontier was never a true frontier, as many Kurdish tribes were migratory and spent half of the year on the Ottoman side of the border and half in Iran. Kurds from either side came up into the hills for the summer by mutual arrangement among each other. One could, therefore, find Kurdish tribes from the Ottoman Empire grazing their flocks on the Iranian side and vice versa.95 Some of the tribes, which were semi-nomadic, “migrated yearly between the high mountain pastures in summer and their stronghold villages further down in the valleys in winter.”96 Iranian authorities rarely interfered in the internal affairs of Kurdish tribal groups under their rule. Until the advent of the Pahlavi state in 1925, the central government exercised minimal authority in Kurdishpopulated regions of western Azerbaijan. In the absence of an interventionist central government, the hereditary chiefs governed their tribes as local princes. The policy of Iranian governments centered on the principle of letting the Kurdish chiefs do as they pleased as long as they did not stage tribal rebellions and paid their taxes (or at the least a symbolic tribute to the central treasury). The Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan were fond of raiding villages and plundering caravans. The non-Kurdish peasantry, especially the Christians of the Urumiyeh plain, were exposed to “great losses of sheep and cattle from Kurdish
95 C. H. D. Ryder, Turco-Persian Frontier Commission, India Foreign Secretary, No. 13, April 1, 1915, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Volume 6, p. 273. 96 Tchalenko, John. Images from the Endgame, (London: Saqi Books, 2006), p. 92.
2
HISTORICAL SETTING: IRAN ON THE BRINK OF COLLAPSE
55
mountaineers,” including those who crossed the Turkish frontier and returned into Ottoman Turkey “with their booty.”97 Both the urban and rural population of western Azerbaijan, including the Azerbaijani Turks, the Assyrians and Armenians, regarded the semi-nomadic Kurds with apprehension, a reaction to the predatory instincts of the roaming tribesmen. Despite this thorny relationship, the Kurdish and non-Kurdish populations came together from time to time to trade (Maps 2.1 and 2.2).
Map 2.1
Western Azerbaijan’s Districts
97 Isabella Bird, Journeys in Persia and Kurdistan, Volume III, p. 160.
Map 2.2
Kurdish Tribes of Iranian Kurdistan
56 M. KIA
CHAPTER 3
Shakak Tribe and the Rise of Simko
Among the Kurdish tribal groups of western Azerbaijan, the Shakak, a Kurmanji-speaking Sunni Muslim (i.e., Shafi’i) tribe,1 was the most powerful during the first three decades of the twentieth century. The origins of the Shakak tribal confederacy are shrouded in mystery. Tribal groups did not usually have their own historians who would write an account of the origins of the tribe, how it had come into existence, how it had grown or diminished in size, the battles it had fought, the victories it had scored, the defeats it had suffered, and how it had conducted its relationship with neighboring tribes and states. In this chapter, I will attempt to share with the reader the information I was able to collect on the Shakak tribe from a variety of sources. These sources include accounts, articles, and reports written by historians, travellers, foreign diplomats, British intelligence officers, and even Christian missionaries. Needless to say, the majority of these narratives were written by authors who had not lived among the Shakak, did not speak their language, and lacked an in-depth knowledge of their history, traditions, and customs. Worse, they shared the prevalent bias and stereotype 1 At least one source stated that Shakaks were believed to have been Christian until sometime in the nineteenth century. See, for example, Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1907 [FO 416/31–34 & FO 371/503], Extracts from the “Times ” of September 24, 1907, “The Turco-Persian Frontier Question,” in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 175.
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_3
57
58
M. KIA
among the urban population about nomadic tribes as predatory raiders, whose sole purpose in life was to plunder rural communities. Unfortunately, the disjointed and fragmentary information presented here fails to constitute a comprehensive and cohesive whole, but it does provide useful information about a tribe that played an important role in the history of northwestern Iran before, during, and immediately after the First World War.
Shakak/Shikak Kurds In his comprehensive history of the Kurdish people, the sixteenth-century Kurdish historian, Amir Sharaf Khan Bitlisi, did not mention the Shakak, though he wrote about the Shaqaqi tribe whose name has a striking resemblance to Shakak.2 In Iran, there is little mention of the Shakak Kurds until the last decade of the eighteenth century. The Shakak most probably migrated from southeastern Anatolia, first to the plain of Urumiyeh and subsequently, at an unknown date, to the hilly districts of Somai-Baradoost, and Chahriq on the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. Some branches of the Shakak grazed their animals as far south as the rural district of Targavar, which was also used by branches of the Harki tribe.3 Chahriq, which served for many decades as the stronghold of Shakak’s paramount chiefs, including Simko, was located in the western part of the district of Salmas. Sandwiched between Lake Urumiyeh to the east and the Zagros Mountain range that separated Iran from the Ottoman Empire to the west, Salmas was described by an American traveller in the last decade of the nineteenth century as a “well-watered and fruitful plain.”4 Watered by the Derik and Zola Chai or Zola Rud (Zola River), also known as Salmas Chai (Salmas River),5 the fertile plain of Salmas contained eighty villages. Dilman or Dilmaqan (the name of present-day Salmas until it was destroyed in 1930 by an earthquake) and Kohneh 2 Bitlisi, Amir Sharaf Khan, Sharafnameh, p. 196, 201. 3 Moshir al-Dowleh, Mirza Ja’afar Khan, Resale-ye Tahqiqat-e Sarhaddiyeh, Mohammad
Moshiri (ed.), (Tehran: Bonyad-e Farhang-e Iran Press, 1969), p. 160. 4 S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, p. 89. 5 R. T. Günther, “Contributions to the Geography of Lake Urmi and Its Neighbor-
hood,” The Geographical Journal, Vol. 14, No. 5 (November, 1899), pp. 504–523, 506. See also, M. Berberian and J.S. Tchalenko, “Field Study and Documentation of the 1930 Salmas (Shahpur-Azarbaidjan) Earthquake,” p. 152.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
59
Shahr (present-day Tazeh Shahr) served as the “chief towns” of the district with “five thousand inhabitants” each.6 Dilman, the capital of the district, had “a court-house, a custom-house, post and telegraph offices, and a bazaar.”7 In the last decade of the nineteenth century, the inhabitants of the plain of Salmas were mostly Shi’i Azerbaijani Turks as well as “six thousand Armenians, three thousand Chaldeans and Assyrians, and five hundred Jews.”8 The majority of the Shakak Kurds of western Azerbaijan lived on the western edge of the Salmas, Khoy, and Urumiyeh districts. Simko’s birthplace, Chahriq, had been claimed by the Ottoman Turks on several occasions9 and occupied by a Russian army in 1828 during the second Russo-Iranian war. The rural district contained a diverse population of Sunni Kurds, as well as Christian Assyrians and Armenians. The fortress of Chahriq enjoyed “a natural fortification,” from which issued “an immense fountain of water,” the Zola Chai.10 Serving as the mainstay of the prosperity of the district of Salmas, Zola Chai originated from the mountains along Iran’s border with the Ottoman Empire and flowed into Lake Urumiyeh, a majestic sheet of water “about 80 miles from north to south, and, 24 miles from east to west,”11 or according to another source, “eighty-four miles long” and “between twenty and thirty miles broad.”12 Near the foot of the plain of Salmas outside the village of Khan Takhti (literally meaning the ruler’s throne) southeast of Dilman on a
6 S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, p. 89. 7 Ibid. 8 Ibid., p. 90. 9 Donboli, Abd al-Razzaq Maftun, Maaser-e Soltaniyeh, Tarikh-e Jangha-ye Iran va
Russ, (Tehran: Ibn Sina Press, 1972), pp. 341–342. 10 S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, p. 89. 11 R. T. Günther, “Contributions to the Geography of Lake Urmi and Its Neighbor-
hood,” The Geographical Journal, p. 509. 12 George Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, Vol. 1, p. 532. In his book, Twenty Years in Persia A Narrative of Life under the Last Three Shahs, John Wishard states that Lake Urumiyeh measures “ninety miles long and nearly thirty miles wide.” See, John Wishard, Twenty Years in Persia A Narrative of Life under the Last Three Shahs, p. 124.
60
M. KIA
rocky hill sat an ancient petroglyph that depicted the founder of the Sasanian dynasty Ardeshir I (r. 224–241) and his son and successor Shahpur I (r. 239–270), presenting rings to two standing men.13 An Iranian official, who was intimately familiar with the tribe, wrote that the Shakak were divided into two main branches, the Avdoi (i.e., Avdovi/Awdoi/Abdoi/Abdui/Abdoi) and the Mamadi (i.e., Mamdoi/ Muhammadi).14 According to one scholar, the “paramount chieftains of the tribe’s known history belonged to one of the two chiefly lineages…the Abdovi/Avdoi and the Kardar.”15 Each sub-division of the Shakak was divided further into smaller branches. For example, a British report mentioned the Finik/Fanak/Fenak and Delan, as the branches of “the large Kardar sub-division of the Shakaks.”16 Simko’s branch, the Avdoi, settled mainly in the rural district of Chahriq and Qotur. Both Chahriq and Qotur were located in close proximity to the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. Though segments of the Shakak had moved into Iranian territory from southeastern Anatolia, several branches of the tribe remained in the Ottoman Empire. In his article on the Kurdish tribes of the Ottoman Empire published in 1908, Mark Sykes described the Shakak as “a notable tribe” of 6,000 families, who spent only “three months in tents,” and could, therefore, “be called sedentary.”17
13 A. V. Williams Jackson, Persia Past and Present, pp. 79–88. See also, S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, pp. 89–90. See also, Ehsan Shavarebi, “A Reinterpretation of the Sasanian Relief at Salmas,” in Iran and the Caucasus, Vol. 18 (2014), pp. 115–133, Leiden: Brill. 14 Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯ afi, Hossein Qoli Khan, Khaterat va Asnad, Edited by Ma’asumeh M¯afi and Mansureh Etehadiyeh (Nezam M¯afi), 2 Vols., (Tehran: Nashr-e Tarikh-e Iran, 2007), Vol. 2, p. 447. See also, Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study. (London: Oxford University Press, 1966), p. 48. See also, Barclay to Grey, Gulhak, July 1, 1911, Persia Confidential, No. 29936, Enclosure 2 in No. 1, Diary of the British and Russian Delegates from Khoy to Urmia, June 12 to 22, 1911, by H.S. Shipley, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 497. 15 Martin van Bruinessen, “Shakak,” in Encyclopaedia of Islam, New Edition. Edited by C.E. Bosworth, E. van Donzel, W.P. Heinrichs, and G. Lecomte, (Leiden: Brill, 1997), Vol. IX, p. 245. 16 Barclay to Grey, Gulhak, July 1, 1911, Persia Confidential, [29936], Enclosure 2 in No. 1, Diary of the British and Russian Delegates from Khoy to Urmia, June 12 to 22, 1911, by H.S. Shipley, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 498. 17 Mark Sykes, “The Kurdish Tribes of the Ottoman Empire.” The Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute of Great Britain and Ireland, Vol. 38, July–December, 1908, p. 461.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
61
Information about the Shakak Kurds in Iran suffers from a paucity of reliable sources. One of the first references to the Shakak in Iranian sources was made by the Kurdish author, Abd al-Razzaq Maftun Donboli, who wrote a history of the Russo-Iranian wars during the reign of the second Qajar monarch, Fath Ali Shah (r.1797–1834). Donboli mentioned the active participation of the Shakak in a 15,000-man army raised by Abbas Mirza (1789–1833), the Qajar crown prince, to restore law and order in Khoy and Salmas in 1799.18 The same author mentioned a certain Ismail Agha as the chief of the Shakak of Urumiyeh in 1811.19 The stronghold and the tomb of Ismail Agha, who died in 1816, was located on the bank of Nazlu Chai, one of the rivers that watered the plain of Urumiyeh.20 From references in Donboli’s book, it becomes clear that some of the Shakak Kurds of Iran had originally settled in the district of Urumiyeh. They were then most probably forced to move out of Urumiyeh by the Afshar Turks and settled in the frontier districts of Somai-Baradoost, Chahriq (in Salmas district), and Qotur (in the district of Khoy) on the Iranian-Ottoman frontier.21 By pushing the Shakak out, the Afshars made themselves the sole masters of Urumiyeh, the most prosperous and agriculturally rich district in western Azerbaijan. In 1821, the Shakak were mentioned as a Kurdish tribe causing crossborder disputes between the Ottoman state and Iran. In a letter written by the Qajar crown prince, Abbas Mirza, to the Ottoman governor of Erzurum, the Iranian doyen reassured the Ottoman official, who had complained about regular raids by the Shakak, that the Iranian authorities would do their best to contain and control the unruly Kurdish tribe.22 In 1832, after a rebellion by Kurdish tribes in Urumiyeh district, the Qajars re-imposed their authority over western Azerbaijan by raising a Kurdish tribal army from Chahriq, Derik, Somai-Baradoost, Margavar, Targavar, and Oshnaviyeh. That force eventually pacified the region.23
18 Abd al-Razzaq Maftun Donboli, Maaser-e Soltaniyeh, p. 55. 19 Ibid., p. 260. 20 V. Minorsky, “Shakak,” in Encyclopaedia of Islam, First Edition (1913–1936). 21 Ibid. 22 Nassiri, Mohammad Reza (ed.)., Asnad va Mokatebat-e Tarikhi-ye Iran, 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Keyhan Press, 1987), Vol. 1, p. 258. 23 Jahangir Mirza, Tarikh-e No, (Tehran: Ali Akbar Elmi Press, 1948), p. 174.
62
M. KIA
In the 1830s, the British author, Sheil, mentioned the Shakak and observed their “large and variegated turbans,” their “wild, expressive, manly countenance,” and their military hardware of a spear, a sword, and “when they can afford the purchase, a pair of long Turkish pistols,” but the author did not offer any estimate of their population.24 In 1844, the Shakak chief, Yahya Khan, who carried the title of Ilkhan (the chief of the tribe), offered his sister as a bride to the reigning Qajar monarch, Mohammad Shah (r. 1834–1848), thus converting himself into the brother-in-law of the Iranian sovereign. In return, the Qajar king appointed the Shakak chief the governor of Khoy, Salmas, and Urumiyeh, the latter incorporating all the frontier districts of northwestern Iran, including Chahriq.25 The same Yahya Khan served as the governor in Chahriq when Sayyid Ali Mohammad Shirazi, known as the B¯ab (1819– 1850), the founder of the messianic B¯abi movement, was imprisoned at Chahriq in May 1848.26 Even after he retired from his post, Yahya Khan remained the sole landed proprietor and fief holder (tuyuldar) of the region, and he and his family continued to reside in Chahriq.27 In the deliberations of the Ottoman-Iranian Delimitation Commission, which worked from 1849 to 1855 on a comprehensive survey of all border regions, the Shakak were mentioned as a prominent and influential tribe.28 These references clearly demonstrate that, like many other Kurdish tribes, the Shakak regularly crossed the Iran-Ottoman border, especially during their seasonal migrations or whenever they felt mistreated by either Iranian or Ottoman authorities. At times, the Ottoman or Iranian officials encouraged an unruly chief of the tribe to rebel and defect so that they could claim the tribe’s grazing lands as their own. Thus, on at least one occasion, the Ottoman authorities encouraged the Shakak tribal chief of the Somai-Baradoost to forsake his loyalty to the Iranian government and re-settle his clan on the Ottoman side of the border. Using this shift in loyalty as the model, the Ottoman authorities
24 Lady Shiel, Glimpses of Life and Manners in Persia, (London: John Murray, 1856), p. 337. 25 Afshar Sistani, Iraj, Moghadameie bar Shenakht-e Ilha, Chadorneshinan va Tavayef-e Ashayeri-ye Iran, 2 Vols, (Tehran: Homa Press, 1987), Vol. 1, p. 156. 26 Ibid. See also, Bamdad, Mehdi, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Vol. 2, p. 479. 27 Mirza Ja’afar Khan Moshir al-Dowleh, Resale-ye Tahqiqat-e Sarhaddiyeh, p. 166. 28 Ibid., pp. 154, 160, 161, 162, 165.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
63
then appealed to other branches of the Shakak to replicate the defecting agha and seek Ottoman protection.29 In the second half of the nineteenth century, the close alliance between the Qajars and the Shakak leadership began to unravel. In 1851, a chief of the Shakak, Ali Agha, was accused by Iranian authorities of pro-Ottoman sympathies. The Kurdish chief was detained as a rebel and dispatched to the court of the Qajar monarch, Nasser al-Din Shah.30 In 1853, the same Qajar monarch tried to impose the authority of the central government over the Shakak by appointing a sarparast (overseer) for the tribe.31 The sarparast was supposed to represent and safeguard the interests of the tribe and act as an intermediary between the tribe and the governorgeneral of Azerbaijan. In 1856, Iranian authorities accused a chief of the Shakak named Sultan Bey, of receiving orders from an Ottoman army commander to revolt against the Qajar state.32 Though eventually forced to submit to the authority of the Iranian government, Sultan Bey remained in a state of rebellion, eventually attacking and murdering a local Qajar army commander before he was himself killed.33 In the 1860s, the British consul, Keith Edward Abbott, described the Shakak as “a troublesome but not very numerous” Kurdish tribe residing in two rural districts of Somai and Chahriq on “the Turkish and Persian frontiers.”34 Abbott further observed that their chiefs, Mirza Agha and Ali Agha, were “continually at war or petty strife with each other though brothers.”35 In an article on the tribes of northern Kurdistan, published in 1863, William Spotswood wrote that the Shakak Kurds were found between Lakes Urumiyeh and Van.36 He also added that during “the last 29 Ibid., p. 165. 30 E’temad al-Saltaneh, Mohammad Hassan Khan, Mearat al-Buldan, 4 Vols, (Tehran:
Tehran University Press, 1982), Vol. 2, p. 1057. See also, Sabri Ates, , The OttomanIranian Borderlands: Making a Boundary, 1843–1914, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2015), p. 180. 31 Ibid., p. 1176. 32 Iraj Afshar Sistani, Moghadameie bar Shenakht-e Ilha, Chadorneshinan va Tavayef-e
Ashayeri-ye Iran, Vol. 1, p. 156. 33 Ibid., p.158. 34 Cities and Trade: Consul Abbott on the Economy and Society of Iran 1847–1866,
p. 231. 35 Ibid. 36 William Spottiswoode, “Sketch of the Tribes of Northern Kurdistan,” p. 245.
64
M. KIA
ten years” many of the Shakak tribesmen had adopted a settled mode of life, coming in “to buy and sell at the weekly markets held in the larger villages or towns; and many of them travelled peaceably on trading expeditions with the Nestorian [Assyrian] and Armenian caravans.”37 This change, according to the author, was partly “owing to the influence” exerted on the Shakak, “through the Nestorians, by the American missionaries established at Urumiyeh.”38 In July 1876, when Iranian troops attacked the rural district of Margavar, their numbers included Shakak horsemen and foot soldiers.39 Four years later in 1880, when the Kurdish leader, Sheik Ubeydullah of Nehri, attacked Iran from Ottoman territory, the Shakak tribe opposed the invasion. In 1896, the Shakak “ambushed some 800 Armenian revolutionaries retreating from Van in the Ottoman Empire, while two years later they were chasing Armenians” on behalf of the Iranian government.40 In the last decade of the nineteenth century, the British statesman, George Curzon, projected the population of the Shakak, a tribe of “noted robbers” at 1,500 families.41 By 1907, a British report described the Shakak as a large tribe occupying “many villages on the slopes north and northeast of Baradoost” and the hilly country of Somai; “a turbulent lot, more pastoral than agricultural, but wholly brigand,” and “continually raiding the villages in the north of Urmia plain and Salmas,” as well as “in the Turkish side in Gawad and Bashkala.”42 According to the same source, the Shakak were “a rather finer fighting type than most Kurds…well-armed and generally well horsed, and much feared by the
37 Ibid. 38 Ibid. 39 FO 416/35–38 & FO 881/9130, O’Conor to Grey, Pera, February 22, 1908, [7165], No. 85, Note communicated by the Ottoman Government to the Persian Embassy at Constantinople, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 276. 40 Gunter, Michael, Historical Dictionary of the Kurds, (Lanham, Maryland, and Oxford: 2004), p. 186. 41 George Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, Vol. 1, p. 555. 42 FO 416/35–38 & FO 881/9130, Dickson to O’Conor, Van, December 14, 1907,
No. 23, Enclosure 2 in No. 174, Report by Vice-Consul Dickson on his recent Journey through Turco-Persian territory, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 263.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
65
Persians and other Kurds.”43 By 1920, the population of the Shakak in northwestern Iran was estimated at 2,000 families.44 The short and fragmented references to the Shakak generally portray a tribal confederacy growing in size and ascending in power during the first decade of the twentieth century, when both the Ottoman Empire and Russia embarked on a policy of expanding their presence and influence in northwestern Iran. Beginning in 1905, the Ottoman Turks occupied parts of western Azerbaijan. Then, in 1909, Russian troops invaded Azerbaijan and seized Tabriz, the provincial capital. The central government in Tehran proved to be helpless in the face of foreign aggression. Without an army and an efficient governmental structure capable of defending the country’s borders, the Qajar state became increasingly inconsequential. As Iranian authority vanished from Azerbaijan, and the province emerged as a battleground between the Russian and Ottoman empires, the Kurdish tribal chiefs of northwestern Iran, including Simko, sought new imperial patrons and protectors. In 1905, many chose the patronage of the Ottoman sultan, who claimed to be the caliph or the religious and spiritual head of all Sunni Muslims in the world, but after 1909, when Russian forces occupied parts of northwestern Iran, some, including Simko, opted for a tactical alliance with the Czarist authorities.
Rise of Simko Ismail Agha Shakak, also known as Simko, Semko, Simitqu, Semitqu, one of the chiefs of the Shakak, was born in 1887 in Chahriq, in close proximity to the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. Both his father, Mohammad Agha, and his grandfather, Ali Agha (also known as Ali Khan), had served as the chief of the Avdoi branch of the Shakak tribe. During his tenure as the head of the Avdoi branch, Ali Agha carried out raids in Ottoman territory, forcing the Turks to demand that the Kurdish chief be removed from the border region between Iran and the Ottoman Empire. In 1880, when Sheikh Ubeydullah of Nehri invaded western Azerbaijan from Ottoman territory, Ali Agha refused to join the invaders. Instead, the Shakak chief gave a quota of soldiers to the Qajar army, “but it was believed that
43 Ibid. 44 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 48. See also, Iraj
Afshar Sistani, Moghadameie bar Shenakht-e Ilha, Vol. 1, p. 159.
66
M. KIA
for one he gave in loyalty, he gave five to the enemy.”45 The Shakak Kurds also used the distraction caused by Sheikh Ubeydullah’s invasion to occupy the mountain passes on the Ottoman-Iranian frontier and “to make roads unsafe.”46 Ali Agha’s activities and the complaints lodged against him by Ottoman border officials caused the Iranian authorities in Azerbaijan to dispatch troops against him.47 The Kurdish chief was detained and transported to Tabriz where he settled in “a small house under a guard, with permission to go about on foot, but not to mount a horse.”48 When he met a group of curious and inquisitive Americans in Tabriz, Ali Agha, who appeared with his wife unveiled, divulged to his guests that he had been “in a hundred battles, and that the scars on his face were the results of these contests.”49 He also told the foreign visitors that “he had known fifteen men who did not deserve as honorable a death as decapitation; so he had thrown them down, put stones on their heads, and stamped them to death with his foot.”50 The detention of Ali Agha caused his son, Mohammad Agha, to raise the flag of rebellion against the Iranian government.51 The Iranian authorities dispatched an army under the command of a Qajar prince, Hamid Mirza Nasser al-Dowleh, to suppress Mohammad Agha’s rebellion, but the prince failed to capture the Kurdish chief, who fled into Ottoman territory with his sons.52 Meanwhile, Ali Agha died in Tabriz. With Ali Agha out of the picture, his son, Mohammad Agha, reestablished contact with Iranian authorities and requested that he be permitted to return to Iran. Anxious to restore peace on its border with the Ottoman Empire, the Iranian government consented to Mohammad Agha’s repatriation. Once he had returned to Iran, Mohammad Agha was appointed governor of Chahriq. The honeymoon between the new Shakak chief and the Iranian government did not last very long. After a 45 S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, p. 121. 46 Ibid., p. 120. 47 Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯ afi, Khaterat va Asnad, Vol. 2, p. 447. 48 S. G. Wilson, Persian Life and Customs, p. 121. 49 Ibid. 50 Ibid. 51 Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯ afi, Khaterat va Asnad, Vol. 2, p. 447. 52 Ibid.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
67
short respite, Mohammad Agha and his sons organized plundering raids against rural communities of Khoy, Salmas, and the frontier region.53 In response, the government set a trap and invited the Kurdish chief and one of his sons, Jafar Agha, to a meeting where they were to be detained. Mohammad Agha and his son, however, escaped the trap, killing four government agents in the process.54 In spring 1905, Iran’s reigning monarch, Mozaffar al-Din Shah, embarked on his third and last trip to Europe. Mohammad Ali Mirza, the crown prince and the governor of Azerbaijan, was summoned to Tehran to serve as the Regent in the absence of his father. As a temporary substitute, Mohammad Ali Mirza appointed the veteran statesman, Hossein Qoli Khan Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯afi, as the interim governorgeneral of Azerbaijan.55 According to an Iranian historian, while the crown prince was in Tehran, the Shakak chieftain, Jafar Agha, continued to cause trouble for the central government.56 The Kurdish warlord carried out swift raids from his stronghold at Chahriq, raiding and plundering villages on the plains of Khoy, Salmas, and Urumiyeh. The attacks on these rural communities were opposed by peasant farmers and landlords alike. Among those who complained vociferously about Jafar Agha’s raids were chiefs of the rival Mamadi/Mamdoi branch of the Shakak, who owned extensive real estate, including villages, in western Azerbaijan. This did not mean, however, that Jafar Agha and his attacks were unpopular among all segments of Kurdish society. To the contrary, the Kurdish chief enjoyed immense popularity among the poorer sections of Kurdish society, who viewed him as a hero at least in part because he distributed a portion of his loot among the poor.57 Basil Nikitine, who served as Russia’s consul in Urumiyeh during the First World War, wrote, “souvent, après avoir dépouillé un richard, il distribuait une partie du butin 53 Ibid. 54 Ibid. 55 A. C. Wratislaw, A Consul in the East, p. 206. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, (Tehran: Amir Kabir Press, 1978), p. 143. 56 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 143. See also,
Safaei, Ebrahim, Rahbaran-e Mashruteh, 2 Vols, (Tehran: Javidan Press, 1968), Vol. 2, p. 37. 57 Martin van Bruinessen. “Kurdish Tribes and the State of Iran: The Case of Simko’s Revolt,” in Richard Tapper, The Conflict of Tribe and State in Iran and Afghanistan, (London: Croom Helm, 1983), p. 380.
68
M. KIA
aux miséreux” (often after robbing a rich man he distributed part of the booty to the poor).58 In response to Jafar Agha’s raids, the Qajar government “resorted to the old tried and tested method” of neutralizing a rebellious tribal khan by appointing him governor of a “border district.”59 Thus, the authorities in Tabriz named Jafar Agha Sarhad Dar (Warden of the Frontier) for Chahriq and the adjoining districts.60 As a representative of the government on a frontier district, the authorities hoped that the Kurdish chief would cease his raiding campaigns against the rural communities he had to govern. The new position kept the Kurdish chief quiet, but only temporarily. He soon resumed his old practice of plundering defenseless villages on the plains of Salmas and Khoy. Clearly, the government strategy of neutralizing Jafar Agha by bribing him with a new position and title had proved to be a failure. The governor-general, however, refused to give up and pulled another trick from his hat. This time, Nezam al-Saltaneh resorted to an old diplomatic ruse. Claiming that he intended to discuss the border disputes between Iran and the Ottoman Empire and reconcile any discord that existed between the Shakak and the Iranian government, the governor invited Jafar Agha to Tabriz under safe conduct. To reassure the Kurdish chief of his safety, Nezam al-Saltaneh swore on a copy of the Quran that if Jafar Agha “came, he should leave Tabriz in safety and honor.”61 Reassured by the promise of safe conduct, Jafar Agha, who was by then recognized as the chief of the Avdoi of the northern section of Shakak at Chahriq, travelled to Tabriz in late spring 1905, accompanied by an entourage of seven Shakak tribesmen, including his maternal uncle.62 While the Kurdish chief was being entertained by local officials in Tabriz,
58 Basile Nikitine. Les Kurdes. Étude Sociologique et Historique, p. 79. See also, Martin van Bruinessen, “Kurdish Tribes and the State of Iran: The Case of Simko’s Revolt,” p. 380. 59 Ibid. 60 Barclay to Grey, Gulhak, Tehran, December 19, 1911, [1954], No. 248, Enclosure 2
in No. 101, Joint Report by Messrs. Shipley and Minorsky, British and Russian Delegates, on the State of Affairs on the Turco-Persian Frontier, June 8–September 16, 1911, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 549. 61 W.A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind: Life in Eastern Kurdistan. (London: A & C Black Ltd., 1922), p. 216. 62 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 143.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
69
Nezam al-Saltaneh sent a telegram to the crown prince in Tehran and informed him that the Shakak chief and his father could be pacified if the government offered Jafar Agha a three-year tax forgiveness, and bestowed upon the young chieftain the title of Salar al-Ashayer (Leader of Tribes) as well as a sword of honor and a one thousand toman salary. In return, the government could ask Jafar Agha to convince his father to return from Ottoman territory to Iran.63 Once his father had returned to Iran, Mohammad Agha would be re-appointed as the governor of Chahriq, and his son could assume the governorship of Somai-Baradoost after he had removed Mostafa Khan, the rival chief of the Mamadi/Mamdoi branch of the Shakak.64 Nezam al-Saltaneh sent his proposal for peace to the crown prince in Tehran. In response, the crown prince rejected any form of reconciliation with the Shakak chief and ordered Nezam al-Saltaneh to either imprison or execute Jafar Agha.65 After a short stay in Tabriz, Jafar Agha informed the governor that he intended to depart the city and return home. On the day of his departure, July 4, 1905, Jafar Agha paid a visit to bid farewell to the governor, who had organized a reception in his honor.66 The Kurdish chief was asked to wait in an anteroom, where an agent of the governor entered and “discharged a revolver into the chieftain’s body.”67 A group of armed guards also murdered two of Jafar Agha’s bodyguards waiting outside in a corridor for their chief.68 The remaining members of Jafar Agha’s entourage killed nine agents of the governor before fleeing Tabriz for the safety of their home territory west of Lake Urumiyeh.69 The authorities in Tabriz “made as much capital as they
63 Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯ afi, Khaterat va Asnad, Vol. 2, pp. 447–448. 64 Ibid., p. 448. 65 Ibid. Se also, Hedayat, Mokhber al-Saltaneh, Khaterat va Khatarat, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1982), p. 323. See also, Ebrahim Safaei, Rahbaran-e Mashruteh, Vol. 2, p. 37. See also, Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Vol. 1, pp. 240, 453. 66 Hardinge to the Marquees of Lansdowne, Gulhak, July 19, 1905, No. 157, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 2, p. 417. 67 A.C. Wratislaw, A Consul in the East, pp. 207–208. Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 144. 68 Ibid., p. 208. 69 Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯ afi, Khaterat va Asnad, Vol. 2, p. 448. See also, Ahmad Kasravi,
Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 144. According to another source, Jafar Agha had already departed Tabriz loaded with honors and decorations, when one hundred yards from the
70
M. KIA
could out of the three corpses, having them dragged in triumph through the streets and then hung them by the heels, like carcasses in a butcher’s shop, from a first-floor balcony overlooking a public square.”70 The local paper in Tabriz praised the cowardly murder of Jafar Agha, and the criminal behavior of Iranian authorities, as a triumph of the government’s wise policies.71 For his part, Simko was quoted by one author as saying that after the murder of his brother, he would never trust an Iranian, or “look on one as a gentleman again.”72
Ottoman Turks Invade Western Azerbaijan In October 1905, a few months after Jafar Agha’s murder by Iranian authorities in Tabriz, Ottoman army units invaded and occupied several rural districts in western Azerbaijan. The Turks exploited the RussoJapanese war (1904–1905), as well as the Russian revolution of 1905, to carve out a narrow corridor inside Iranian territory. Ottoman Turkish forces, accompanied by irregular Kurdish units, first occupied the rural district of Lahijan southwest of Lake Urumiyeh. The district incorporated the villages of Vazneh and Passveh on the Iranian side of the frontier.73 The principal tribes of this region were the Sunni Kurdish tribes of Mangur and Mamash. The headquarters of the Mangur was at Vazneh, while the headquarters of Mamash was at Passveh, a fortified village “24 miles west of Savojbolagh.”74 In spring 1906, the
gate of the city he was called back for a last word. The Kurdish chief returned to Tabriz and entered the governor’s reception room where he was shot dead from “behind a grating.” See, W.A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind: Life in Eastern Kurdistan, p. 216. 70 A.C. Wratislaw, A Consul in the East, p. 208. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 145. 71 Basile Nikitine, Les Kurdes. Étude Sociologique et Historique, p. 80. 72 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great
War, (New York: The Macmillan Company, 1920), p. 36. 73 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1906, [FO 371/149 and FO 416/26–29], O’Conor to Grey, Constantinople, May 2, 1906, [15460], No. 302, Enclosure in No. 110, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, pp. 38–39. See also, Grey to Findlay, May 19, 1910, Confidential [14951], No. 35, Enclosure in No. 1, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 421. 74 Ibid. See also, Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1906, [FO 371/149 and FO 416/26–29], Duff to Grey, Tehran, April 24, 1906, [16424], No. 113, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Volume 4, p. 41.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
71
Ottomans designated Lahijan as a sanjak or an administrative sub-unit of Sulaymaniyah (in present-day northern Iraq), and appointed a Turkish kaymakam (qaimmaqam) (deputy governor/commissioner in charge of the administration) for the rural district.75 The Turks then expanded the area under their occupation to incorporate a strip of territory along the Iranian border extending from a point southwest of Savojbolagh to a point west of Khoy.76 The main objective of the Ottoman invasion was to secure a boundary that would allow the Turkish army to move troops from Mosul in northern Iraq into the Russian-controlled southern Caucasus.77 The Turkish occupation of rural districts in northwestern Iran also made it easier for the Ottoman forces to hold the frontier against a future Russian attack. By occupying the remote mountainous border area, the Turks secured their possession of vital mountain passes, whose strategic value could be immense in any future Russo-Ottoman war.78 As they expanded the territory under their control, the Ottomans called on the Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan to rise and attack the non-Sunni towns and villages of the region. The Qajar government was convinced that the Turks held territorial designs on northwestern Iran and that they intended to manipulate the Sunni Kurdish tribes of the region as a convenient tool to implement their expansionist policies. The weak and incompetent Qajar monarch, Mozaffar al-Din Shah, and his inept and Russophile crown prince, Mohammad Ali Mirza, lacked the military muscle and the political acumen to dislodge the Ottoman forces. Unable to counter Ottoman aggression on their own, the Iranian authorities appealed to Britain and Russia to exert pressure on the Ottoman government to withdraw its forces from western Azerbaijan. These diplomatic efforts, however, failed to produce any positive results.
75 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1906, [FO 371/149 and FO 416/26–29], Duff to Grey, Tehran, April 24, 1906, [16424], No. 113, Enclosure in No. 135, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 41. 76 “Urmia: Statement by the Rev. William A. Shedd, D.D. of the American (Presbyterian) Mission Station at Urmia; Communicated by the Board of Foreign Missions of the Presbyterian Church of the U.S.A.,” in Viscount Bryce, The Treatment of Armenians in the Ottoman Empire 1915–1916, p. 100. 77 Ibid. 78 Schofield, Richard (ed.), The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. xxiii.
72
M. KIA
By May 1906, the Ottomans had completed their occupation of the rural districts of Targavar, Margavar, and Somai-Baradoost west of Urumiyeh and appropriated the share of the harvest designated to be sent as tax to the Iranian government.79 The Shakak occupied many of the villages on the slopes north and northeast of Baradoost and the adjacent hilly country of Somai. At the time when Ottoman troops invaded the area, the chief of the Shakak in this section was a certain Ismail Agha, who collaborated with the invading Turks. With encouragement from Ottoman officials, the Shakak intensified their campaign of robbery and murder. When the Iranian government sent an expedition to re-impose its authority over western Azerbaijan in spring 1907, the Ottomans mobilized a counter-expedition, which drove back the Qajar army over the course of the summer, re-capturing the whole of the highlands west of Urumiyeh.80 Once again, the occupying Ottoman forces encouraged Kurdish tribal groups to raid, plunder, and burn the rural communities of western Azerbaijan—especially the Armenian and Assyrian villages up to the very gates of Urumiyeh. The Ottomans combined their military incursions into western Azerbaijan with a policy of winning over the Kurdish tribes of Iran by “bribes and threats.”81 They also appealed to pan-Islamism or the unity of all Muslims under the leadership of the Ottoman sultan-caliph as the religious and spiritual leader of all Sunni Muslims. This Ottoman strategy succeeded most often when applied to the Sunni Kurdish tribal groups such as the Shakak. However, the majority of Shi’i Kurds, and even some Sunni Kurdish groups, “resisted” the Ottoman agitation “despite the anarchy and ruin effected in their territories under the incitement of Turkish agents.”82 For example, Kurdish tribes of Marivan and Owraman (Avroman), though Sunni and torn by petty warfare, refused to open
79 Spring-Rice to Government of India, Tehran, November 9, 1906, [39527], in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 3, p. 47. 80 Spring-Rice to Grey, Abinger Hall, Dorking, December 21, 1907, General Report
on Persia for the first Nine Months of the year 1907, Confidential (9095), [883], in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 3, p. 405. 81 Louther to Grey, Constantinople, February 28, 1911, [8102], Enclosure in No. 122, Greig to Louther, Mosul, No. 1 Confidential, Mosul, January 12, 1911, British Public Record Office, Kew. 82 Ibid.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
73
negotiations with the Turks. Farther south, in the vicinity of Kermanshah, the Ottomans confronted even stiffer resistance from the “Ali Allahi Guran,” and the “Shi’i Kalhor,” the largest Kurdish tribe in Iran.83 Among the first Kurdish tribal chiefs to join the Ottoman invading forces was Simko, who used the murder of his brother, Jafar Agha, as the impetus to organize a series of plundering raids against Shi’i Azerbaijani, as well as Assyrian and Armenian rural communities surrounding Urumiyeh.84 Accompanied by a large number of his men, Simko then went over to the Ottoman Turks and sought their protection.85 Tahir Pasha, then Ottoman governor of Van, befriended Simko and gave him and his men some land some thirty miles east of Van.86 In return for his close alliance with Ottoman authorities, Simko was promoted to the rank of colonel in the Hamidiye Light Cavalry Regiments.87 An irregular militia composed of Kurdish cavalry battalions headed by their own tribal chiefs, the Hamidiye units were organized by the Ottoman sultan, Abdulhamid II (r. 1876–1909) in 1891. One of the main objectives for creation of the Hamidiye regiments was to transform the Kurdish tribes of eastern Anatolia from autonomous political entities challenging the authority of the state into an arm of the central government as it tried to suppress Armenian nationalists. Simko and his father, Mohammad Agha, also used the Ottoman invasion of western Azerbaijan as an opportunity to appeal to the Ottoman sultan, Abdulhamid II, to avenge the murder of Jafar Agha. In February 1907, Mohammad Agha travelled to Istanbul to make his appeal to the sultan in person. Once in Istanbul, the Kurdish chief received a warm reception from Turkish officials, and the Porte bestowed the title of “pasha” upon Mohammad Agha.88 When the Iranian government became aware of Mohammad Agha’s activities in the Ottoman capital, it instructed its ambassador in Istanbul to neutralize the embarrassment 83 Ibid. 84 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 425. 85 FO 416/35–38 & FO 881/9130, Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman
frontier, 1908, O’Conor to Grey, Constantinople, February 5, 1908, Enclosure 1 in No. 174, Report by Vice Consul Dickson on his recent Journey through Turco-Persian territory, Van, December 14, 1907, No. 28, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 267. 86 Ibid. 87 W. A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally, p. 36. 88 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 145.
74
M. KIA
caused by the Shakak chief. What exactly followed is unclear. What we do know is that the Ottoman government rescinded the title of pasha that Mohammad Agha had received.89 The Shakak chief was subsequently imprisoned in the Ottoman capital, where he died a short time later. Many years later, a Russian official ascribed Simko’s “hatred of the Turks” to the fact that the Kurdish chief’s father had died in an Ottoman prison in Istanbul.90 When Simko’s patron, Tahir Pasha, was removed from the governorship of Van and replaced by a certain Ali Bey, differences emerged between the Shakak chief and the new governor. As a result, Simko and his people returned to Iran in spring 1907. Between his departure in 1905 and his return in 1907, Simko and his father lost their control over Chahriq. In Simko’s place, the Iranian authorities appointed his rival, the Shakak chief, Ismail Agha, the district governor of Somai and their tax collector at Baradoost.91 Consequently, upon arriving in Iran, Simko was appointed by the Khan of Maku as the governor of the frontier district of Qotur, where he collected all the taxes “for his own pocket,” lived in great state, and periodically raided “the villages in Salmas and Khoy Plains,” when he was in need of money, “taking their sheep as a punishment for their not accepting the Shah.”92 The Kurdish chief also joined forces with the “Jalali and Aroshi Kurds of the Khan of Maku,” Eqbal al-Saltaneh, who treated Simko as his lieutenant.93 Thus, Simko fell into the Qajar orbit.
89 Ibid. 90 Reynolds, Michael A. Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman
and Russian Empires 1908–1918, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2011), No. 97, p. 69. 91 FO 416/35–38 & FO 881/9130, Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman
frontier, 1908, O’Conor to Grey, Constantinople, February 5, 1908, Enclosure 1 in No. 174, Report by Vice Consul Dickson on his recent Journey through Turco-Persian territory, Van, December 14, 1907, No. 28, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 267. 92 Ibid. 93 Ibid. See also, Lowther to Grey, Constantinople, March 23, 1909, [11849], No.
296, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 354.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
75
Simko, Constitutional Revolution & Ottoman Invasion Simko’s return to Iran corresponded with the dawn of a new era in Iranian history, as well as the country’s relationship with Russia, Britain, and the Ottoman Empire. The constitutional revolution, which had commenced in December of 1905, ended on August 5, 1906, after the reigning Qajar monarch, Mozaffar al-Din Shah, granted a constitution and ordered the establishment of a national consultative assembly. Despite initial jubilation surrounding the creation of a parliament, the relationship between the Majlis and the royal court deteriorated quickly after the death of the ailing shah on January 8, 1907, and the ascendency of his son, Mohammad Ali Shah, as the new ruler of Iran. The knee-jerk declarations at the time by some western-educated notables and intellectuals that the granting of a constitution marked the beginning of a new era replacing monarchical absolutism with a new political system based on law and democratic principles proved to be a lazy fantasy; these bombastic pronouncements reflected a complete lack of appreciation for the durability of authoritarianism as a persistent and unrelenting phenomenon in Iran’s long and rich history. The growing conflict between Mohammad Ali Shah and the Majlis erupted into a semi-civil war after the Cossack Brigade under the command of the Russian officer, Colonel Liakhov, attacked and destroyed the parliament on June 23, 1908. In the days following the bombardment of the Majlis, the provincial capital of Azerbaijan, Tabriz, emerged as the bastion of Iranian nationalism and constitutionalism. Pro-constitution forces in Tabriz, Khoy, and Salmas, backed by revolutionaries from southern Caucasus, mobilized their supporters, while the shah called on his supporters among the Turkic and Kurdish tribes of the province to rally to his flag and crush the constitutionalists in Tabriz and other urban centers of the province. In response, the governor of Maku, Eqbal alSaltaneh, rose in support of the shah and appealed to the Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan and eastern Anatolia to attack the pro-constitution forces in the districts of Khoy and Salmas. One of the chiefs to join the Khan of Maku was Simko who, together with several other Kurdish chiefs, raised an army of three thousand men. After a three-day battle and “a great slaughter,” the Kurdish army, led by Simko and Eqbal al-Saltaneh’s nephew, inflicted a humiliating defeat on constitutionalist
76
M. KIA
forces near Khoy in January 1909.94 The military victory was followed by a sustained campaign of looting villages and killing the rural population.95 By the time the violent confrontation ended, most villages in the area had fallen into “a pitiable condition,” either “oppressed by the revolutionaries of Khoy and Dilman [capital of the district of Salmas],” or “pillaged and massacred by the reactionaries of the Khan of Maku and his lieutenant, Simko Agha.”96 After his clash with constitutionalist forces, Simko was appointed governor of the district of Qotur on the Iranian-Ottoman frontier.97 By collaborating with the Khan of Maku, Simko also gained a free hand in attacking and plundering rural communities between Dilman and Khoy. The civil war between Iranian constitutionalists and the pro-shah tribal chiefs such as Simko provided the newly established Young Turk government in Istanbul with an opportunity to rejuvenate the Turkish “forward policy” and dispatch an expeditionary force to Khoy, while another Ottoman detachment occupied three villages in the Salmas district.98 After seizing power in July 1908, the Young Turk regime had withdrawn some of its troops from Iranian territory, though a number of Ottoman military detachments remained in occupation of several rural districts in western Azerbaijan. Once they had consolidated their position in Istanbul in 1909, the Young Turks reverted back to a more aggressive policy vis-à-vis Iran. During their incursions into Iranian territory, the Ottomans relied on support from Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan, including the
94 FO 416/35–38 & FO 881/9130, Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1908, O’Conor to Grey, Constantinople, February 5, 1908, Enclosure 1 in No. 174, Report by Vice Consul Dickson on his recent Journey through Turco-Persian territory, Van, December 14, 1907, No. 28, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 267. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 811. See also, McDowall, David, A Modern History of the Kurds, (London: I.B. Tauris, 1996), p. 111, No. 36. 95 Malekzadeh, Mehdi, Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Mashrutiyat-e Iran, Volume 5, 1113. 96 Lowther to Grey, Constantinople, March 23, 1909, [11849], No. 205, Enclosure in
No. 1, ice-Consul Dickson to Lowther, Van, February 24, 1909, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 354. 97 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, p. 473. 98 Grey to Findlay, May 19, 1910, [14951], No. 35, Enclosure in No. 1., in The
Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 422. See also, Lowther to Grey, Constantinople, May 25, 1910, [19085], No. 341, Enclosure in No. 1. Morgan to Lowther, Van May 9, 1910, p. 425.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
77
Shakak. This open support allowed the Turks to occupy several frontier districts west of Lake Urumiyeh, including Simko’s birthplace, Chahriq, in July 1908.99 On 18 July, some 120 Turkish troops occupied Qulonji (Kulunji), twenty miles north of Urumiyeh.100 On this particular occasion, the invading Ottoman troops were accompanied by fifty armed Kurds led by a Shakak chief named Ismail Agha who “addressed letters to various villages informing them that they had been annexed by Turkey.”101 The letters by the Shakak chief, who should not be mistaken for Simko, legitimized the right of the Turkish invaders to collect taxes from the native population in western Azerbaijan.102 Ottoman troops in the company of the Shakak chief also collected taxes in Chahriq.103 In sharp contrast to the Shakak chiefs of Somai and Chahriq, who collaborated with Ottoman authorities, Simko refused to join the invading Turks. The Iranian authorities had, in their despair, entrusted the maintenance of order from Maku to the borders of Urumiyeh district, to Eqbal al-Saltaneh.104 The Khan of Maku in turn mobilized the support of Simko and neighboring Kurdish chiefs by allowing them a free hand to pillage rural communities in the districts of Khoy, Salmas, and Urumiyeh. Backed by Eqbal al-Saltaneh, Simko went one step further and confronted the Shakak chiefs who had joined the Ottomans. The efforts by the Khan of Maku and Simko to maintain Iranian authority over western Azerbaijan did not deter the Young Turks from fortifying their claims over Iranian territory by all means possible, including Kurdish tribal raids, military occupation on the pretext of protecting Ottoman subjects, intimidation intended to drive the rural communities of western Azerbaijan into soliciting Ottoman nationality,
99 Barclay to Grey, Tehran, February 10, 1910, Persia. Annual Report, 1909, [8669], No. 19, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 4, p. 433. 100 Ibid. 101 Ibid. 102 Ibid. 103 Sabri Ates, The Ottoman-Iranian Borderlands: Making a Boundary, 1843–1914, ,
p. 245. 104 FO 416/35–38 & FO 881/9130, Marling to Grey, Gulhak, June 15, 1908, [23119], No. 144, Enclosure 1 in No. 51, Wratislaw to Marling, Urmi, May 17, 1908, No. 8, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 322.
78
M. KIA
and distribution of Ottoman passports.105 In December 1909, the Ottoman forces advanced all along the line and occupied the rural districts of Somai-Baradoost, Targavar, Margavar, Dasht, and Sulduz. By May 1910, the Young Turk regime was appointing civil administrators (idareh memuri) to govern Sulduz, Oshnaviyeh, and Chahriq, the birthplace of Simko.106 Additionally, Ottoman administrators were stating, openly and publicly, that instead of protesting the occupation of its territory, Iran had to recognize that the districts that had been occupied by the Turks were now the property of the Ottoman state.107 Though the constitutionalist forces seized Tehran in August 1909 and forced Mohammad Ali Shah to abdicate, Simko remained loyal to Iran’s central government, refusing to follow the model set by Shakak chiefs of Chahriq and Somai, who had thrown their support behind the Ottoman Turks. Simko’s refusal to join the Turks angered the Ottoman authorities in western Azerbaijan. In October 1910, Mehmed Zeki, the Ottoman kaymakam of the Mahmudi district in the Lake Van region, wrote Simko to warn the Kurdish chief that he had no choice but to cooperate with Ottoman officials and hand them the district of Qotur.108 Using a carrot and stick approach, the Ottoman official promised Simko a pardon for his past crimes, a “robe of honor” and “the governorship” of Somai and Qotur if he surrendered Qotur to the Turkish authorities.109 Mehmed Zaki threatened Simko that if he failed to accommodate the Turkish demands, the Ottoman government could easily destroy him “in four hours,” even if he flew “to the gates of Tabriz.”110
105 Grey to Findlay, Persia Confidential [14951], No. 35, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 422. 106 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1910 [FO 371/948–949], Lowther to Grey, May 25, 1910, Persia Confidential [19085], No. 341, Enclosure in No. 1, Morgan to Louther, Van, May 9, 1910, No. 11, The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 425. 107 Ibid. 108 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1911, [FO 371/1178–
1179 & FO 416/51], Barclay to Grey, Gulhak, December 19, 1911, [1954], No. 248, Annex 1 to Joint Report by Shipley and Minorsky, Translation of the Report of the Governor-General of the Urmia to the Persian Foreign Office, October 15, 1910, No. 313., in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 559. 109 Ibid., pp. 559–560. 110 Ibid., p. 559.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
79
The district of Qotur incorporated thirty-five villages111 and had long served as a bone of contention between the Ottoman Empire and Iran. In spring 1849, Ottoman troops had seized the district and forced Iranian authorities to evacuate it.112 In the deliberations of the Ottoman-Iranian Delimitation Commissions of 1849–1852, the Qotur district remained a source of disagreement between the two governments. According to the Article 60 of the Congress of Berlin (June 13–July 13, 1878), the Sublime Porte agreed to cede to Iran the town and territory of Qotur.113 After 1905, recognizing the growing weakness of the Qajar state, the Ottomans tried to renege on their international commitments and regain control over the predominantly Kurdish-populated district. Simko forwarded the threatening letter he had received from the Turks to Iranian authorities. In response, the governor of Urumiyeh wrote to Simko that, as a warden of the frontier, the Kurdish chief was obligated to inform the Ottoman official that the Turkish troops must evacuate Chahriq and deliver it to Iranian authorities.114 Otherwise, the Ottomans should prepare themselves to meet “with a severe repulse” especially if they decide to trespass on Iranian territory.115 The Iranian governor also reminded Simko that the Turks were enticing him with the governorship of Somai only to undermine his allegiance to the Iranian state.116 Simko’s persistent refusal to collaborate with Turks ignited the fury of Ottoman commanders in western Azerbaijan. One of these officers, Remiz Bey, not only denounced the Avdoi branch of the Shakak as “inveterate robbers” 111 Mirza Ja’afar Khan Moshir al-Dowleh, Resale-ye Tahqiqat-e Sarhaddiyeh, p. 178. 112 Ibid. 113 Adamiyat, Fereydoun, Amir Kabir va Iran, (Tehran: Kharazmi Press, 1982), p. 598. See also, Congress of Berlin, Les Protocoles du Congrès de Berlin Avec le Traité Préliminaire de San-Stefano, (St Albans: Wentworth Press, 2019). See also, W. N. Medlicott, The Congress of Berlin and After: A Diplomatic History of the Near Eastern Settlement, (London: Methuen & Co, January, 1938). On the illegal occupation of Qotur or Qatur by Ottoman forces, see Barclay to Grey, Tehran, December 19, 1911, [1954], No. 248, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 546. 114 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1911, [FO 371/1178–
1179 & FO 416/51], Barclay to Grey, Gulhak, December 19, 1911, [1954], Annex 1 to Joint Report by Shipley and Minorsky, Translation of the Report of the GovernorGeneral of the Urmia to the Persian Foreign Office, October 15, 1910, No. 313., in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 559. 115 Ibid. 116 Ibid.
80
M. KIA
and “evil-doers,” but also threatened that if the chief of the Avdoi Shakaks, Simko, were not handed over to Ottoman authorities by Iran, the Ottoman kaymakam of Chahriq would direct the Shakak chief, Omar Agha, to seize Dilman the capital of the district of Salmas.117 This note clearly indicated that Simko’s birthplace, Chahriq, had been annexed and ruled directly by the Turks, who were playing one Shakak chief against another.
Simko & the Russian Occupation of Azerbaijan Simko escaped the wrath of Ottoman authorities in western Azerbaijan by establishing a friendly relationship with Russian officials in the province. As early as April 1909, Russia had used the opportunity created by the semi-civil war between the Qajar monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah, and the constitutionalist forces to invade Azerbaijan and station troops in Tabriz and several other towns. One of the main objectives of Czarist Russia was the incorporation of Azerbaijan into the Russian Empire. Another goal of the Russian invasion was to pacify and silence Tabriz, the heart of Iranian nationalism and constitutionalism. Using Tabriz as their operational base, Russian authorities expanded their military occupation of Azerbaijan in all directions, especially toward the western districts of the province, which the Ottoman Turks had occupied. The power and influence of Czarist Russia in Azerbaijan increased significantly in December 1911, after Russian occupation forces in Tabriz, backed by reinforcements from south Caucasus, attacked constitutionalists in the city. Despite heroic resistance by the people of Tabriz, the Russians forced the city into submission by executing some of its most prominent leaders, including the highly respected Shi’i religious leader, Seqat al-Islam Tabrizi, on 31 December. The bloody repression unleashed by Czarist armies against Iranian constitutionalists in 1911 solidified Russian military presence in Azerbaijan. By October 1912, the Czarist army had assembled a force of 4,000 men in the Urumiyeh region, some
117 Barclay to Grey, Tehran, December 1, 1911, [Confidential 50544], No. 236, Diary (No. 7) of the Itinerary of the British and Russian Delegates from Urmia to Tabreez through Anzal and Salmas, September 9–16, 1911, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 534.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
81
of whom were dispatched to Khoy and Salmas.118 As long as Russian troops occupied strategic positions in Azerbaijan, the Ottoman Turks felt justified maintaining an equal number of troops in the western districts of the province.119 The balance of power in northwestern Iran shifted dramatically when Ottoman forces began to evacuate western Azerbaijan in November 1912,120 after the member states of the Balkan League, namely Serbia, Bulgaria, Greece, and Montenegro, attacked the Ottoman Empire in the First Balkan War. On November 15, 1912, “the Ottoman Minister of Foreign Affairs admitted that his government had been at fault” in western Azerbaijan’s border zone “since 1905.”121 The Ottoman ambassador at Tehran also informed the Iranian government that “the Porte was prepared to withdraw its troops from the contested zone” provided Iran would occupy the evacuated districts and “undertake the protection of the Sunni population.”122 The Iranian government “agreed to the proposal, and the withdrawal of the Turkish troops commenced.”123 By the end of November, the Ottoman Empire “had evacuated all its former garrisons” and Iranian troops, “under various local chiefs,” were reoccupying the border districts.124 By December, Ottoman troops were withdrawing from the rural districts of Sulduz, Lahijan, Vazneh, Margavar, Sardasht, and Baneh, as well as villages adjacent to the Salmas plain.125 The Turkish withdrawal, which was completed in early 1913, allowed the Iranian government to dispatch officials to take charge of the districts evacuated 118 Townley to Grey, Tehran, October 29, 1912, Persia Confidential, [48927], No. 226, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 5, p. 453. See also, Townley to Grey, Tehran, March 18, 1913, Persia Annual Report, [15876], No. 66, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 5, p. 482. 119 Townley to Grey, Tehran, February 18, 1913, Persia Annual Report 1913, [15876], No. 55, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Vol. 5, p. 482. 120 Townley to Grey, Tehran, November 27, 1912, No. 240, Persia Confidential [53557], No. 240, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Vol. 5, p. 456. 121 Schofield, Richard (ed.)., The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 5, p. xxvi. 122 Townley to Grey, Tehran, March 18, 1913. Persia Annual Report, 1912, Confiden-
tial (10,210) [15876] No. 66, in Iran Political Diaries, Vol. 5, p. 482. 123 Ibid. 124 Ibid. 125 Schofield, Richard (ed.)., The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Volume 5, p. xxvi. See also, Louther to Grey, Constantinople, November 28, 1912, Persia Confidential [51232], No. 1004, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 5, p. 509.
82
M. KIA
by Ottoman Turks.126 Kurdish tribal chiefs, who had collaborated with Turkish occupation forces, hurriedly switched their allegiance to Iran. Anxious to convey the message that they were the new masters of the region, Russian authorities rushed to inform the Kurdish leadership in the region that the departure of Turkish troops had been accomplished as a direct result of Russian intervention, and it had nothing to do with the policies and actions of the toothless Qajar state.127 In demonstrating their determination to remain the supreme power in northwestern Iran, the Russians did not decrease the number of their troops in the Khoi-Urumiyeh area, which had been “considerably increased just before the Turkish evacuation, although the ostensible reason for their presence,” namely “the Turkish menace, had been removed.”128 As Russia accelerated the process of converting Azerbaijan into a province of the Russian Empire, the Czarist army increased its forces throughout the province. By the end of 1913, Russia maintained approximately a ten-thousand-man army in Azerbaijan, of which 2,000 were at Tabriz, 3,000 at Khoy, 1,500 at Urumiyeh, 2,000 in Ardabil, and a few hundred in Savojbolagh.129 The most difficult task for the Russian troops was the maintenance of security on the Ottoman-Iranian frontier. The Russian force along the line running from Khoy in the north to Savojbolagh in the south was inadequate to secure the porous border between the Ottoman Empire and Iran, unless Russia enlisted the support of various Kurdish chiefs, including Simko, who in return for their services received generous payments from the Czarist government. By 1912, the Russian authorities were funneling significant amounts of cash and arms to Kurdish tribal chiefs.130 The growing military presence of Russia in northwestern Iran, especially after 1911, convinced Simko to collaborate closely with Czarist authorities. To survive on a border region, where the balance of power 126 Ibid. 127 John Tchalenko, Images From the Endgame, p. 92. 128 Townley to Grey, Tehran, March 18, 1913. Persia Annual Report, 1912, Confiden-
tial (10,210) [15876] No. 66, in Iran Political Diaries, Vol. 5, p. 482. 129 Townley to Grey, Tehran, February 18, 1914, Persia Annual Report, 1913, [10393], No. 55, Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Vol. 5, p. 571. 130 Somakian, Manoug. Empires in Conflict: Armenia and the Great Powers, 1895–1920, (London: I.B. Tauris, 1995), p. 52. See also, Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 63.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
83
shifted on a regular basis, the Kurdish chief required a powerful patron and protector to safeguard his authority. The Russians were also anxious to use the Kurdish tribes of the region as a means of consolidating their military presence in Azerbaijan. At the same time, the Russians sought to destabilize Turkish rule in eastern Anatolia. One of the strategies utilized by Russia was to take advantage of the Ottoman preoccupation with the Italian invasion of Libya (1911) followed by the two Balkan wars (1912–1913) to instigate Kurdish tribal rebellions in the regions of Siirt, Van, and Bitlis. In March 1911, with Russian encouragement and support, the Kurdish notable, Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, established contact with Simko. A grandson of Emir Bedir Khan, the last hereditary prince of the Kurdish Bohtan principality in Ottoman Kurdistan, and the son of the Ottoman high official, Nejib Pasha Bedir Khan and his wife, Hanife, Abdurrezzak Bey had joined government service from a young age. Beginning in 1885, he worked for four years at the Ottoman ministry of foreign affairs.131 In 1889, he was dispatched to Russia, where he served at the Ottoman embassy in Saint Petersburg. When he returned to Istanbul, Abdurrezzak Bey requested a promotion. He was appointed to a position at the Ottoman consulate in Tehran, but he was recalled to Istanbul before reaching the Iranian capital. Instead of returning to Istanbul, Abdurrezzak Bey travelled first to Yerevan and thence to Tiflis, Batumi, and Kiev. He eventually ended up visiting England, where he stayed for a short time in Brighton in the winter 1894.132 Under pressure from the Ottoman government and his father, Nejib Pasha, Abdurrezzak Bey returned to Istanbul and was appointed the assistant to the master of ceremonies in the Yildiz Palace in January 1895. In March 1906, Abdurrezzak Bey was accused of plotting the murder of the prefect of Istanbul, Ridvan Pasha. The Kurdish dignitary and “all male members of the Bedirkhani family over the age of twelve,” as well as a large group of his relatives were rounded up and transported
131 For Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan’s life, see Bedirhan, Abdurrezzak, Otobiyografya, translated by Hasan Cuni, (Istanbul: Perî Yayinlari, 2000). See also, Barbara Henning, Narratives of the History of the Ottoman-Kurdish Bedirhani Family in Imperial and PostImperial Contexts: Continuities and Changes, (Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 2018). 132 Barbara Henning, Narratives of the History of the Ottoman-Kurdish Bedirhani Family in Imperial and Post-Imperial Contexts: Continuities and Changes, p. 304.
84
M. KIA
by boat to Tripoli in Libya, where they were put on trial.133 Abdurrezzak Bey was found guilty, and he was sent to Yemen to serve his prison terms. After the Young Turk revolution of 1908, he remained imprisoned but was eventually released in 1910. After his release, Abdurrezzak Bey returned to Istanbul, but he found his former life in the Ottoman capital in shambles. With state power in the hands of the Young Turks and with no political future in sight, he eventually defected to Russia in autumn 1910. The Kurdish dignitary visited Tiflis where he met with Russian military officials.134 After some days of briefing, he toured the Ottoman-Iranian borderlands to establish contact with Kurdish tribal chiefs, including Simko, who acted as his aide.135 One of the objectives of collaborating with Simko was to counter the Ottoman Empire’s “incitement of Ottoman Kurds and to restrain Iran’s Kurds from looting and attacking government institutions and Christians, all the while working to build Russia’s influence inside Kurdistan.”136 In their propaganda work on behalf of the Russian government, Abdurrezzak Bey and Simko utilized “ethnicity,” and they distributed leaflets that declared “this land is our land,” and that “Bitlis and the neighboring territories” were Kurdish.”137 Collaboration with prominent Kurdish leaders such as Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan enhanced Simko’s prestige and power. It also allowed him to demonstrate his loyalty and fidelity to the Russian authorities, who protected him from any encroachment by the Ottoman Turks and Iranian officialdom. By July 1911, a British official visiting the Ottoman-Iranian frontier at Qotur could report that Simko, who acted as “the chief of the Avdoi branch of the Shakak Kurds,” enjoyed “a position almost as equally independent of the Persians as of the Turks,” the latter of whom “he
133 Ibid., pp. 277–278. 134 Ibid., p. 309. 135 Ibid. 136 Telegram of Kokhanovskii, 8 March 1911 [22 March 1911], quoted in Michael
A. Reynolds, “Abdürrezzak Bedirhan Ottoman Kurd and Russophile in the Twilight of Empire,” Kritika: Explorations in Russian and Eurasian History, Vol. 12, No. 2, spring 2011 (New Series), Slavica Publishers, pp. 411-450, 431. 137 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 60.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
85
greatly dislikes.”138 With Russian support and encouragement, Simko, who served as the governor of Qotur,139 carried out raids in Turkish territory, on at least one occasion, carrying off several thousand sheep.140 In 1913, “acting under encouragement” from Russian forces and taking advantage of the Second Balkan War (1913), Simko stirred up a Kurdish uprising against the Ottoman state in eastern Anatolia.141 Greatly alarmed by the spread of instability in their eastern provinces, the Ottomans responded to the Simko-backed rebellion by unleashing a campaign of repression against their Kurdish population. Another tactic adopted by Ottoman authorities was to order their agents in western Azerbaijan to plan the assassination of leading Kurdish figures who were supporting Russia in the Ottoman-Iranian border area, among them prominently Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan and Simko, “or to put a bounty on their heads” to encourage others to murder them.142 Yet a third approach was to embroil Simko in a conflict with his Russian “friends and patrons.”143 Thus, members of the rival Mamadi/Mamdoi branch of the Shakak were paid by Ottoman Turks to attack Russian officials on the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. Such attacks caused embarrassment for Simko and ignited inter-tribal conflict between the main branches of the Shakak.144 The Ottoman government also pressed Russia and Iran to 138 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1911, [FO 371/1178– 1179 & FO 416/51], Barclay to Grey, Gulhak, July 1, 1911, Persia Confidential, [29936], No. 110, Enclosure 2 in No. 1, Diary of the British and Russian Delegates from Khoy to Urmia, June 12 to 22, 1911, by H.S. Shipley, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 497. 139 Barclay to Grey, Tehran, December 19, 1911, [1954], No. 248, Enclosure 2 in No. 101, Joint Report by Shipley and Minorsky, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 546. 140 Louther to Grey, Constantinople, April 10, 1912, Persia Confidential, [15583], No. 304, Enclosure in No. 1, Molyneux-Seel to Louther, Van, March 25, 1912, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 5, p. 148. 141 British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), First Edition. (Simla: Superintendent, Government Central Press, 1923), p. 397. 142 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman
and Russian Empires 1908–1918, pp. 64–65. 143 Wilson to Grey, October 31, 1914, Persia and Central Asia Confidential, [74128], No. 38, Enclosure in No. 1, Report on the Proceedings of the Turco-Persian Frontier Commission from July 16 until its termination October 26, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 6, p. 20. 144 Ibid.
86
M. KIA
keep Simko as far away from the Ottoman border as possible.145 As late as July 1914, however, Simko retained his position as Russia’s most trusted Kurdish tribal ally in northwestern Iran. The Russian-backed operations carried out by Simko and Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan were not confined to carrying out raids and political propaganda in Ottoman territory. Beginning in 1912, with support from Russian authorities, Abdurrezzak Bey published a Kurdish-language newspaper in Urumiyeh.146 When the Russians removed Abdurrezzak Bey from western Azerbaijan, the task of supervising the publication of the newspaper fell on Simko, who continued to publish it until 1914.147 In return for his services to the Czarist government, Simko was invited to Tiflis, Georgia, where the Russian governor-general of the Caucasus, Vorontsov-Dashkov, decorated him and appointed the Shakak chief the governor of the rural district of Somai in western Azerbaijan.148 In response to the news of the appointment, the Ottoman government protested Vorontsov-Dashkov’s decoration of Simko, complaining about the Kurdish chief’s destructive attacks against Ottoman villages.149 The Ottoman protests “were to no avail” because, as the Russian consul in Van remarked, Simko “is someone that we need and we should support him, since his hatred toward the Turks is without limit. And that benefits us.”150 One Russian official ascribed Simko’s “hatred of the Turks” to the fact that the Kurdish chief’s father, “who had lived” in Istanbul
145 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 65. 146 Martin Van Bruinessen, “Kurdish Tribes and Simko’s Revolt,” in Richard Tapper (ed.), The Conflict of Tribe and State in Iran and Afghanistan (London: St. Martin’s Press, 1983), p. 384. See also, Farideh Koohi-Kamali, The Political Development of the Kurds in Iran: Pastoral Nationalism, (London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2003), p. 78. See also, ‘Rozhi Kurd Newspaper 1913–1914’, Zhin Archive Centre, Sulaimani, as quoted in Chnor Jaafar Ahmad, “The Dilemma of Kurdish Nationalism As A Result of International Treaties and Foreign Occupations Between the Years 1850 to 1930.” University of Glasgow MA Thesis, April 2019, p. 111. 147 Ibid. 148 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman
and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 69. 149 Ibid. 150 Ibid.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
87
and had known Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, had “died in an Ottoman prison.”151 The appointment of Simko as the district governor of Somai demonstrated that the Czarist state treated Azerbaijan as a Russian province. Indeed, using the 1907 Anglo-Russian Convention as its legal tool, Russia converted all northern provinces of Iran, for all intents and purposes, into a large Russian province, with governors of Azerbaijan, Gilan, Qazvin, and Maku, as well as local tribal chiefs, such as Simko, acting as Czarist agents and officials who received and carried out orders from the Russian consul generals.152 Meanwhile, despite their public recognition of Simko’s services to His Majesty the Czar, some Russian authorities privately expressed their skepticism that the Shakak Kurds offered any real military value in case of a war. The Russians concluded that Simko’s “exploits were little more than poorly disguised banditry” that boiled down “to cattle rustling.”153
Simko & Sayyid Taha II Capitalizing on his newly found position with Russian occupation forces in northwestern Iran, Simko established close links with another proRussia Kurdish notable, namely Sayyid Taha II, the son of Sayyid Mohammad Sadiq, and the grandson of the Kurdish leader, Sheikh Ubeydullah of Nehri (d. 1883). The family of Sheikh Ubeydullah, also known as Sadat-e Nehri, hailed from the district of Shamdinan, or Shamzinan, in the Hakkari region of southeastern Anatolia. Acknowledged as the leader of the Naqshbandi-Khalidi Sufi order, Sheikh Ubeydullah was viewed as a holy man by his followers. The sheikh’s father, Sayyid Taha I, enjoyed a close association with the third Qajar monarch, Mohammad Shah (r. 1834–1848), whose reign witnessed the revival of Sufi activities and the emergence of the messianic Babi movement. The Qajar monarch granted the Kurdish Sufi leader vast last grands (tuyul ) in western Azerbaijan. One of Mohammad Shah’s wives, the mother of Abbas Mirza Molkara,
151 Ibid., No. 97, p. 69. 152 Buchanan, George. My Mission to Russia and Other Diplomatic Memories, (Devon:
A & F Publications, 2020), p. 87. 153 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 69.
88
M. KIA
the half-brother of Nasser al-Din Shah Qajar, viewed herself as a follower of Sayyid Taha I. In 1880, Sheikh Ubeydullah invaded Azerbaijan at the head of a 20,000-man army. The Kurdish leader seized significant territory, sacked several towns, and massacred thousands of the region’s Shi’i inhabitants. Throughout his campaign in northwestern Iran, Sheikh Ubeydullah employed Kurdish nationalistic discourse in his proclamations, insisting on the principle that Kurds should be treated as a distinct people, independent of both the Turks and the Iranians and deserving of a state of their own. Stunned and panicked by the ferocity of Sheikh Ubeydullah’s military campaign, the Qajar monarch, Nasser al-Din Shah, who believed that the Kurdish leader served as a mere instrument of the Ottoman Empire’s expansionist policies, appealed to Czarist Russia and Britain to press the Ottoman sultan, Abdulhamid II, to withdraw his support from the Kurdish leader.154 Under intense pressure from European powers and forceful protest from the Iranian government, which dispatched a 20,000-man army against the Kurdish leader, the Ottomans withdrew their support. Ubeydullah’s support among Kurdish tribes also began to fizzle, forcing him to retreat back into Ottoman territory. In July 1881, Ottoman authorities arrested the sheikh and sent him to Istanbul, where he was interned together with his son, Abdul Qadir. A short time later, however, the Kurdish sheikh escaped the Ottoman capital and returned to Nehri, but he was arrested again. Eventually, Sheikh Ubeydullah, together with several members of his family, was exiled to Mecca, where he died in October 1883. Despite the demise of the sheikh, the power and the prestige of his family persisted. As a grandson of Sheikh Ubeydullah, and the son of Sayyid Mohammad Sadiq, “who was the terror of the frontier until his death,”155 Sayyid Taha II was viewed by many Kurds, both in the Ottoman Empire and in Iran, as a distinguished leader. A man of great intelligence and considerable polish, he was described as “physically tireless…and a crack
154 The Persian sources indicate that Iranian authorities had arbitrarily seized some of the revenue from the land the sheikh had inherited from his father in Azerbaijan, thus antagonizing and alienating the Kurdish leader. 155 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1907 [FO 416/31–34 & FO 371/503], Extracts from the “Times ” of September 24, 1907, “The Turco-Persian Frontier Question,” in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 175.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
89
shot with a rifle.”156 Having received a traditional religious education, the Sayyid was fluent in Arabic, Turkish, and Persian. He had also travelled extensively in Russia, developing fluency in Russian and French as well.157 Sayyid Taha II was, like his grandfather and father, a strong proponent of Kurdish independence.158 He not only enjoyed a prominent religious and spiritual status, but he was also one of the largest landowners in northwestern Iran. In western Azerbaijan, he owned considerable property in the rural districts of Margavar, Targavar, and Baradoost, while in the Ottoman Empire his power and influence extended from Rawanduz in present-day northeastern Iraq to Shamdinan in present-day southeastern Turkey. Before the invasion of Urumiyeh by his grandfather in 1881, the family of Sayyid Taha II had owned much more, but the Iranian government confiscated some of their villages as a punishment for the invasion of its territory.159 In addition to his considerable wealth, Sayyid Taha II also enjoyed tremendous prestige and authority in western Azerbaijan because he was connected by marriage to the chiefs of the Harki and Begzade
156 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 306. 157 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920,
p. 307. 158 For Sayyid Taha II, see, Personalities in Kurdistan published by the Civil Commissioner’s Office, 1919. Confidential: Personalities Mosul, Arbil , Kirkuk, Sulaimani and Frontiers, (Baghdad: Government Press, 1923). See also, Martin Van Bruinessen, “The Sâdatê Nehrî or Gîlânizâde of Central Kurdistan,” in the Journal of the History of Sufism Vol. 1–2 (2000), pp. 79–91. See also, Martin Van Bruinessen, Mullas, Sufis and Heretics: The Role of Religion in Kurdish Society, (Istanbul: The Isis Press, 2000). See also, Mehmet Saki Çakir, Seyyid Tâhâ Hakkârî ve Nehrî Dergâhi, (Istanbul: Nizamiye Akademi, 2017). See also, Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920. See also, Metin Atmaca, “Fragile Frontiers: Sayyid Taha and the role of Kurdish religiopolitical leadership in the Ottoman East during the First World War,” Middle Eastern ˙ Studies, Vol. 54, No. 3 (2018), pp. 361–381. See also, Ihsan Serif ¸ Kaymaz, “Britain’s Policy toward Kurdistan at the End of the First World War,” Turkish Journal of International Relations, www.alternativesjournal.net, Vol. 10, No. 2–3 (Summer-Fall 2011), pp. 101–125. 159 Dickson to O’Conor, Van, December14, 1907, No. 23, Report by Vice-Consul Dickson on his recent Journey through Turco-Persian territory, Enclosure 2 in No. 174, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 265.
90
M. KIA
Kurds of Margavar and Baradoost, who were neighbors to Simko and his Shakaks.160 The alliance between the Sayyid and Simko was sealed with the marriage of the Shakak chief to Sayyid Taha II’s sister. Taking Sayyid Taha II’s sister as his wife bolstered Simko’s legitimacy among the Kurdish tribes of Iran and the Ottoman Empire. It also extended his influence across the border into the Hakkari region of Ottoman Kurdistan. In return, Sayyid Taha II, who had no military force of his own, could use Simko’s army to expand his influence and implement the dream of creating an independent Kurdish state. The partnership between the Kurdish chief and the suave Sayyid would serve as the foundation for a campaign to establish an independent Kurdistan after the conclusion of the Great War in 1918. Sayyid Taha II enjoyed a close relationship with both the Ottoman and Russian governments. After the Young Turk regime invaded and occupied several rural districts in western Azerbaijan in 1909, the business-savvy Sayyid showed up in Urumiyeh to purchase or lease lands and villages belonging to the local landowners in the areas occupied by the Turks.161 The Kurdish leader subsequently travelled to Russia, where he developed fluency in Russian and established a close alliance with Czarist authorities.162 There was at one time an idea that Sayyid Taha “might be used as the figurehead of a nominally independent Kurdistan under Russian auspices,”163 although Russia’s first choice for leadership of a future Kurdish state was Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan.164 In 1912, Sayyid Taha travelled to Tiflis, where he met Abdurrezzak Bey. Together, the two Kurdish leaders set out on a tour “among the Kurdish tribes in the Ottoman-Iranian borderlands, heading towards 160 Correspondence respecting the Perso-Ottoman frontier, 1907 [FO 416/31–34 & FO 371/503], Extracts from the “Times ” of September 24, 1907, “The Turco-Persian Frontier Question,” in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 175. 161 Barclay to Grey, Tehran, December 19, 1911, [1954], No. 248, Enclosure 2 in No. 101, Joint Report by Shipley and Minorsky, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, Vol. 4, p. 555, and Annex 1 to Joint Report, p. 560. 162 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920, p. 307. 163 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell. Review of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 69. 164 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 59.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
91
Khoy” in western Azerbaijan.165 Some way into their trip, Abdurrezzak Bey and Sayyid Taha II were joined by Simko.166 During this trip, as Abdurrezzak Bey and Sayyid Taha were about to enter Shamdinan in southeastern Anatolia, the two Kurdish dignitaries were arrested by Ottoman authorities.167 On the way to Van, however, the military unit transporting the two prisoners was attacked by a group of armed Kurds.168 This attack allowed the two Kurdish notables to escape captivity and seek refuge in Iran.169 The two dignitaries eventually found their way to Saint Petersburg, where they “were honorably received by Czar Nicholas II, who promised them money and a large number of rifles.”170 To protect himself from the Young Turk government, which had identified him as a client of Russia, Sayyid Taha II eventually settled in a village in western Azerbaijan in close proximity to the Iranian-Ottoman frontier and just across from his home base in Shamdinan. During the First World War, Sayyid Taha II undermined his close ties with the Russians by establishing contact with Ottoman authorities and German agents. In response, the Russians, who had come to mistrust the Kurdish leader, detained Sayyid Taha II and destroyed his house at Nehri when they crossed the Ottoman frontier in 1916.171 The Sayyid remained in prison until the Russian revolution of March 1917, which overthrew the imperial regime. The upheaval in Russia allowed the Sayyid to flee captivity and return home.172 Soon after his flight from Russia, Sayyid Taha II arrived in Mosul in northern Iraq, agitating for a Kurdish tribal rebellion. Toward the end of 1917, the then Russian consul in Urumiyeh was visited by a messenger from the Istikhlas-e Kurdistan (Liberation of Kurdistan) Society, who handed him a letter from Sayyid Taha II requesting that the Russian diplomat arrange an interview for him with
165 Barbara Henning, Narratives of the History of the Ottoman-Kurdish Bedirhani Family in Imperial and Post-Imperial Contexts: Continuities and Changes, p. 313. 166 Ibid. 167 Ibid. 168 Ibid. 169 Ibid. 170 Ibid., p. 314. 171 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell,
Review of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 69. 172 David McDowall, A Modern History of the Kurds, No. 17, pp. 111–112.
92
M. KIA
the remaining Russian officers in order to agree on a common action against the Turks for the liberation of Kurdistan.173 Toward the conclusion of the Great War, the Kurdish leader established direct ties with the British who were consolidating their rule over Iraq. In the Kurdishpopulated districts of northern Iraq and extending into southeastern Anatolia, the British intended to use influential Kurdish leaders, including Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji and Sayyid Taha II, as a means of imposing their authority with minimum cost and conflict. Sayyid Taha was viewed by the British authorities to be the ideal candidate to rule Rawanduz in present-day northeastern Iraq and Shamdinan in present-day southeastern Turkey. Little has been written about Simko’s activities in the years before the commencement of the First World War, when both the Ottoman Empire and Czarist Russia tried to impose their rule in parts of northwestern Iran. The scarcity of reliable sources has led at least one scholar to claim that “neither the Turks nor the Russians occupied Shakak lands before the Great War,” and “Simko’s contacts with both were mainly indirect.“174 The scanty sources and intelligence reports that I have used in this chapter, however, portray Simko as a highly engaged chief, acting first as a client of Ottoman Turks between 1905 and 1907 and later, especially between 1908 and 1909, as a supporter and defender of the Qajar monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah. When Ottoman troops occupied Shakak-populated districts of Somai and Chahriq, several Shakak chiefs collaborated directly with the invading Ottoman Turks. Simko, however, refused to revive his alliance with Ottoman authorities. He remained steadfast in his support for the reactionary and Russophile Mohammad Ali Shah and the Khan of Maku, Eqbal al-Saltaneh. After Russian forces invaded Azerbaijan in 1909, Simko gradually shifted his position and adopted Czarist Russia as his new patron. By 1913, the Kurdish chief had emerged as a paid instrument of Russian policy in western Azerbaijan. His subservience to Russian authorities allowed Simko to emerge as the most powerful Shakak chief in northwestern Iran. By serving Russian interests, Simko tried to expand his power from Qotur over the southern sections of the Shakak territory and regain his control over Chahriq and Somai.
173 Basile Nikitine. Les Kurdes. Étude Sociologique et Historique, p. 195. 174 Martin van Bruinessen. “Kurdish Tribes and the State of Iran: The Case of Simko’s
Revolt,” p. 383.
3
SHAKAK TRIBE AND THE RISE OF SIMKO
93
Simko’s conduct prior to the commencement of the First World War reveals that the Kurdish chief always operated within the framework of the patron-client system. With every significant shift in the balance of power, he offered his services to the highest bidder and the most formidable power broker regardless of the ideology and religious affiliation of the patron. When the Sunni Muslim Ottomans invaded western Azerbaijan in 1905, Simko sought their patronage as a means of protecting himself and his tribe against Iranian authorities who had murdered his brother. In 1907, he returned to Iran and adopted the Khan of Maku and, through him, the Shi’i Iranian monarch, Mohammad Ali Shah, as his new patron. In return for attacking and suppressing the constitutionalist forces in western Azerbaijan, Simko was rewarded by his new patron with the governorship of Qotur on the Ottoman-Iranian frontier. In 1909, after the invasion of Azerbaijan by Russia, Simko recognized that a new imperial power was supplanting both the Qajar state and the Ottoman Empire as the supreme power in northwestern Iran. Thus, he switched his loyalty and adopted Russia, a European Christian power, as his new patron. In return for his services, Russian officials provided him with arms, a regular salary, and protection against both the Ottoman Turks and the Iranian authorities. It is true that during his tenure as a Russian client, Simko became acquainted with Kurdish nationalistic ideas as propagated by Russian officials and promoted by Kurdish notables in the Ottoman Empire such as Sayyid Taha II and Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, who were dreaming of creating a Kurdish state under Russian protection. However, the nationalism of a Russian client could only be a contradiction in terms because it lacked any independence of thought and action on behalf of any Kurdish community. Here, Kurdish nationalistic ideas were promoted not as an expression of genuine nationalistic sentiments among a Kurdish polity, but instead as an instrument of Russian interventionist policies, which aimed at undermining the security and territorial integrity of the Ottoman Empire and Iran. Paid functionaries of the Russian imperial establishment could hardly be acknowledged seriously as heroes of Kurdish nationalism.
CHAPTER 4
Simko, Competing Nationalisms, and the Great War
In discussing Simko’s activities during the Great War, at least one scholar has asserted that the Kurdish chief “stood aloof from the real fighting, trying to keep all doors open, while expanding his control of the frontier districts.”1 This assessment dilutes the significance of one of the most eventful and formative periods in Simko’s political life and disregards the devastating impact of the Kurdish chief’s activities on the urban and rural communities of northwestern Iran. Simko used the four years of the war profitably. In the beginning of the war, he acted as an ally of Russia. When the Russian forces evacuated Iranian territory in early January 1915, Simko joined the Ottoman Turks, only to switch back to an alliance with Russia when she returned and pushed the Turks out of western Azerbaijan. He remained a client and ally of Russia until Russian troops evacuated the Iranian territory after the victory of the 1917 Bolshevik revolution. In March 1918, Simko murdered the Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun. This murder ignited a civil war between the Christians (i.e., Assyrians and Armenians) and the Muslims (i.e., Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks) of western Azerbaijan. Far from standing aloof, Simko used this conflict to slaughter the Assyrian refugees who had settled in the district of Khoy. In summer 1918, Simko once again joined the Ottoman Turks
1 Ibid., p. 384.
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_4
95
96
M. KIA
as they invaded northwestern Iran and chased the Assyrian and Armenian Christians from their ancient homeland. Thus, during the war, the Kurdish chief remained highly active. He switched his alliances according to the balance of military power in the region, and in the process consolidated his position as the most powerful Kurdish tribal chief in western Azerbaijan.
On the Eve of the First World War On the eve of the First World War, Simko was an obedient client of Russia. In May 1914, several months before the eruption of hostilities, Russian authorities organized a conference of their closest Kurdish allies. The most prominent participant in this conference was Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan, whom the Russian authorities had selected as the leader of all Kurdish tribes of Iran.2 Another important delegate to the conference was Said Beyk of the Haydaranlu tribal confederation. The branches of this tribe resided in Mush, Bayezid and Van provinces of the Ottoman Empire, as well as in the districts of Maku and Khoy in northwestern Iran. Another member of the Kurdish coalition was Simko.3 One of the main objectives of the meeting was to discuss the logistics of a coordinated attack by the Russian-funded and Russian-armed Kurdish alliance against the Ottoman Empire. As late as August 1914, the Russians were “instructing Simko” to “attack Ottoman border positions,”4 and the Russian consul at Khoy was providing the Kurdish chief with money and weapons.5 The Kurdish chief’s alliance with Russia, however, came to a sudden end after Ottoman Turks invaded western Azerbaijan in December 1914 and the Russian armies evacuated northwestern Iran in early January 1915.
2 Kieser, Hans-Lukas, Margaret Lavinia Anderson, Seyhan Bayraktar, and Thomas Schmutz (eds.), The End of the Ottomans: The Genocide of 1915 and the Politics of Turkish Nationalism, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2021), p. 70. See also, Tuncay Ö˘gün, “Osmanli ˙ Basininda Cihad-i Ekber: Iran Örne˘gi,” Journal of Turkology, pp. 91–114, 2018, p. 96. 3 Ibid., p. 71. 4 Ibid., 74. 5 Ibrahim ˙ ˙ ˙ Yılları,” Ethem Atnur, “Ismail A˘ga Simko’nun A¸sireti, Ailesi ve Reisli˘ginin Ilk Tarihte Türkler ve Kürtler Sempozyumu/Bildiriler (Ankara, 09–10 Ocak 2014), IV, Türk Tarih Kurumu Yayını, Ankara 2014, s. 259–280. See also, Tuncay Ö˘gün, “Osmanli ˙ Basininda Cihad-i Ekber: Iran Örne˘gi,” p. 96.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
97
When Russian forces withdrew from Azerbaijan and after the Ottoman Turks occupied Urumiyeh and Tabriz in January 1915, the Kurdish chief switched his loyalty and joined the invading Turks. Once Russian forces returned a short time later and re-established their military dominance in Azerbaijan, they banished Simko to Tiflis. The Kurdish chief tried desperately to patch up his broken patron-client relationship with Russian authorities. After a short exile in Georgia, Simko returned to Iran as a reformed servant of his majesty, the Czar. The arrival of thousands of Assyrian and Armenian refugees from the Ottoman Empire and the formation of Assyrian and Armenian armed bands in western Azerbaijan radically transformed the balance of power in favor of the Christian communities of the region. With significant backing from Czarist authorities, Assyrians, under the leadership of Mar Shimun, embarked on a campaign to lay the foundation of an autonomous enclave in northwestern Iran under Russian protection. The departure of Russian troops from Iran in 1917 orphaned the Assyrian and Armenian communities and exposed them to attacks from the Ottoman Turks and pro-Ottoman Kurdish tribal chiefs. After Russian troops withdrew from Iran, Simko collaborated with British military and intelligence officers, who tried to form an antiOttoman coalition that incorporated armed Assyrian and Armenian bands, as well as the Shakak Kurds. Though he expressed his commitment to join the British, Assyrians, and Armenians in a united front against the Ottoman Turks, Simko stabbed his potential allies in the back when he assassinated the Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun, in March 1918. When Ottoman Turks invaded Iran in summer 1918, Simko joined the invaders and participated in attacks against the fleeing Assyrian and Armenian refugees, who were trying to reach the British line of defense at Hamadan in western Iran. By late October 1918, when the First World War ended in the Middle East, Simko had emerged as the only survivor of a bloody conflict that had resulted into the destruction of the Assyrian and Armenian communities of northwestern Iran. The actions of the Kurdish chief were motivated not only by self-preservation, but also by a deep sense of fear and hatred for the Armenian and Assyrian Christians. Simko believed that the Assyrian community, in particular, was planning to establish an independent or autonomous enclave in western Azerbaijan with assistance from western powers. Simko feared that the establishment of such an Assyrian entity would result in the Kurds living as a persecuted minority. This would have left the Kurds a vulnerable minority in an area
98
M. KIA
governed by Assyrians. The name of the game was survival at any cost, and if survival meant switching sides in accordance with the change in the tide of the war and selling one’s services to the highest and most powerful bidder, so be it. The game of survival was, however, played with an eye on the rising nationalistic activities of the two communities the Kurdish chief feared and resented the most, the Assyrians and the Armenians.
Simko, Russian Evacuation & Ottoman Invasion In Iran, even before the commencement of the First World War, violence had erupted between Assyrian and Armenian armed bands backed by Russia, and Kurdish tribal units armed by Ottoman Turks. The Russian strategy was to manipulate anti-Turkish sentiments among Armenians and Assyrians to undermine Ottoman rule and incite the Christian communities of the Ottoman Empire as well as pro-Russia Kurdish chiefs, such as Simko, to rebel against Turkish authorities. The Turks, on the other hand, exploited pan-Islamism and the status of the Ottoman sultan as the caliph of all Sunni Muslims to mobilize Kurdish tribal groups of eastern Anatolia and western Azerbaijan against Russia and its Armenian and Assyrian allies. In Russian-occupied Azerbaijan, Kurdish tribal chiefs financed and armed by Ottoman Turks rallied to the flag of Jihad (Holy War) and embarked on a campaign of terror against Assyrian and Armenian communities. In response, Assyrian and Armenian Christians organized their own militias backed by Russia and attacked Muslim villages. Unlike the majority of the Kurdish chiefs of western Azerbaijan, Simko remained loyal to his Russian employers and attacked “Ottoman targets.”6 At the time clashes between Russian forces and pro-Ottoman Kurds were escalating. The Russian governor-general of the Caucasus, Vorontsov-Dashkov, ordered the Russian army to “punish the Kurds mercilessly, not neglecting the most extreme measures, especially toward the leaders.”7 During the Great War, Azerbaijan emerged as a battleground between the armies of Czarist Russia and the Ottoman Empire. On October 29, 1914, the Ottoman Empire opened hostilities against Czarist Russia by
6 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 118. 7 Ibid.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
99
attacking the Russian Black Sea fleet. On 2 November, Russia declared war on the Ottoman Empire. Even before Russia entered the war, Iran had declared its neutrality on 1 November in a royal decree signed by the eighteen-year-old Qajar monarch, Ahmad Shah, but the weak Qajar state was unable to enforce the neutrality of its territory. The Iranian government also “asked Russia to withdraw her troops from Azerbaijan and elsewhere,” a request which the Czarist regime turned down.8 At the commencement of the First World War in the summer of 1914, Russia was in occupation of Azerbaijan and its main urban centers, including Tabriz, Khoy, Maku, Salmas, and Urumiyeh. In late summer 1914, as the war got underway, cross frontier skirmishes erupted between the Ottoman and Russian forces and their local proxies. Inside “Russianoccupied Iran, Kurdish bands encouraged by Ottoman propaganda for holy war against infidels began burning churches and wreaking havoc.”9 At the very same time, Assyrian and Armenian communities formed their own militias, while “Russian-backed Kurds, including those led by Simko,” and the “gangs of the Assyrian Agha Petros” began to attack Ottoman targets.10 In the latter part of December 1914, an Ottoman Turkish army backed by Kurdish irregular units from the Mangur, Mamash, and Dehbokri tribes defeated the Shahseven tribal chief and the Russian client, Shoja’a al-Dowleh, near Maragheh east of Lake Urumiyeh. This victory allowed the Ottomans to advance northward toward the provincial capital of Tabriz. About the same time, a large Turkish army under the direct command of Enver Pasha invaded the southern Caucasus through Kars in eastern Anatolia. The Ottoman Third Army, however, suffered a humiliating defeat at the hands of the Russians at Sarikamish on the road to Kars. Out of 118,174 active Ottoman troops on 22 December only 42,000 survived by the time the campaign ended in early January.11 Though he had inflicted a humiliating defeat on the Ottoman forces at Sarikamish, General Alexander Myshlayevsky, the deputy commander 8 Townley to Grey, Tehran, January 16, 1915, Persia Confidential, [17798], No. 112., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p. 662. 9 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 118. 10 Ibid. 11 See Mesut Uyar, “Ottoman Strategy and War Aims During the First World War,” in
Herausgegeben von Holger Afflerbach (ed.), Purpose of the First World War: War Aims and Military Strategies, (De Gruyter Oldenbourg; Digital Original Edition, 2015), p. 174.
100
M. KIA
of Russia’s Caucasian Army, was panicked by the advance of the Ottoman force approaching Tabriz. He ordered the evacuation of Russian troops from Tabriz and Urumiyeh because he believed that he did not have adequate troops to defend Russian positions in Azerbaijan against the advancing Ottoman forces from the south. On 2 January, Russian troops evacuated Urumiyeh. A day later, Russian forces abandoned Salmas. According to the New York Times, when it became known on the night of 2 January that the Russian forces were evacuating Urumiyeh “about 10,000 Christians fled, most of them without money, bedding, or provisions.”12 The majority of the fleeing Assyrians and Armenians started out on foot, “through mud knee-deep, across the mountain passes in freezing weather.”13 At Dilman they were joined by many more from the district of Salmas.14 An American diplomat stationed in Azerbaijan at the time wrote that the entire northern section of the Urumiyeh plain learned of the withdrawal of the Russian troops about 10:00 p.m. on the night of Saturday, January 2, 1915.15 By midnight the exodus of the entire Christian population had commenced, and by the next morning the Christian villages of the region “were practically deserted.”16 About one-third of the Assyrian population of Urumiyeh and Salmas abandoned their homes and fled with the Russian army toward southern Caucasus.17 Hundreds of Assyrians, mostly women and children, who had attached themselves to the retreating Russian forces, “perished by the roadside” from freezing temperatures, hunger, and exposure.18 Many Assyrians and Armenians, who did not follow the Russian troops in their retreat flocked into Urumiyeh and sought refuge at the American Presbyterian Missionary and the French Catholic Mission in the hope that the Stars 12 New York Times, Dilman, Persia, April 24, (via Petrograd to London, April 26), 1915. 13 Ibid. 14 Ibid. 15 “First Exodus from Urmia, January 1915: Report Dated 1st March, 1915, from the Reverend Robert M. Labaree of the American Mission Station at Tabriz to the Hon. F. Willoughey Smith, U.S. Consul at Tiflis,” in Viscount Bryce., The Treatment of Armenians in the Ottoman Empire 1915–16, p. 105. 16 Ibid. 17 Naayem, Joseph. Shall This Nation Die? (New York: Chaldean Rescue, 1921),
p. 269. 18 Ibid.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
101
and Stripes or the Tricolor would protect them from the invading Turks and their Kurdish allies. According to one source who worked at the time in Urumiyeh, “when the troubles began, the total Christian population, including a thousand refugee families of mountaineers, was about thirtythree thousand,” but “after exodus to Russia approximately twenty-five thousand remained.”19 On 4 January, an Ottoman army entered Urumiyeh. The town remained under Turkish rule until May 15, 1915.20 Meanwhile, on 5 January, the Russian forces began to evacuate Tabriz. A day later on 6 January, the Russian consul general left the city and “withdrew to Russia.”21 Two days later, on 8 January, an Ottoman army entered Tabriz. The sudden Russian withdrawal and the arrival of Ottoman forces inspired Russia’s “erstwhile ally” Simko to switch his loyalty and join the “ranks of the Ottoman force.”22 The Kurdish chief viewed the Russian military withdrawal from Urumiyeh and Tabriz as a sign of weakness. Further, it provided him with an opportunity to attack and plunder Assyrian and Armenian communities of the region after several years of restraining himself due to his alliance with Russian authorities in western Azerbaijan. With blessing and support from his newly adopted patrons, the Ottoman Turks, Simko took the field and embarked on a devastating campaign to sack towns and villages west of Lake Urumiyeh.23 During the Turkish occupation of western Azerbaijan, Ottoman and Kurdish troops, including Simko’s Shakak fighters, committed horrific outrages against the local population, especially the Assyrian communities. Christian populated villages were looted and burned down,
19 Shedd, Mary Lewis. The Measure of A Man: The Life of William Ambrose Shedd Missionary to Persia, (New York: George H. Doran Company, 1922), p. 152. 20 Viscount Bryce., The Treatment of Armenians in the Ottoman Empire 1915–16, p. 99. 21 Townley to Grey, Tehran, January 16, 1915, Persia Confidential, [17798], No. 12.,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p. 662. See also, Marling to Grey, Tehran, December 5, 1915, Persia Confidential, [19857], No. 157., Iran Political Diaries 1881– 1965. Volume 5, p. 723. 22 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 126. 23 Allen, William Edward David & Paul Muratoff., Caucasian Battlefields: A History of the Wars on the Turco-Caucasian Border 1828–1921, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1999), p. 296.
102
M. KIA
and “a large number of their inhabitants” were murdered.24 Hundreds of women and girls “were violated, about a thousand Christians were killed, and four thousand died of disease.”25 According to one source, twenty percent of the Assyrian population in west Azerbaijan perished in the five months the Turks and their Kurdish allies occupied the area west of Lake Urumiyeh.26 According to one source, at the town of Haftevan in the district of Salmas, 800 “Christian men and boys were tortured, and hacked to pieces.”27 According to the same source, before evacuating Salmas, the retreating Turks “ruthlessly mutilated and destroyed the French Catholic Mission” in Khosrowabad.28 One of the chief perpetrators of the plunders and massacres in the district of Salmas was Simko. After pillaging Patehvir/Patavour, Simko adopted the village as his residence during the Ottoman occupation of Salmas.29 Beginning in late spring 1915, Simko also had the opportunity to watch closely the Ottoman military operations against the Armenian population in eastern Anatolia. Shortly after the commencement of the First World War, many Armenian officers and soldiers serving in the Ottoman army defected, joining the Russian army with the hope that the defeat and collapse of Ottoman power would allow them to fulfill their dream of establishing an independent Armenian state. The defections were followed by an uprising of the Armenians in the city of Van in eastern Anatolia in April 1915. Alarmed by the spread of the Armenian nationalist movement, a small inner circle within the highest echelons of the Ottoman state, known as Special Organization (Teshkilat-e Mahsusa), designed and implemented the plan for removal of the entire Armenian population in order to affect a “permanent solution” to the question of Armenian nationalism in Ottoman lands. In accordance with the orders issued by this inner circle, the Ottoman state adopted a policy of forcibly relocating the Armenian population to the Syrian desert.
24 Ahmad, Kamal Madhar. Kurdistan During the First World War, Translated by Ali Maher Ibrahim, (London: Saqi Books, 1994), p. 97. 25 Mary Lewis Shedd, The Measure of A Man: The Life of William Ambrose Shedd Missionary to Persia, p. 152. 26 Ibid. 27 Ibid., p. 192. 28 Ibid., p. 191. 29 Joseph Naayem, Shall This Nation Die? p. 272.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
103
Beginning in May 1915, virtually the entire Armenian population of central and eastern Anatolia was removed from their ancient home. This policy was then replicated in western Anatolia. Hundreds of thousands of Armenians, and according to some, nearly 1.5 million human beings perished from starvation, disease, and exposure. Many were raped, robbed, and murdered by Ottoman army units and irregular Kurdish regiments. On numerous occasions, Kurdish tribal chiefs completed massacres initiated by the Ottoman troops. Simko was one of the tribal leaders who ordered his men to lie in ambush at the Qotur pass on the OttomanIranian frontier and wait for Armenian refugees who had escaped death. Surprising the battered and bruised Armenian deportees, Simko’s men “put them to death in a new massacre.”30 While Simko was busy attacking and massacring the fleeing Armenian population, his eldest son was destroying Assyrian villages and churches in the Hakkari region of southeastern Anatolia, especially in the district of Jilu west of the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. According to one source, the young Shakak Agha, who served as one of the leaders of armed Kurdish bands looting Assyrian rural communities in Jilu, had proclaimed “that he would not rest till he had seen the ruin of every Christian church in the land.”31 As he stood at the door of the Church of “Mar Zeia” watching the destruction and the removal of the plunder, “a bullet fired at extreme range took him in the head.”32 The Turkish occupation of Azerbaijan proved to be short-lived. On January 30, 1915, Russian forces re-captured Tabriz.33 Another Russian army unit captured Khoy and began to push south toward Dilman in the district of Salmas. Simko, who had joined the invading Ottoman armies, honored his alliance with the Turks and fought the Russian forces south of Khoy. The Russian army nevertheless quickly overcame the Kurds.34
30 Alaauddin Sijjadi. Kurdish Revolutions, Kurds and the Iraqi Republic (in Kurdish), Baghdad 1959, pp. 251–254, as quoted in Kamal Madhar Ahmad, Kurdistan During the First World War, p. 156. 31 W. A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind: Life in Eastern Kurdistan, p. 370. 32 Ibid. 33 Eagleton, William J., The Kurdish Republic of 1946, (London: Oxford University Press, 1963), p. 9. 34 Kinnane, Derk. The Kurds and Kurdistan, (London: Oxford University Press, 1970), p. 46.
104
M. KIA
Simko’s tribal force was no match for the much larger and far betterequipped Russian army. On 6 March, a Russian army backed by Armenian and Assyrian units drove the Ottoman Turks and their Kurdish allies out of Dilman.35 Simko had no alternative but to retreat to his stronghold along the Iranian-Ottoman frontier.36 Shortly after Russian troops occupied Dilman, reports of the destruction of numerous Christian villages in Dilman and Urumiyeh, whose inhabitants had been massacred by Kurds, began to reach Tabriz and Tehran.37 The same reports also indicated that some ten thousand Assyrian Christians had fled Turkish territory for Iran.38 Russian armies pushing farther south from Dilman, forced the Turks to evacuate Urumiyeh on 15 May. Nine days later, on Sunday, 24 May, the advanced guard of the Russian army entered the town and by the end of the next day, 15 May, Urumiyeh was under full Russian occupation.39 In November 1915, Russian forces advanced from Urumiyeh to Savojbolagh, where they raped and massacred a large segment of the town’s Kurdish population.40 During the First World War, Savojbolagh changed hands between the Russians and Ottoman Turks eight times, gaining notoriety as the Iranian town most victimized and vandalized by foreign troops.41 During their occupation of Urumiyeh and Salmas, Russian military authorities imposed an informal truce on the warring Kurds and Assyrians. Under Russian protection, the Assyrian communities west of Lake 35 Imperial War Museum, Operations in Persia, 1914–1919, (London: Her Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1987), p. 59. 36 Eagleton, William J., The Kurdish Republic of 1946, p. 9. 37 Imperial War Museum, Operations in Persia, 1914–1919, p. 59. 38 Ibid. 39 Kamal Madhar Ahmad, Kurdistan During the First World War, p. 97. See also, Eagleton, William J., The Kurdish Republic of 1946, p. 9. Mary Schauffler Platt, The War Journal of a Missionary in Persia. (New York: The Board of Foreign Missions of the Presbyterian Church, 1915), p. 49. 40 Imperial War Museum, Operations in Persia, 1914–1919, p. 126. See also, Ismail Shams, “Ta’asir-e Monazeat-e Russiyeh va Osmani bar Vazeiyat-e Savojbolagh (Mahabade Konuni) dar Jang-e Jahani-ye Avval ba Takiyeh bar Matbuat va Asnad,” Tarikh Nameh-ye Iran-e Ba’ad az Islam, Year 13, No. 32, Autumn 1401, pp. 51–76, pp. 61–62. 41 Ismail Shams, “Ta’asir-e Monazeat-e Russiyeh va Osmani bar Vazeiyat-e Savojbolagh (Mahabad Konuni),” pp. 51–76, p. 51.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
105
Urumiyeh grew in size, confidence, and military capability, as thousands of Assyrians from the Hakkari region of southeastern Anatolia fled their homes and sought refuge in northwestern Iran.
Assyrian Refugees Arrive in Western Azerbaijan With the commencement of the First World War, the Russian government adopted a policy of destabilizing the Ottoman Empire by encouraging the Assyrians of southeastern Anatolia to revolt. To ensure an Assyrian revolt against the Ottoman state, the Russian authorities promised arms and logistical support to the Assyrian community in Hakkari. The commander of Russian forces in Azerbaijan, Lieutenant General Chernozubov, wrote a letter to Mar Shimun, the Patriarch of the Assyrian Church of the East, and requested Assyrian participation in military operations against Ottoman armies in eastern Anatolia and northwestern Iran. In response, Mar Shimun travelled to Salmas to meet the Russian general and request direct military assistance. Already in August 1914, before the eruption of open warfare, the Ottoman government had become increasingly concerned about a possible alliance between Russia and the Assyrian leadership. The Turkish governor of Van requested a meeting with Mar Shimun. During this meeting, the Ottoman official promised that his government would provide assistance to the Assyrian community if the Assyrian leadership remained neutral and refused to join Russia in the impending war.42 Mar Shimun responded that his attitude was conditioned by the actions of the Turks toward the Christian population, and that he could not commit himself to a policy of neutrality until he consulted with the leaders of his community.43 Between August and October, the clashes between Kurds and Assyrians in southeastern Anatolia intensified, and any chance of reconciliation between the Ottoman government and the Assyrian community faded. The Assyrian leadership was convinced that the attacks waged by the Kurds enjoyed the blessing of Turkish authorities, and that they were, in fact, an integral part of a larger campaign to cleanse eastern Anatolia of its Christian population.
42 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun. Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, (London: The Faith Press, 1920), pp. 77–78. 43 Ibid., p. 78.
106
M. KIA
Once the Ottoman Empire entered the war in November 1914, all semblance of law and order vanished in the Hakkari region of southeastern Anatolia. Angered by repeated attacks waged by pro-Ottoman Kurdish tribes against Assyrian mountain communities, alarmed by the systematic massacre of Armenians of eastern Anatolia, and emboldened by the initial successes of the Russian armies against Ottoman forces in the winter of 1915, the Assyrians began to contemplate a revolt against the Ottoman state.44 With Kurdish raids against Assyrian populated districts increasing, and the city of Van falling into the hands of Russian forces in spring 1915, Mar Shimun concluded that the Assyrian community had no alternative but to throw in its lot with the Triple Entente against the Ottoman state.45 Thus, on 10 May, the Assyrian leader called his people to arms.46 He sent a formal declaration of war to the governor of Van, informing the Turkish official that the six Assyrian districts of “Tiari, Tkhoma, Jilu, Baz, Ishtazin,” and “Dizan felt obliged to sever their political relations with the Ottoman government.”47 Instead of fulfilling her pledge, Russia failed to provide Mar Shimun and his followers with any military assistance. The failure of Russia to arm its Assyrian allies allowed Ottoman forces backed by irregular Kurdish units to intensify their attacks on Assyrian positions. For nearly six months, Assyrians defended their villages against relentless assaults by Turks and their Kurdish allies. In October 1915, when they found themselves hard pressed and running out of ammunition, the Assyrian fighters abandoned their villages en masse and fled eastward, coming down to northwestern Iran and joining their co-religionists on the plains of Urumiyeh and Salmas. By then, the Assyrians had lost thousands of men, women, and children to fighting, illness, and famine.48 The Russians, who were in control of the region, dispersed the newly arrived Assyrians in various Christian and Muslim villages in the districts of Khoy,
44 Silverfarb, Daniel. Britain’s Informal Empire in the Middle East, (New York: Oxford University Press, 1986), p. 33. 45 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. 15. 46 Ibid. 47 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun. Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun,
p. 84. 48 Ibid., p. 89.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
107
Salmas, and Urumiyeh.49 Thus, some 25,000 Assyrian Christians “fearful of sharing the fate of the Armenians” settled in western Azerbaijan, almost “doubling” the population of the region’s Assyrian community.50 These Assyrians, commonly referred to as the Jilu, displayed a striking resemblance to the nomadic Kurds. After crossing the border into Iran, the armed and battle-hardened Assyrians embarked on a campaign of “wellarranged raids” against the Kurdish tribes of the Hakkari region, but also against “the nomadic Harki [the allies of Simko],…acquiring quite a lot of sheep.”51 They also carried out plundering raids in the neighborhood of Urumiyeh.52 From among the displaced Assyrians of Hakkari, Russia organized two battalions of the Assyrian mountaineers, who were placed under the command of Russian officers. A third battalion was added later and “organized under the special command of the Assyrian Patriarch,” Mar Shimun.53 These regiments fought under overall Russian command, and they were “utilized” as auxiliaries of the Russian army on expeditions against both Turks and Kurds until the dissolution of the Russian Empire in 1917.54 For his unshakable alliance with Russia, Mar Shimun was invited to Tiflis, Georgia, where he received “a special telegram of congratulations” from Czar Nicholas II.55 The Assyrian leader was also decorated with the Order of St. Anna by the Grand Duke Nicholas Nikolaevich, a grandson of Emperor Nicholas I and the commander-in-chief of Russian forces in the Caucasus region.56 Aside from Russian authorities, 49 Ibid. 50 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 50. See also William
A. Shedd’s Forward to Mary Schauffler Platt (ed.), The War Journal of a Missionary in Persia. (New York: The Board of Foreign Missions of the Presbyterian Church, 1915). 51 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. 33. 52 W. A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind: Life in Eastern Kurdistan, p. 376. 53 Austin, H. H., The Baqubah Refugee Camp, (London: The Faith Press, 1920), p. 23.
See also, H. H. Austin, Introductory Letter to W.A. Wigram, in Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. ii. 54 Ibid. See also, H. H. Austin, Introductory Letter to W.A. Wigram, in Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. ii. 55 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, p. 89. 56 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. 35.
108
M. KIA
Mar Shimun also enjoyed the moral and humanitarian support “of the American missionaries, who had been there for many decades endeavoring to convert the Nestorian Christians to Protestantism.”57 The arrival of the Assyrians of the Hakkari region of southeastern Anatolia and their close alliance with Czarist Russia aroused the trepidation of the Kurdish tribal chiefs of northwestern Iran, especially Simko. The Shakak chief viewed the influx of thousands of armed Jilu Assyrians as an invasion of his territory by an alien Christian community. Kurdish leaders such as Simko were convinced that the Assyrians aspired to create their own autonomous or independent state under the protection of western powers. Under this Assyrian state, the Kurds could be turned into second-class subjects.58 With the expulsion of Turkish forces and the re-imposition of Russian rule over the entire territory of western Azerbaijan, Simko had no alternative but to swallow his hatred for the Assyrians and Armenians and submit to Russian authorities. The re-occupation of the region by Russian troops forced Simko to stop his attacks against the Assyrians and once again switch his loyalty from the Young Turks to the Russian Czar. To appease the Russian authorities and to demonstrate his fidelity to the Russian state, at least on one occasion, he detained an anti-Russian Iranian Azerbaijani fighter, Bakhshali Khan, who was staying with him as a guest.59 Simko ultimately handed Bakhshali Khan to the Russians, who executed the illfated Azerbaijani in Khoy.60 In return for his betrayal of Bakhshali Khan, the Kurdish chief requested a pardon for his collaboration with Ottoman Turks.61 Because Simko had joined the Ottoman Turks in their fight against Russian forces, and since the Kurdish chief had played a central role in murdering “1,000 innocent persons,” mostly Assyrians, in Salmas,
57 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 50. 58 See for example, Sayyid Taha’s statement to a British officer in northern Iraq
regarding the political objectives of Assyrians. See Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920, p. 308. 59 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, pp. 454–455. 60 Ibid. See also, Mehdi Malekzadeh, Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Mashrutiyat-e Iran, Volume
7, pp. 1598–1599. 61 Ibid., p. 455.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
109
during the Ottoman occupation, the Russians arrested him and banished him to Georgia.62 Recognizing that a large segment of Ottoman troops operating in Iran consisted of Kurdish irregular units, and to counter the pan-Islamic propaganda disseminated by the Turks, the Russian authorities quickly modified their anti-Kurdish stance and re-established close working relationships with Kurdish tribal chiefs on the Iranian-Ottoman frontier. In pursuit of this policy, the Russian government released Simko, “with whom they began to cooperate for the sake of their ‘higher’ aims, which dictated giving him the meagre monthly allowance of 5,000 gold rubles after he was set free.”63 Thus, Simko was converted yet again into a hired client of an imperial power, this time, Czarist Russia, with a fixed monthly salary. Though deeply hostile to the newly arrived Assyrian refugees from southeastern Anatolia, Simko maintained a neutral attitude toward them after his return to Chahriq, knowing full well that he could not afford to jeopardize his relationship with Russian authorities.
An Assyrian-Armenian-Kurdish Line of Defense The abdication of Czar Nicholas II on March 15, 1917, followed by the Bolshevik Revolution on 7 November of the same year (the October Revolution by the old Russian calendar) had a profound impact on the situation inside Iran. The Bolshevik seizure of power and the ensuing withdrawal of Russian troops from Iran gave rise to great hopes among many Iranians that their country would regain its true independence. The European power that had dominated Iran for more than a century and had partitioned the country in collaboration with Britain in 1907, had collapsed. The effects of the first Russian revolution of March 1917 were soon evident on the discipline of the Russian troops in Iran, “where they looted successively the bazaars of Qazvin, Hamadan, and Urumiyeh.”64 While the Russian troops were looting freely wherever they passed, the specter of famine was hanging over the land, northwestern Iran was threatened 62 Kamal Madhar Ahmad, Kurdistan During the First World War, p. 97. See also, Maria T. O’Shea. Trapped Between the Map and Reality Geography and Perceptions of Kurdistan, (London: Routledge, 2004), p. 100. 63 Ibid., p. 98. 64 Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p. 797.
110
M. KIA
by an Ottoman invasion, the revolt in the Caspian province of Gilan was spreading, and the Iranian government lacked an adequate armed force that could ensure law and order.65 Initially, the new Russian provisional government continued to adhere to all its previous agreements with Britain, and Vladimir Minorsky, the then acting head of the Russian diplomatic mission in Iran, resumed work on his special project of creating two “autonomous democratic republics” out of Iranian Azerbaijan and Kurdistan.66 This project curiously resembled Stalin’s plan for Iran after the end of Second World War, when, with the direct support of the Soviet authorities, Sayyid Jafar Pishevari founded the Autonomous Republic of Azerbaijan based in Tabriz (September 1945), and Qazi Mohammad established the Republic of Mahabad (January 1946). In the weeks following the collapse of the Czarist regime, the large Russian army occupying vast swaths of territory in Iran became demoralized and eventually degenerated into bands of marauders. Throughout the spring and summer of 1917, Russian forces abandoned their trenches, disobeying their superiors, and on some occasions, murdering their commanders.67 In June 1917, Russian Cossack officers and soldiers stationed in Isfahan “took to highway robbery,” and the country around the city “was overrun by hordes of robbers.”68 The Russian troops in northwestern Iran still retained their position though they were no longer receiving either pay or food regularly.69 Their consequent lack of discipline and loss of morale, however, gradually rendered them of such little fighting value that by the middle of October all that the British could hope was that they would not evacuate Iran.70 With the victory of the Bolshevik revolution, all semblance of discipline vanished. Between December 1917 and March 1918, most Russian troops evacuated Iranian territory though some Czarist officers and commanders remained in Iran and entered British military service. As 65 Ibid. 66 The material is available in Minorsky’s private correspondence with the Russian
Ministry of Foreign Affairs. See, Denis V. Volkov, Russia’s Turn to Persia: Orientalism in Diplomacy and Intelligence, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2018), p. 112. 67 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azarbaijan, p. 706. 68 Sykes, Percy. A History of Persia, 2 Volumes, (London: Macmillan & Co Ltd, 1958),
Volume II, p. 486. 69 Imperial War Museum, Operations in Persia, 1914–1919, p. 255. 70 Ibid.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
111
they embarked on their journey back to their country, Russian soldiers and officers destroyed villages and small towns, especially in Hamadan, Kermanshah, Kurdistan and Azerbaijan.71 No one, especially no woman, was safe from molestation at the hands of the Russian soldiers, who pulled down houses to secure food and fuel.72 Many Russian soldiers and officers sold their arms to the highest bidder, frequently tribal chiefs such as Simko, who wished to augment the military capability of their armies. The Russian army units also left behind large stockpiles of arms, ammunition, and military equipment, including cannons and machine guns in Tabriz and the port of Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh. One knowledgeable Iranian source claimed that the departing Russian troops had left behind 100,000 rifles, a significant number of machine guns, a large quantity of munitions, and even long-range mountain cannons.73 Most of these were snatched up by tribal groups in Azerbaijan, including Simko’s Shakaks. The militarization of the country bolstered the position of tribal chiefs vis-à-vis the government in Tehran. Armed tribal groups, which already enjoyed autonomous status, could now demand full independence from a government that could not even defend its own capital. The departure of Russian forces from Iran exposed the Black SeaBaghdad line of defense, especially south Caucasus and Azerbaijan, to an Ottoman invasion. To buttress the collapsing front and block German designs on India, the British tried to induce armed Armenian and Assyrian groups to join in a united front and defend northwestern Iran against the impending Turkish attack. Between the Assyrians, based in Urumiyeh and Salmas, and the Armenians in the Van region, lay the territory of the Shakak Kurds. The “allied liaison officers conceived the notion that these three elements might be combined into a coherent line of defense.”74 A British scheme proposed by General Offley Shore of the Mesopotamia Expeditionary Force called for the creation of a new alliance between the Armenians of Van, the Assyrians of Urumiyeh and Salmas, and “a Kurdish chief whose territory consisted of the range of mountains separating those
71 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azarbaijan, pp. 705–724. 72 Percy Sykes, A History of Persia, Volume II, p. 486. 73 Jahanbani, Amanollah., Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, (Tehran: Ferdows Publisher, 2001), p. 232. 74 W. A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind: Life in Eastern Kurdistan, p. 378.
112
M. KIA
two lake basins.”75 This Kurdish Agha was none other than Simko, the paramount chief of the Shakak, who maintained a cordial relationship with British officials and intelligence officers. Of all Kurdish chiefs in the region lying west of Lake Urumiyeh and east of Lake Van, Simko seemed to be the most formidable. The Armenian commander in Van expressed his opposition to an alliance with Simko because “he had the deepest suspicion of the Kurd’s good faith, but he was overruled” by General Shore.76 The British dispatched an Intelligence Service officer, Captain George Gracey, to Simko’s stronghold at Chahriq to negotiate with the Kurdish chief.77 Gracey, who was at the time attached to the British Military Mission at Tiflis, had arrived “in the autumn of 1917” to “mobilize Armenians, Assyrians, and Kurds, to defend part of the front between the Black Sea and Baghdad,” and “form an army which would stop the advance of the Turks from Mosul” in northern Iraq.78 Initially, Gracey’s intention was to form this army from among the existing Assyrian armed bands and to this end he “held several meetings with the Assyrians; the last of these being in the house of the Mar Shimun, the spiritual leader of the Assyrians.”79 The meeting “was attended by Russian, French, and U.S. consular officers.”80 According to a report of the meeting: The gist of the whole discussion directed to a mutual understanding having two points in view. First that the Assyrians should furnish men to make the
75 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, pp. 35–36. 76 Ibid., pp. 36–37. 77 Ibid., p. 37. See also, John Fisher, “Man on the Spot: Captain George Gracey and
the British Policy towards the Assyrians, 1917–45.” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 44, No. 2, 215–235. According to John Fisher, Gracey was a former missionary who had worked in Urfa in southeastern Anatolia, developing fluency in Turkish and Armenian, as well as limited fluency in Kurdish and Russian. He had also served with the British Military Mission at Tiflis as a Special Intelligence Officer. In 1918, he had been dispatched on a special mission to combat Ottoman propaganda among Kurdish tribes, which may have brought him into contact with Simko. He had then worked for the Foreign Office as British Commissioner at Erivan. 78 John Fisher, “Man on the Spot: Captain George Gracey and the British Policy towards the Assyrians,” p. 219. 79 Ibid. 80 Ibid.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
113
fighting force and to protect the Salmas, Urumia [sic] and Solduz front until the arrival of the Allied army. Second that the Allies take it upon themselves to furnish money, munitions, officers and an adequate force.81
Gracey found the Assyrians divided,82 but the fallback position of creating a combined Assyrian-Armenian-Kurdish force remained viable. The British intelligence officer enjoyed a close friendship with Simko and was intimately familiar with Kurdish tribal politics.83 Accompanied by Lieutenant Robert McDowell, an American missionary, who had worked with him on intelligence duties,84 Gracey travelled to Chahriq to meet with the Shakak chief.85 As a shrewd tactician, Simko was well aware that he had to collaborate with British authorities, who in the absence of Russia, had emerged as the only power broker in Iran. However, if he was to retain his position as the most powerful Kurdish tribal chief in western Azerbaijan, Simko had to counter the threat posed by the armed Assyrians led by Mar Shimun and the Council of Assyrian Christians, which controlled Urumiyeh after the withdrawal of Russian forces. The Kurdish chief was also cognizant of the fact that any British-backed alliance with the Assyrians could undermine his ties with the Ottoman Turks and the Kurdish tribes on both sides of the Iranian-Ottoman border, especially his close allies, the Harki chiefs of the districts of Margavar and Targavar, who had always been hostile toward the Jilu Assyrians of southeastern Anatolia.86 Though Simko despised Armenians and Assyrians and vehemently opposed the idea of an alliance with them, he was determined to ascertain the exact details of the British plan. Thus, the Kurdish chief concealed his actual feelings and pretended that he was fully committed to cooperation with the two Christian communities. During his negotiations with Gracey, Simko expressed his readiness to join the anti-Ottoman alliance, 81 Ibid. 82 Ibid. 83 Norman Solhkhah (ed.), The Assyrian Martyr Mar Benjamin Shimun Patriarch of the Church of the East, (Chicago: The Assyrian Genocide Studies, 2008), p. 10. 84 John Fisher, “Man on the Spot: Captain George Gracey and the British Policy towards the Assyrians,” p. 230. 85 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. 37. 86 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 53.
114
M. KIA
swearing on the Quran “to fight for English, Kurds and Armenians in fellowship with Mar Shimun,” whom he referred to as the “honorary head of Kurdistan.”87 On learning about the British scheme, Mar Shimun agreed to join the anti-Ottoman front, though he confessed to Gracey that he shared the Armenian leader’s suspicion and doubts regarding Simko’s honesty.88 In response, the British officer reportedly told Mar Shimun: “Well, you probably would do well not to trust him too far; but if you and the Armenians work together, then you have him [Simko] between the jaws of your pincers, and he can do little harm.”89 As the events that followed would demonstrate, the grave doubts expressed by Mar Shimun were more than justified. Simko, “who had been given a most exaggerated idea of his own importance by a rather ill-timed visit of some French officers after the agreement had been made by Gracey,”90 could not have cared less about loyalty and honoring promises when he considered the security and integrity of his own tribe to be in jeopardy. Indeed, the British assessment of Simko’s intensions was either extremely naive or intentionally misleading. Having secured the agreement of the Armenians of Van and the Assyrians of western Azerbaijan to join Simko in a united front, a FrancoBritish military mission transported to Urumiyeh part of the war material the allies had stockpiled in Tiflis, Georgia, for the use of the Russian army.91 British intelligence officers also organized a meeting between the potential allies. Though all parties agreed to cooperate toward the creation of a united front to defend western Azerbaijan against the Ottoman Turks, the British scheme did not materialize, partially because it relied on the participation of Russian commanders and trainers. The Russian army had disintegrated, and there was no longer a sufficient number of Russian officers willing to collaborate with the British plan and provide training and leadership for a joint Assyrian-Armenian-Kurdish force.
87 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, p. 37. 88 Ibid. 89 Ibid. 90 Ibid. 91 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 52.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
115
Murder of Mar Shimun Though the British scheme for the defense of the Black Sea-Baghdad line of defense failed, Mar Shimun and Simko continued their informal contacts. In pursuing the creation of a safe haven and an autonomous enclave for his people, Mar Shimun was well aware of the limited military capabilities of his armed bands. Anticipating an Ottoman Turkish invasion of western Azerbaijan and gravely concerned about the safety of his community, the Assyrian leader embarked on a policy of forging an alliance with Simko. Toward that end, Mar Shimun travelled to Urumiyeh to request the blessing and support of the Central Assyrian Council for a peace agreement with the Kurdish chief. Having listened to their leader, the Assyrian Council agreed with Mar Shimun that it was crucial for the Assyrians to form an alliance with the Kurds in a united front against the Ottoman Turks. The Council then selected a certain Shmoel Khan, who enjoyed a close friendship with Simko, to carry a message from Mar Shimun to the Kurdish chief at his stronghold of Chahriq. The Assyrian envoy returned from his visit to Chahriq with the promising news that Simko would be pleased and indeed honored to meet with the Assyrian leader. Returning to Salmas from his meeting with the Assyrian Council in Urumiyeh, Mar Shimun received an invitation from the Iranian district governor of Salmas to a dinner reception at Dilman. The purpose of the meeting was to calm the inter-communal tensions, especially the conflict between the Assyrians and the Azerbaijani Turks. At the conclusion of the meeting with the Iranian officials, as Mar Shimun was returning to his home at the village of Khosrowabad, a messenger arrived bearing an invitation from Simko requesting a meeting with the Assyrian leader at Kohneh Shahr in the district of Salmas. In his letter to the Assyrian leader, Simko had written that he was “very anxious to meet with Patriarch at any convenient place, to discuss peace.”92 He also wrote that he had gone to Kohneh Shahr near the town of Dilman, the capital of Salmas district, and that he was “in great hope” that the Assyrian leader would join him there for a meeting.93 Mar Shimun immediately convened the Central Council of Salmas to discuss the invitation he had received from the Kurdish 92 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun. Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, p. 96. 93 Ibid., pp. 96–97.
116
M. KIA
chief. Although the majority of the Council expressed their reservations regarding a meeting with Simko, the British intelligence officer, Captain Gracey, who was in attendance, encouraged the Assyrian leader to meet with the Kurdish chief. Members of Mar Shimun’s family, including his brother, Rab Khalia Dawid, as well as a well-informed Armenian, warned that Simko intended foul play and that he would be killed by the Kurdish chief. Mar Shimun nevertheless refused to cancel the meeting.94 On Sunday, March 3, 1918, accompanied by his brother, Dawid, his chief negotiator, Shmoel Khan, four Russian officers, and a significant number of bodyguards, Mar Shimun travelled to Kohneh Shahr, one of the two main towns in the district of Salmas, where he was greeted by Simko. The central objective of the meeting between Mar Shimun and Simko at Kohneh Shahr was to chart the contours of an alliance between the Assyrians and the Kurds. Mar Shimun arrived at Kohneh Shahr with a large company of armed bodyguards, while Simko came to the meeting accompanied by only a handful of his followers, a ruse intended to allay the fears of the Assyrian leader. One source claimed that the bulk of Simko’s armed fighters arrived at Kohneh Shahr sometime after the meeting between the two leaders had already commenced.95 Another writer stated that Mar Shimun’s brother, Dawid, had already noticed a group of armed Kurds on the roofs of nearby buildings when the Assyrian leader arrived at the meeting. When Dawid inquired who the armed men were, Mar Shimun dismissed his brother’s concern by replying that the Kurds had probably wanted “to get a good view” of the meeting.96 In her book, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, Mar Shimun’s sister, Lady Surma, wrote that as her brother drove up to the house in Kohneh Shahr, where he was to meet with Simko, “there were many men with rifles on the house roofs,” but the Assyrian leader, and the armed men accompanying him, assumed that they had just gone up to see the arrival of the Assyrian delegation.97 The meeting took place at the home of Teymur Agha, a close confidant of Simko, who would later serve as the Kurdish chief’s governor of
94 Frederick G. Coan, Yesterdays in Persia and Kurdistan, pp. 266–267. 95 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, pp. 726–727. 96 W.A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind, p. 380. 97 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun. Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, pp. 97–98.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
117
Kohneh Shahr and Urumiyeh.98 Simko came out to meet the patriarch, receiving him with all honor, and conducted him into the house, where they drank tea together.99 During the meeting, Simko displayed utmost respect to Mar Shimun as the “religious head of Kurdistan.”100 At least one author stated that, during their meeting, Mar Shimun appealed to Simko to join him in creating an independent state in western Azerbaijan. The Assyrian leader reportedly told the Kurdish chief, “This land, which is called Kurdistan today has been our homeland, but the difference in religion has separated us….We should unify and seize the control of this land and live together. We have organized an army, but we do not have a sufficient number of cavalries. Because you have many mounted men if you join us, we will go and seize Tabriz.”101 According to the same source, Simko agreed to lend his support to the project. Mar Shimun’s sister, Lady Surma, however, contradicted this account, and stated that Mar Shimun spoke with the utmost frankness to Simko about peace, saying, “I assure you in all honesty, that we have not the least intention of doing any harm in Persia, or of carving out a place for ourselves in it. We only wish to defend ourselves from the attacks of the Turks, Simko then replied asserting his complete agreement with this idea.”102 At the conclusion of the meeting, Mar Shimun kissed Simko “as a mark of affection,”103 while Simko, “courteous host to the last conducted his guest to his carriage,” kissed Mar Shimun’s hand “and turned back into the house.”104 According to one source, as the Assyrian leader was about to step into his carriage, Simko fired a shot into his back. The shot that struck Mar Shimun in the back served as a signal to Simko’s followers hiding on adjacent roof tops to open fire on the Assyrian leader’s entourage, murdering most of them. Mar Shimun, who had been wounded by the first bullet, was shot a second time and killed by Ali
98 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, pp. 494–495. 99 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun. Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun,
p. 98. 100 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally, p. 41. 101 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 727. 102 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar
Shimun, p. 98. 103 Frederick G. Coan, Yesterdays in Persia and Kurdistan, p. 267. 104 W.A. Wigram, Our Smallest Ally, pp. 41–42.
118
M. KIA
Agha, Simko’s younger brother.105 Another source claimed that after accompanying Mar Shimun to the door, Simko turned around, which was the signal to his men to open a volley from the adjacent roofs.106 The Assyrian leader “fell pierced with five bullets, while his unsuspecting guard dropped all around him.”107 According to one source, “a hundred and twenty of the 150 men who had accompanied Mar Shimun were killed by Simko and his men.”108 In her version of events, which was based on the account of a Russian officer accompanying Mar Shimun, the Assyrian leader’s sister wrote that Simko escorted the Assyrian leader to the gate and kissed his hand. Mar Shimun and a Russian officer accompanying him then took their seats in the carriage, “when suddenly a shot was fired at him; this was followed by a volley from the roof, from the windows, and in fact, from all sides.”109 According to Lady Surma, as many as forty of the Assyrian horsemen were killed or wounded, and “in the confusion that followed some found refuge in the houses of Armenians.”110 These accounts have been contradicted by yet another source, which stated that after a confrontation between Assyrians and Muslims, a peace conference was held, which resulted in a satisfactory conclusion. It was “so satisfactory that Mar Shimun that same day accepted an invitation to drink tea with the notorious Kurd, Simko.”111 This invitation proved to be a trap. After the end of their meeting, Simko “dismissed the Assyrian Patriarch with a kiss, and at the same moment gave a signal to his men who fired and killed Mar Shimun and some forty-five of his bodyguard.”112 According to this account, the number of Assyrians killed was much smaller than the number claimed by other sources. Regardless of the inconsistency in the number of Assyrians killed, all sources agree that
105 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 727. 106 W.A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind, p. 380. 107 Mary Lewis Shedd, The Measure of A Man, p. 238. 108 Mary Lewis [Mrs. W.A.] Shedd Papers, 1918, Columbia University Libraries
Archival Collections. 109 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, p. 98. 110 Ibid. 111 Summary by Rev. E.W. McDowell, DD, in W.A. Shedd’s The Urumia Exodus,
(Board of Foreign Missions of the Presbyterian Church in the U.S.A.), p. 23. 112 Ibid.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
119
only a few bodyguards of Mar Shimun managed to escape the bloody melee. A more recent account has claimed that Mar Shimun, who distrusted Simko, agreed to meet with the Kurdish chief because he was gravely concerned by the absence of an organized Assyrian militia that could defend the Assyrian community against an Ottoman Turkish attack.113 According to this source, the Assyrian leader was initially planning to create a militia comprising Assyrian and Armenian fighters under the command of an Assyrian officer who served at the time in the Russian army. Despite strong support from the Assyrian community, Mar Shimun’s plan for organizing a joint Assyrian-Armenian militia did not materialize. As a fallback option, Mar Shimun conceived of a plan to form an alliance with Simko. It is not clear whether this was originally his idea, or a plan proposed by the British intelligence officer, Captain Gracey, who had suggested that Mar Shimun meet with Simko. At least one author, Mary Lewis Shedd, who lived and worked in Urumiyeh at the time, stated that Simko murdered Mar Shimun “at the instigation” of Iranian authorities “in high position,” a claim repeated by Mar Shimun’s sister, Lady Surma, who wrote that the local Iranian officials had hatched a plan for the destruction of the Assyrian community, and principally of Mar Shimun, though Simko acted as “the hand and agent” in the plot.114 Shedd also claimed that Mar Shimun and Simko had attended a meeting with the representatives of the Iranian government in Salmas. At the conclusion of this meeting, Simko invited the Assyrian leader to a “friendly conference” at Kohneh Shahr,115 three miles northwest of Mar Shimun’s home in the village of Khosrowabad.116 Another author, W.A. Wigram, also asserted that the Iranian governor had written plainly to Simko Agha “to tell him that he might earn the gratitude” of the Iranian government “by the assassination of Mar Shimun,” a hint that the Kurdish chief took “promptly.”117 Another writer, however, 113 See, Norman Solhkhah, The Assyrian Martyr Mar Benjamin Shimun Patriarch of the Church of the East, pp. 9–10. 114 Mary Lewis Shedd, The Measure of A Man, p. 238. Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, p. 99. 115 Ibid. 116 Mary Lewis [Mrs. W.A.] Shedd Papers, 1918, Columbia University Libraries
Archival Collections. 117 W.A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind, p. 380.
120
M. KIA
contradicted the claim that Simko acted on behalf of the Iranian government and stated that “there were rumors that Simko had taken a Turkish bribe” to carry out his assassination of Mar Shimun.118 Neither Shedd nor Mar Shimun’s sister, Lady Surma, produced any evidence for their assertions. Nor do we have any documents from western diplomats or officers that suggest any culpability on the part of either the Iranian or Ottoman officials in the murder plot. Nonetheless, the existence of a plot hatched by either local Iranian authorities or Ottoman officials is not out of the question. By early 1918, a consensus had emerged among Iranian officials and Kurdish chiefs such as Simko that the presence of armed Christian communities in western Azerbaijan, especially the Assyrians and their leader, Mar Shimun, constituted a lethal threat to the territorial integrity of Iran as well as to the power and influence of Kurdish tribal chiefs. With Assyrians seizing the most important urban centers of the region, namely, Urumiyeh and Dilman, the Ottoman Turks also viewed the Assyrian presence in northwestern Iran as a formidable challenge to their war efforts in the east. Regardless of which government may have encouraged or bribed Simko, it is clear that the Kurdish chief would not have assassinated the Assyrian leader if the elimination of Mar Shimun did not serve his own objectives. Simko viewed the Assyrians as a direct threat to the supremacy of Kurdish tribal elites in western Azerbaijan and a serious obstacle to the realization of his political ambitions and greater strategic goals.
Mar Shimun’s Murder Ignites a Civil War The scope and the brutality of Simko’s murderous plot against the Assyrian leader shocked many local and foreign observers; yet to many of those who knew Simko’s long record of duplicities and betrayals, the assassination of Mar Shimun came as little surprise. The tragic irony of Simko’s action is that, at the very moment when he ignited a civil war between Kurds, Assyrians, Armenians, and Azerbaijani Turks, famine was spreading throughout western Azerbaijan. Because of fighting and famine, thousands of Kurds were leaving their villages and seeking refuge with Presbyterian missionaries in Urumiyeh, in the hope of being fed by
118 William Eagleton Jr, The Kurdish Republic of 1946, p. 10.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
121
the Americans.119 As thousands of Kurds were dying of starvation, the Kurdish leader was planning a series of deadly attacks against Assyrian refugees near Khoy, which would inevitably result in a violent reprisal by armed Assyrian bands against Kurdish communities. The treacherous assassination of Mar Shimun ignited a violent and bloody civil war between the Kurds and the Assyrians. Outraged by the murder of their leader, armed Assyrian bands unleashed a campaign of terror against their Muslim and Jewish neighbors, massacring Kurds, Azerbaijani Turks, and Jews in the districts of Salmas and Urumiyeh. In one day alone, two to three hundred Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks were massacred by armed Assyrians who robbed and looted Muslim homes and villages.120 According to another source, some 10,000 Muslims (i.e., Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks), and Jews were killed by armed Assyrian bands.121 An Assyrian army led by one Agha Petros and the Russian officer, Count Cosmin, attacked and defeated Simko.122 After thirtysix hours of fighting, they forced the Kurdish chief to abandon his stronghold at Chahriq.123 With some 500 followers Simko managed to escape Chahriq for Khoy before his fortress was sacked and looted.124 The Assyrian attackers captured Simko’s mother and niece (the daughter of Jafar Agha) and took them to Urumiyeh.125 One source claimed that, upon entering Chahriq, the victorious Assyrian force discovered Simko’s private papers, including a letter from the governor of Azerbaijan “suggesting the murder” of Mar Shimun.126 The Assyrian victory against Simko was short-lived. The events that followed the murder of Mar Shimun clearly demonstrate that Simko “had
119 Mary Lewis Shedd, The Measure of A Man, p. 236. 120 Mary Lewis [Mrs. W.A.] Shedd Papers, 1918, Columbia University Libraries
Archival Collections. 121 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 730. 122 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar
Shimun, p. 100. 123 H. H. Austin, The Baqubah Refugee Camp, p. 26. 124 Ibid. 125 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 731. 126 W.A. Wigram, The Cradle of Mankind, p. 381.
122
M. KIA
been carrying out a well-prepared plan.”127 The Kurdish chief recognized that, with the departure of Czarist forces and the failure of the British to organize a united front against the impending Turkish invasion, the Assyrian and Armenian communities of western Azerbaijan had lost their principal foreign protectors. The murder of Mar Shimun allowed Simko to decapitate the leadership of the Assyrian community and ignite a campaign “to cleanse” western Azerbaijan of its Christian population. The attacks by armed Assyrian bands against Muslim communities (Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks) provided Simko with a convenient justification to rally the support of the Kurdish tribes of the region and resume his raids against Assyrian villages. This time around, however, he focused his attacks on a community of Jilu Assyrians, who had settled in the vicinity of Khoy in 1916.128 According to one Assyrian source, Simko and his men “massacred some 3,800 of the Christians” of Khoy, “mainly women and children.”129 Several years after the bloody attack on the Assyrians, Iranian army officers came across a killing field on the plain between Salmas and Khoy. According to one Iranian officer, the entire plain was “covered with bones and skulls” of “some 2000 Assyrians fleeing to the north who had been overtaken and massacred by the pitiless Kurds.”130 Many of the Assyrian villages were “abandoned and all were half-ruined by the Shakkaks of Simko.”131 The vacuum created by the withdrawal of the Russian army allowed the Ottomans and their Kurdish allies to invade northwestern Iran. From April to the end of July 1918, the Assyrians under the leadership of their military commander, Agha Petros, fought several campaigns against the invading Turks, scoring a number of impressive victories. As their stock of ammunition began to run dangerously low, however, the Assyrians were forced to abandon Salmas and Urumiyeh. Recognizing the hopelessness
127 D. K. Fieldhouse (ed.), Kurds, Arabs and Britons The Memoir of Wallace Lyon in Iraq, p. 81. 128 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 741. See also, John Elder, History of the Iran Mission, (Literature Committee of the Church Council of Iran, 1960), p. 68. 129 Surma D’Bait Mar Shimun, Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, p. 100. 130 Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, p. 136. 131 Ibid.
4
SIMKO, COMPETING NATIONALISMS, AND THE GREAT WAR
123
of the military situation, Assyrian and Armenian families began to evacuate Urumiyeh on July 30, 1918, turning south in an attempt to reach British lines at Hamadan in western Iran.132 On 3 August, a Turkish army backed by irregular Kurdish units, entered Urumiyeh, and immediately fell upon the fleeing Assyrians and Armenians. Simko “joined the Turks in hunting down the Assyrians,” before “they could reach the safety of British protection to southeast at Hamadan.”133 Thousands of Assyrians and Armenians were killed as they attempted to escape western Azerbaijan for the safety of the British line. Those refugees who survived the flight from Urumiyeh to Hamadan, comprising the Assyrians of western Azerbaijan, the Jilu Assyrians of the Hakkari region, and the Armenians of Van, were settled by the British authorities in a camp at Baqubah, thirty-one miles or fifty kilometers northeast of Baghdad.134 The Assyrian refugees “numbered 40,000 added to which there were 10,000 Armenians from the Van district who had escaped with the Assyrians.”135 Recognizing the necessity of adjusting himself to the new reality on the ground, Simko declared his loyalty to the Ottoman Empire and joined “the Turkish 5th Division at the head of a body of 1,000 Kurdish irregulars.”136 The acceptance of Ottoman patronage provided Simko with a powerful ally against the Assyrians and Armenians and was aimed at utilizing Turkish military power to destroy the remaining Assyrian population in western Azerbaijan. For years after the end of the Great War, Simko remained resolute in his determination to prevent the return of the Assyrian and Armenian refugees to their homes.
132 Joseph Naayem, Shall This Nation Die? p. 266. 133 Derk Kinnane, The Kurds and Kurdistan, p. 46. 134 See H. H. Austin. The Baqubah Refugee Camp. 135 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell,
Review of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 58. 136 British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 397.
CHAPTER 5
Fall of Empires and Simko’s Revolt
The four years extending from 1918 to 1922 proved to be transformational, not only for Simko, but also for Iran and its neighbors. As old imperial powers collapsed during and after the conclusion of the First World War, new political entities and “nation-states” emerged. More immediately for Simko, for the first time in his political career as a frontier warlord, the Kurdish chief found himself without any need for imperial patronage. To the north, two revolutions in 1917 transformed Simko’s most powerful imperial patron, Russia, from an autocracy to a socialist state. The fall of the Russian Empire allowed three new countries, Armenia, Azerbaijan, and Georgia, to declare their independence in the south Caucasus region. The victory of the Bolshevik Revolution gave rise to great hopes among many Iranians, especially after the new communist regime denounced the policies of the Czarist state in Iran. In the Appeal to Muslim Workers in Russia and the East, issued on December 3, 1917, the new Soviet government declared “null and void” the Saint Petersburg Convention of 1907, which had divided Iran into Russian and British spheres of influence. The Soviets also promised to withdraw all the remaining Russian forces from Iran and guaranteed Iranians “the
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_5
125
126
M. KIA
right of free self-determination.”1 This announcement was followed by a note addressed to the Iranian government dated January 14, 1918, from Leon Trotsky, the Soviet Commissar of Foreign Affairs, informing the Iranian government that the Soviet Union had abrogated all secret treaties between Russia and England regarding Iran that violated the country’s rights as an independent state.2 In Article VII of the Treaty of Brest-Litovsk, signed on March 3, 1918, by the Soviet state and the Axis powers (Germany, Austria-Hungary, Bulgaria, and the Ottoman Empire), the Bolsheviks and the Ottoman Turks reiterated their commitment to withdraw all of their troops from Iranian territory. In view of the fact that Iran and Afghanistan “were free and independent states, the contracting parties” obligated themselves “to respect the political and economic independence and the territorial integrity of these States.”3 The end of the First World War also signaled the dissolution of another former imperial patron of Simko, namely, the Ottoman Empire. The empire that had controlled much of the Arab, Kurdish, Armenian, and Assyrian populated regions of the Middle East for four centuries had vanished. The new political configuration that emerged in the years immediately following the fall of the Ottoman state represented a radical break from the past. France and Britain partitioned the predominantly Arabicspeaking provinces of the Ottoman Empire into artificial states with boundaries that represented European colonial interests. Immediately to the west of Iran, in the newly created state of Iraq, the British installed Amir Faisal, the son of Sharif Hussein of Mecca, as the ruler. Thus, the British, who were the neighbors of Iran to the east in India, became the neighbors of Iran to the west as well. Because the newly created state of Iraq contained a significant Kurdish population, the British became increasingly involved in Kurdish tribal politics by establishing direct ties with a significant number of Kurdish leaders in Iraq and southeastern Anatolia, including Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji and Sayyid Taha II. The collapse of the Ottoman state liberated the ethno-linguistic and religious communities that had lived under the autocratic rule of Turkish sultans for centuries. Kurdish nationalists viewed the disappearance of 1 Hurewitz, J.C. Diplomacy in the Near and Middle East, 2 Volumes, (Princeton: D. Van Nostrand Company, Inc., 1956), Volume 2, p. 28. 2 Degras, Jane (ed.). Soviet Documents on Foreign Policy, Volume I , 1917–1924, (London: Oxford University Press, 1951), p. 162. 3 Ibid., p. 54.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
127
Ottoman rule as an opportunity to assert their political independence. In his “Memorandum on the Claims of the Kurd people” to the Conference of Peace in Paris on February 6, 1919, Sherif Pasha, who represented the Society for Advancement of Kurdistan, proposed the establishment of an independent Kurdistan based in the Ottoman vilayets of “Darbékirè, Kharpout, Bitlis, Mossul and Sanjak of Ourfa.”4 The actual proposal for the creation of a Kurdish state was, however, made in the Treaty of Sèvres signed on August 10, 1920, between the British Empire, France, Italy, and Japan and the representatives of the Ottoman government (Map 5.1). The treaty effectively abolished the Ottoman Empire and forced the sultan to renounce all rights over the Arab world. It also provided for an independent Armenian state in eastern Anatolia. A Kurdish state east of the Euphrates, south of the southern boundary of Armenia and north of the province of Mosul “was to receive autonomy and the right to appeal for independence to the League of Nations within a year.”5 The treaty was immediately condemned by the Turkish nationalist movement led by Mustafa Kemal. As a result of a successful resistance movement organized by the Turkish nationalists, the Treaty of Sèvres was never implemented. Appointed as “Inspector General of Ottoman forces in northern and northeastern Anatolia,” Mustafa Kemal had been dispatched by the sultan to disarm and disband the remaining Ottoman army units in eastern Anatolia.6 By the time Mustafa Kemal arrived in Samsun on the northern coast of Anatolia on May 19, 1919, he had already decided to disobey his orders and organize a national resistance movement.7 Support came from other Ottoman commanders and officers who shared his determination to remove all foreign forces from Anatolia. After creating a national congress, which served as a quasi-alternative government to that in occupied Istanbul, the Turkish nationalists launched successful military campaigns against the newly established Armenian state in eastern
4 Metin Atmaca, “Sharif Pasha’s ‘Memorandum on the Claims of the Kurd People’ to the Conference of Peace in Paris on February 6, 1919,” in Sebastian Maisel (ed.), The Kurds: An Encyclopedia of Life, Culture, and Society, (Santa Barbara: ABC-CLIO, 2018), pp. 328–329. 5 Zürcher, Erik., Turkey: A Modern History, (London: I. B. Tauris, 2001), p. 147. 6 McCarthy, Justin, The Ottoman Turks, (London & New York: Longman, 1997),
p. 377. 7 Mango, Andrew, Atatürk: The Biography of the Founder of Modern Turkey, (New York: Abrams Press, 2002), pp. 218–221.
128
M. KIA
Map 5.1
Treaty of Sèvres
Anatolia and the Greek forces in western Anatolia. The victory over the Armenians in November–December 1920 and the Greeks in September 1921 and again in August–September 1922 forced foreign occupying armies to evacuate Anatolia. Having witnessed the decisive defeat of her forces in summer 1922 and the recapture of Izmir on 9 September by the nationalist Turks, the Greek government had no other alternative but to sue for peace. The warring sides signed the Armistice of Mudanya on October 11, 1922. On 1 November, the Grand National Assembly in Ankara abolished the Ottoman sultanate.8 Meanwhile in Iran, the end of the Great War and the disappearance of the Russian and Ottoman empires allowed the central government in Tehran to re-establish its authority over various provinces of the country. This effort, however, confronted significant obstacles. Without a standing army and an efficient bureaucracy, the politically weak, administratively incompetent, and financially bankrupt Qajar state could not restore law and order in the country. Local movements filled the vacuum created 8 J. C. Hurewitz, Diplomacy in the Near and Middle East, Volume 2, pp. 119–20.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
129
by the dysfunctional state and challenged the authority of Tehran. The weakness of the central government also encouraged Iran’s neighbors to re-enter the Iranian theater and pursue their own interests inside Iranian territory. As early as December 1918, an Iranian official stationed in Khoy in western Azerbaijan, reported to the Iranian foreign ministry that the Turks had decided to use a unified force of Kurdish tribes of northwestern Iran and eastern Anatolia to capture Maku and Khoy. This plan could not, however, be carried out unless Khoy was first attacked and occupied by the Kurdish chief, Simko.9 The collapse of two imperial powers, namely the Russian and the Ottoman empires, as well as the complete disintegration of Iranian governmental authority in western Azerbaijan, provided Simko with a golden opportunity to embark on a campaign to create an independent Kurdish state with support from neighboring Kurdish tribes on both sides of the Ottoman-Iranian frontier. Without a regional state actor capable of blocking the emergence of an independent Kurdistan, and in the absence of armed Assyrian, Armenian, or Azerbaijani groups that could resist his ascent to total power, Simko saw himself as the only effective authority in the ungoverned territory west of Lake Urumiyeh. The Kurdish chief was on the cusp of gaining political independence, if only he could unify the desperately fragmented Kurdish tribal groups in western Azerbaijan. He attempted to do so by acting as a champion of Kurdish nationalism and calling on all Kurdish tribal chiefs to join him in a crusade to fight the Iranian government and establish an independent Kurdish state.10 Forging a Kurdish nationalist movement in Iran, however, faced an uphill battle because of the highly fragmented tribal society in which Simko operated. The Kurds of Iran were a collection of tribes without any cohesion or a distinct national identity. Moreover, the tribes showed little desire for cohesion. According to a British statesman and traveler in the last decade of the nineteenth century, the “tribal feeling” among the Kurds “was very strong,” and in the absence of a strong central government, individual chiefs had “acquired a position that was little short of despotic independence.”11 The same assessment of 9 Bayat, Kaveh, Ravabet-e Iran va Turkiyeh: Az Soqut-e Dolat-e Osmani ta Baramadan-e Neza.m-e Jomhuri (1297–1302 Shamsi), (Tehran: Pardis-e Danesh, 2015), p. 64. 10 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 833. See also, Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 58. 11 George Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, Volume 1, p. 550.
130
M. KIA
the Kurds was echoed almost two decades later by the Russian army’s leading ethnographer, who wrote that the Kurds had “neither a clear national self-consciousness nor a sense of patriotism in the Kurdishnational sense.”12 In November 1912, a Russian diplomat, Alexander Iyas, who spoke Kurmanji fluently, wrote to the Russian ministry of foreign affairs that as far as the possibility of the unification of the Kurdish population was concerned, “it must be borne in mind that so far it has shown neither the remotest sign of tribal unity, nor even a shred of nascent national consciousness.”13 According to the Russian official, not only were the Kurdish tribes “continually at odds with one another, but distinct clans within one and the same tribe” were “frequently at one another’s throats.”14 Additionally, there was “no individual among the leaders of the local tribes” who enjoyed “sufficient authority to act as a centre around which the leaders of the other tribes might unify.”15 Finally, the “local religious leaders, too” carried “no weight owing to the almost total religious indifference of the Kurds.”16 The absence of a cohesive national identity among the Kurds of northwestern Iran may be explained by the fact that tribalism, and the form of politics it nurtured, hindered the convergence of tribal communities into a nation-state system founded upon a sense of national unity. The fragmentation within the Kurdish political establishment can also be understood in the context of the relationship between the tribe and the state in Iran. Throughout the Qajar period, Kurdish tribal chiefs acted as independent rulers without any supervision or interference from Tehran. Their subservience to the Qajar shah was at best nominal. Many paid little or no taxes and they were “kept under no sort of control.”17 Thus, at times, Kurdish tribal chiefs feared the expansionist designs of a neighboring tribe much more than the actions of Iran’s central government, which 12 Michael A. Reynolds, Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, p. 66. 13 From Alexander Iyas to the First Department of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs, 19 November 1912 [December 2, 1912]. Secret. Quoted in John Tchalenko, Images From the Endgame, p. 95. 14 Ibid. 15 Ibid., pp. 95–96. 16 Ibid., p. 96. 17 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920, p. 228.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
131
lacked any real muscle to impose its authority over the country’s distant provinces. It is not surprising, therefore, that Iran’s Kurdish tribal leaders generally preferred to maintain their own autonomy by paying token and perfunctory homage to a distant and incompetent Qajar state instead of accepting the absolute sovereignty of one despotic Kurdish chief over the rest.
Simko’s Rebellion Commences Despite the fragmentation caused by tribalism, Simko tried to increase his power and prestige among neighboring Kurdish tribal groups by enhancing his military capabilities after the end of the First World War. The occupying armies had left large quantities of arms and ammunition, including machine guns, cannons, and artillery pieces before they returned home. Moreover, many Russian and Ottoman soldiers and officers sold their arms to the highest bidder, including local tribal chiefs and landowners. This included Simko and his Shakak fighters. Further, as Ottoman detachments began to evacuate Iranian territory, several hundred Turkish artillery officers, armed with machine guns and longbarreled field guns, joined Simko, who agreed to pay them a regular salary. The recruitment of well-armed and well-trained Ottoman artillery officers provided the Kurdish chief with a clear military superiority over the small and badly armed Iranian Cossack and gendarmerie units in Azerbaijan.18 Despite these efforts, Simko failed to create an administrative structure capable of integrating the many tribal groups into one unified movement with concrete political objectives. Though he was preparing himself for an all-out rebellion against the central government in Tehran, in his messages to British officials in Iraq, Simko insisted that his ultimate objective was to maintain law and order. He also expressed his readiness to make peace with Britain and even the Iranian government.19 The defeat of the Ottoman state, the occupation of Iraq by British forces, and the continued political and military domination of Iran by Britain, convinced Simko that he had no choice 18 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat. Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 323. 19 J. I. Eadie, Report of Eadie-Bristow Mission addressed to Advance General Headquar-
ters, Tiflis, Doc. 54, in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 36.
132
M. KIA
but to maintain direct communication with British officials and reassure them that he was amicably disposed to British aims in the Middle East. For a Kurdish chief who had always operated within a patron-client system, Britain with all its colonial possessions and post-First World War I mandates, seemed to be the imperial patron that could provide him with protection against future threats posed by either the Turks or the Iranians. Simko’s rebellion commenced in the winter of 1918–1919, shortly after the First World War ended in the Middle East with the signing of the Armistice of Mudros on October 30, 1918, between the Ottoman Empire and a British-led delegation aboard the HMS Agamemnon in the port of the island of Lemnos. At the end of 1918, the former Ottoman diplomat, Mehmet Sherif Pasha, who would lead a Kurdish delegation in the Paris Peace Conference (January 1919–January 1920), established contact with several Kurdish leaders, including Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji, Sayyid Taha II, and Simko, “in order to promote the idea of an independent Kurdistan.”20 Because of falling out with the Young Turks, Sherif Pasha had fled the Ottoman Empire and lived in Europe during the First World War. In 1915, from his place of exile in Paris, Sherif Pasha waged a campaign against the Young Turk regime, accusing its leaders of “having for years plotted the extermination of the Armenian people.”21 After the end of the Great War, he attended the Paris Peace Conference on behalf of the Society for the Advancement of Kurdistan. The British government, however, viewed Sherif Pasha “unfit” to serve as “the Chief of Kurdistan,” and they preferred working with local Kurdish leaders in the region, including Sayyid Taha II and Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji.22 The Kurdish delegation also split into several factions and finally dissolved before the Treaty of Versailles was signed. Nevertheless, Sherif Pasha signed an accord with his Armenian counterpart, Bogos Nubar Pasha, regarding disputed territories in eastern Anatolia claimed by both Kurds and Armenians.23 This accord generated a great deal of controversy and 20 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 112. 21 “Cherif Pasha Says Young Turks Long Planned to Exterminate the Armenians,” The
New York Times, October 10, 1915. 22 Metin Atmaca, “The Road to Sèvres: Kurdish Elites and Question of SelfDetermination After the First World War,” International Journal of Conflict and Violence, Vol. 16 (2022), pp. 4–5. 23 Metin Atmaca, “Treaty of Sèvres, August 10, 1920,” in Sebastian Maisel (ed.), The Kurds: An Encyclopedia of Life, Culture, and Society, (Santa Barbara: ABC-CLIO, 2018),
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
133
was ultimately rejected by Kurdish leaders, because it excluded the Lake Van region from the future Kurdish state.24 Sherif Pasha’s communication with Kurdish leaders in the Ottoman Empire and Iran clearly demonstrates that Simko had established direct links with prominent Kurdish nationalists in Europe. It also demonstrates that the idea of establishing an independent Kurdistan had been discussed openly and extensively before Simko staged his revolt. Simko commenced his revolt by first attacking and looting the rural communities of Salmas and Urumiyeh.25 By late autumn 1918, the Kurdish chief had expanded his raids northward toward Khoy. To contain the growing power and influence of Simko in western Azerbaijan, the Iranian government, which could not even protect its own capital, adopted a strategy of appeasement. The authorities in Azerbaijan appointed a certain Sardar Fateh as the governor of Urumiyeh. Though competent, educated, and favorably disposed toward the Christian community, the new governor “had no force at his disposal to keep order” except 300 cavalrymen, of whom only 100 had rifles.26 One of the direct consequences of this situation was that there was no “security of life and property,” even in the environs of the main urban centers, to the extent that the wife and the family of the chief of the police force in Urumiyeh “were held up and robbed” on the road immediately outside of the town.27 In the absence of a standing army that could restore law and order, Sardar Fateh opted for a policy of appeasement, negotiating with Simko and pleading with the Kurdish chief “to restrain his tribesmen from looting and attacking the peaceful inhabitants” of Salmas and Urumiyeh.28 This peace initiative did nothing to calm the chaos
p. 326. See also, Metin Atmaca, “The Road to Sèvres: Kurdish Elites and Question of Self-Determination After the First World War.” 24 Özoglu, Hakan., Kurdish Notables and the Ottoman State: Evolving Identities, Competing Loyalties, and Shifting Boundaries, (Albany: State University of New York Press, 2004), p. 39. 25 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, pp. 493–494. 26 J. I. Eadie, Report of Eadie-Bristow Mission addressed to Advance General Headquar-
ters, Tiflis, Doc 54, in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 36. 27 Ibid. 28 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, pp. 56–57.
134
M. KIA
caused by Simko’s raids against the rural and urban population. Instead, the Kurdish chief interpreted it as a sign of weakness and intensified his attacks, concentrating his most destructive assaults on Lakistan, a collection of nine rural communities west of Lake Urumiyeh and east of Salmas. Recognizing the gravity of the situation and the futility of negotiations, Sardar Fateh abandoned Urumiyeh and returned to Tabriz. The departure of the governor only bolstered Simko’s position and made him even more confident of his power and authority. To quash Simko in a quick and devastating fashion, the deputy governor of Azerbaijan, Mokaram al-Molk, resorted to a drastic measure. A plan was hatched to assassinate Simko by sending him a parcel bomb disguised as a box of sweetmeats.29 Sometime in May 1919, the parcel was assembled by an Armenian expert and forwarded first to Khoy, where Simko’s mother-in-law resided, and thence to Simko in Chahriq. When the parcel arrived, Simko’s son brought it to his father, declaring that his grandmother had sent him a gift of sweetmeats. Suspicious of an assassination plot, Simko threw the parcel to his brother, Ali Agha, while embracing his son and lying motionless on the ground. Thus, when the bomb went off, Simko and his son escaped the assassination attempt unharmed, but the explosion killed Simko’s brother and a number of his followers.30 In retelling the story of the assassination attempt to a British official in northern Iraq, Simko explained that one of his ill-wishers, on this occasion, an Iranian official, had sent him a bomb wrapped in a parcel and that he “barely had time to throw it” at his brother “when it went off.”31 The abortive attempt to assassinate Simko provided the Kurdish chief with a convenient justification to increase the number of his forces and refuse to pay his taxes to the authorities in Tabriz.32 Declaring that he had been invested with the authority to rule the region, Simko dispatched
29 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 832. See also, Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 57. 30 Ibid. 31 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell, Review
of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 70. 32 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc. 483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
135
his men to collect taxes from travelling merchants and non-Kurdish rural communities located between Salmas and Khoy.33 The news of Simko’s uprising caused panic among the residents of Khoy, who sent telegrams to Tabriz and Tehran pleading for military intervention to repel the threat posed by the Kurdish chief.34 In late May, Simko intensified his raids, plundering twelve villages near Salmas.35 In the absence of any government force capable of defending the area, the local population armed itself and fought back, forcing Simko’s men to retreat. At the end of May, however, Simko’s men returned and attacked the rural communities immediately south of Khoy.36 Once again, the residents of Khoy and surrounding villages rushed to confront Simko’s army. Only two days after the firefight outside Khoy, one of Simko’s most trusted men, Teymur Agha, sent a message to Khoy’s defenders and demanded that the individuals responsible for the assassination attempt on Simko be handed to him.37 Simko himself also used the plot on his life as a pretext to demand that the Iranian authorities detain and dispatch the perpetrators to his fortress at Chahriq. The spineless deputy governor-general, Mokarram al-Molk, refused to admit to his own role in the plot. Instead, he and the newly appointed governor, Mohammad Vali Khan Sepahdar (Sepahdar-e A’azam), a large landowner in the Caspian provinces and as such far more interested in the solution of the Jangal movement,38 blamed the attempt to kill Simko on three individuals who did not have anything to do with the plot but were disliked by both the new governor and Simko. One of the accused, the constitutionalist Qajar prince, Jahangir Mirza, was a man of letters and a popular educator, who had opened several schools in Khoy. Ironically, one of these schools, named Cyrus, had been seized and used by Simko as his residence and headquarters when he escaped the wrath of Assyrians after the murder of their leader, Mar Shimun, in March 1918.39 Jahangir
33 Ibid. See also, Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, pp. 494. 34 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, pp. 494. 35 Ibid. 36 Ibid. 37 Ibid., pp. 494–495. 38 Cox to Curzon, February 3, 1919, Tehran Intelligence Summary No 19, in Iran
Political Diaries, Volume 5, p. 813. 39 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 496.
136
M. KIA
Mirza tried to evict the Kurdish chief from his school, but failed. The prince’s efforts, however, aroused the wrath of Simko, who never forgot or forgave the humiliating experience. The three men accused of participating in the bombing plot were arrested and subsequently transported in mid-June by an escort of thirteen Qarajadaghi tribesmen to Simko’s headquarters at Chahriq.40 Though one of the men managed to escape, the other two, including Jahangir Mirza, were handed to Simko at Chahriq. The Kurdish chief had the prisoners, as well as the members of their escort, detained and tortured before cutting off their limbs and throwing their bodies “from the high rock on which his castle was built.”41 The thirteen Qarajadaghi guards were killed because the man who had murdered Simko’s brother, Jafar Agha, in Tabriz in 1905, was a tribal chief from the Qarajadagh/ Qardagh (Arasbaran), a region south of the Aras River in the present-day East Azerbaijan province of Iran.42 Despite these cold-blooded murders, the governor of Azerbaijan, Sepahdar-e A’azam, insisted on his policy of appeasing Simko by showering him with more favors and gifts. Thus, he bestowed upon the rebellious Kurdish chief the honorific title of Sardar Nosrat (Victorious Commander).43 As already mentioned, in late May, Simko had used the attempt on his life as an excuse to contact the British authorities in northern Iraq. In expressing his grievances against the Iranian authorities, he wrote about the attempt on his life and how he had escaped death. The lack of sympathetic response from the British in Iraq, his need for military support, and his fear of reprisals “on account of his treatment of Christians,” convinced Simko to throw himself into the arms of the Turkish nationalists in eastern Anatolia, who had embarked on a campaign to remove foreign occupation forces from Asia Minor and establish a Turkish republic.44 In June 1919, shortly after he had been rebuffed by the British 40 Ibid., p. 498. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 835. Qarajadagh or Qaradagh or Arasbaran was a region in east Azerbaijan north of Ahar and south of the Aras River. 41 Ibid. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 836. 42 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 836. See also, Hassan Arfa,
The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 57. 43 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 499. 44 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell, Review
of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 70.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
137
authorities in Iraq, Simko attacked Urumiyeh, apparently in retaliation for the assassination attempt on his life. The raid was intended to humiliate and intimidate Ziya al-Dowleh, the newly appointed governor of the city. According to one source, the Kurdish chief dispatched sixty armed men to Urumiyeh, where they surrounded and attacked the governor’s mansion. To the shock and surprise of the Kurdish attackers, however, the local army units, as well as ordinary citizens, armed themselves and beat back the assault, forcing Simko’s men to flee. In response to the military setback in Urumiyeh, Simko ordered his men to seize the port of Golmankhaneh on the western shore of Lake Urumiyeh. The seizure of the port was intended to prevent Tabriz from supplying the defenders at Urumiyeh with food, arms, and ammunition.45 In the process of taking Golmankhaneh, Simko’s men looted all the goods stored at the port. By November 1919, Simko’s relentless attacks had forced the British government to withdraw its vice-consul from Urumiyeh.46
First Military Campaign Against Simko Beginning in December 1919, Simko intensified his attacks against the rural communities of Lakistan in the district of Salmas and targeted the larger villages of the area, especially Sultan Ahmad and Qara Qeshlaq. On 19 December, after a short firefight, Simko’s men supported by a group of former Ottoman soldiers and officers sacked Sultan Ahmad, pillaging and killing a large number of its residents, while many women and children escaped to the neighboring village of Qara Qeshlaq.47 The next day, Simko and his army stormed Qara Qeshlaq a short distance east of Dilman. Once again, a fierce fight erupted between Simko’s army, backed
45 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 839. For a detailed description of the events in Urumiyeh, see, Rahmatollah Towfiq, Tarikhcheh-ye Urumiyeh Yaddashthaei az Salha-ye Jang Avval-e Jahani va Ashub-e Ba’ad az An, (Tehran: Pardis-e Danesh, 2010). 46 Cox to Curzon, Tehran, November 21, 1919, Doc. 129 [154739], (No. 747), in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 89. 47 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 501. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 851–852. See also, Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, (Tehran: Safi Alishah Press, 1984), pp. 228–229, p. 236.
138
M. KIA
by Turkish artillery officers, and the village defenders.48 After eleven hours of intense fighting, Qara Qeshlaq fell. Simko and his men looted the village and massacred hundreds of its defenseless residents. Those who could flee abandoned their homes and sought refuge in Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh. News of atrocities committed by Simko were widely publicized and caused widespread outrage, especially among the Azerbaijani Turks, who demanded urgent action from authorities in Tabriz and Tehran. As the deputy governor of Azerbaijan, Sardar Entesar, assembled a force of 1,000 soldiers, 250 gendarmes, and 120 cavalrymen in Sharafkhaneh,49 Tehran also dispatched a sizable army under the command of the Russian officer, Colonel Philipov, to Azerbaijan. An officer of the Cossack Brigade, who had stayed in Iran after the Bolshevik revolution of 1917, Philipov assumed the command of a combined force of nearly 5,000 men that included Cossack, gendarmerie and irregular tribal units.50 Philipov’s punitive expedition departed Tabriz for Sharafkhaneh in early January 1920, joining the force already assembled by Sardar Entesar. From Sharafkhaneh, the government force advanced to Dilman, the district capital of Salmas.51 Cooperation “by British aeroplanes” was “sanctioned by General Officer Commanding-in-chief, Baghdad.”52 Recognizing the superiority of the force dispatched against him, Simko evacuated the villages and towns he had occupied. Meanwhile, negotiations were opened and Philipov was instructed not to “undertake any active operations” pending the conclusion of the talks with the Kurdish chief.53 When the negotiations with Simko fell through, Philipov attacked
48 Ibid. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 852. 49 Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, p. 237. 50 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc. 483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 853. Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 57. 51 John Hoskyn, Persia Confidential [190387], Tehran Situation Report, for period ending January 23, 1920, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 831. See also, Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 503. 52 Ibid. 53 Ibid.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
139
Dilman.54 According to a British document, after “a stiff fight,” government forces defeated Simko, seized Dilman, and announced a great victory on 17 January.55 Three hundred government troopers, as well as four Cossack and four gendarmerie officers, were killed during the battle for Dilman.56 The number of Kurdish casualties is unknown, but it must have been significant because Simko quickly retreated to his stronghold, the fortress of Chahriq.57 Trapped in his castle, Simko tried to “retreat into Turkish territory,” but he was “cut off by snow.”58 Though the government forces had scored a decisive victory over Simko, the campaign dragged on into February. Desperate for a peaceful resolution to his conflict with the central government, the Kurdish chief resorted to his customary ploy of appealing to the Iranian prime minister for mercy and clemency, while at the same time sending his brother to negotiate a peace settlement with the Iranian commanders approaching Chahriq.59 The initial response from Tehran was negative. The prime minister, Vosuq al-Dowleh, wrote to the deputy governor of Azerbaijan, Sardar Entesar, that making peace with Simko did not make any sense, and he urged the government forces to finish the work of defeating the Kurdish rebel.60 Meanwhile, Simko cut off all telegraph lines and tried to
54 Iranian sources provide a variety of dates for Philipov’s victory over Simko. For example, see, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 853. Kasravi stated that Philipov scored his victory over Simko at Dilman on February 25, 1920. See also, Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 503. Riyahi wrote that Philipov defeated Simko on January 26, 1920. 55 Cox to Curzon, Tehran, March 7, 1920, [191973], No. 38, Enclosure in No. 1., Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 838. See also, Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc. 483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349. See also, Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 174. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 853. Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 503. 56 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 503. 57 Ibid. See also, Cox to Curzon, Tehran, March 7, 1920, [191973], No. 38, Enclosure
in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 838. 58 Cox to Curzon, Tehran, March 7, 1920, [191973], No. 38, Enclosure in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 838. 59 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 504. 60 Ibid.
140
M. KIA
block the roads from Salmas to Khoy and Urumiyeh.61 Despite Simko’s best efforts, however, Philipov continued his advance against the Kurdish chief’s stronghold and eventually laid siege to Chahriq.62 Simko had no other alternative but to accept defeat. Instead of allowing Philipov to complete his victory by demanding an unconditional surrender, the newly appointed governor of Azerbaijan, Abdol Majid Mirza Ain al-Dowleh, ordered the Russian commander to open negotiations with Simko.63 After long and protracted negotiations, it was announced on 22 February that “Colonel Philipov had proposed terms to Simko,” which the Kurdish chief accepted in early March.64 By then Simko had recognized that his survival depended on reaching an agreement with Philipov in which: (1) Simko promised to return the goods he and his men had plundered from the civilian population in Lakistan; (2) Simko agreed to pay reparations for the expenses the central government had accrued in its campaign against him; (3) Simko agreed to cease and desist from any further attacks against Salmas and Urumiyeh; (4) Simko promised to hand over all his arms and munitions to government authorities; and (5) the Kurdish chief obligated himself to dispatch his brother, Ahmad Agha, as a hostage to Tabriz, where he would reside with officers of the Cossack Brigade. In return for his agreement to these conditions, the government allowed Simko to remain in Chahriq.65 The expensive expedition against Simko cost the Iranian government 500,000 toman.66 There were rumors at the time that both the new governor and Philipov had received a significant bribe from Simko, and certain foreign
61 Ibid. 62 Ibid. 63 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 854. 64 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc.
483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349. Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 504. 65 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 855. See also, Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 504. See also, Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, p. 243. 66 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc. 483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
141
diplomats and agents had interceded on behalf of the Kurdish leader.67 At least one British report confirmed these rumors when it stated that, aside from its substantial cost, “the only manifest result” of the military campaign against Simko was that “the chief of the expedition returned to Tabriz” much richer “by a considerable sum.”68
Khiyabani’s Revolt Shortly after Philipov had returned to Tehran, a political earthquake shook the fragile balance of power in Azerbaijan and allowed Simko to resume his rebellion. In April 1920, a group of democrats led by Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani, a business proprietor, a preacher, and a former deputy to the second Majlis (1909–1911), seized the reins of power in Tabriz, the provincial capital.69 The son of a wealthy merchant family from the district of Khameneh near Tabriz, Khiyabani had been trained as a preacher and prayer leader. During the constitutional revolution, he joined the ranks of the revolutionaries and fought in defense of his city when the shah’s army laid siege to Tabriz in 1908. After the abdication of Mohammad Ali Shah on July 16, 1909, and restoration of the constitution later that year, Khiyabani was elected to the second Iranian parliament, which was inaugurated on November 15, 1909. During his tenure as a deputy to the parliament, Khiyabani emerged as one of leaders of the Democrat Party, the largest political block in the second Majlis. Though connected to the social democrats in the Caucasus, and therefore, leftist in their political orientation, the Iranian democrats were highly nationalistic, as well as respectful of Islam though ardently opposed to the
67 See Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, pp. 856–857. 68 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc.
483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349. 69 For Khiyabani’s family background and political career, see, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikhe Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, pp. 842–850, pp. 858–896. See also, Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Volume 6, pp. 196–198. See also, Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, pp. 10–13. Abdollah Bahrami, Khaterat-e Abdollah Bahrami az Akhar-e Saltanat-e Nasser al-Din Shah ta Avval-e Kudeta, (Tehran: Elmi Press, 1985), pp. 635–640. Ebrahim Safaei, Rahbaran-e Mashruteh, Volume 2, pp. 442– 444. Homa Katouzian, State and Society in Iran: The Eclipse of the Qajars and the Emergence of the Pahlavis, (London: I. B. Tauris, 2006), pp. 149–151.
142
M. KIA
involvement of the Shi’i clergy in the political life of the country. After the second Majlis was closed down under pressure from the Russian government in 1911, Khiyabani left Tehran and sought refuge in the Caucasus. When he finally returned to Tabriz, he opened a shop in the city’s main bazaar and followed a quiet life. After the victory of the Bolshevik revolution in 1917 and the withdrawal of Russian troops, the Democrat Party in Tabriz re-surfaced and quickly seized control of some of the main organs of power in the city. When the Ottoman Turks occupied Tabriz in June 1918, however, they suppressed the Democrat Party. Because of its strong pro-Iranian nationalist orientation and its opposition to pan-Islamism and pan-Turkism as promoted and propagated by Ottoman authorities, the Turks banished the leaders of the Democrat Party from Tabriz. After the end of the Great War and the withdrawal of Ottoman forces from Iranian territory, Khiyabani returned to Tabriz and revived the Democrat Party together with his close confidants and supporters. The battle for leadership, however, split the party into two contending factions with Khiyabani leading the so-called Tajaddod (Modernity) faction. The charismatic leader used the anger over the August 1919 Anglo-Persian Agreement, as well as the growing dissatisfaction with the interventionist policies of the Iranian government to increase his popularity and extend his influence over the city. Beginning on April 6, 1920, in a series of confrontations, Khiyabani’s supporters overwhelmed government authorities in the city, some of whom were forced to leave Tabriz. By 8 April, Khiyabani had seized the reins of power in the provincial capital. In distinguishing his home province from the Republic of Azerbaijan that had been created in southern Caucasus, Khiyabani changed the name of the province from Azerbaijan to Azadistan (Land of Liberty) and issued stamps for his newly established mini state.70 According to those who supported the Azerbaijani leader, Khiyabani was an Iranian nationalist who despised the corrupt and pro-British political establishment in Tehran and advocated the creation of a democratic system of government for the country. In his speeches and articles, he reportedly denounced the Anglo-Persian Agreement signed in August 1919. As did other Iranian nationalists, Khiyabani believed that the 1919 agreement converted Iran into a British protectorate. The Azerbaijani 70 Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, p. 299. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 873.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
143
leader was equally anti-Bolshevik and vehemently opposed pro-Bolshevik elements in Tabriz. According to the same Iranian sources, he advocated the promotion of Persian language among Azerbaijani children and utilizing it to teach them Iranian national history.71 To express his solidarity and support for the official language of the country, Khiyabani insisted on using Persian as the language of his declarations and articles.72 In sharp contrast to these sympathetic portrayals, the historian, Ahmad Kasravi, an active member of a rival faction of the Democrat Party in Tabriz, painted Khiyabani as an ambitious and authoritarian politician, who lacked a clear ideology and a cohesive political platform, but appealed to the illiterate masses by delivering pompous and ostentatious sermons that included references to Charles Darwin in Azerbaijani Turkish.73 Based on these contradictory statements, it is extremely difficult to reach a conclusive assessment of Khiyabani’s ideology and political objectives. But, even if we agree with his most ardent supporters that he was not ¯ Q¯apu (the seat a separatist, it is impossible to deny that in seizing Ali of the government) and appointing himself governor-general, and Khiyabani was effectively establishing an autonomous regime in Tabriz with its own military force and government officials. His attempt to organize a new army and appoint loyal officials to various governmental posts in the province without any consultation or approval by the central government clearly demonstrate that Khiyabani sought to assume executive power and utilize his newly gained authority to break away from Tehran. As an Iranian nationalist, he may have cultivated the dream of establishing a strong autonomous regime in Tabriz and using Azerbaijan as his operational base to spread his power to Tehran and beyond. Khiyabani’s activities caused panic in Tehran. The newly appointed governor of Azerbaijan, Ain al-Dowleh, who was staying, at the time, in Zanjan, approximately 186 miles (299 kilometers) southeast of Tabriz, was ordered to proceed rapidly to his assigned post. Many both in Tabriz and Tehran, however, viewed the eighty-year-old Ain al-Dowleh as the personification of reactionary politics in Iran. This was especially true of the Democrats in Tabriz. The constitutional movement of 1905–1906
71 Abdollah Bahrami, Khaterat-e Abdollah Bahrami, p. 635. 72 Ibid. 73 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 845, pp. 871–872.
144
M. KIA
had commenced partially in response to the corrupt, arbitrary and repressive policies of Ain al-Dowleh, who at the time served as the country’s prime minister. On 19 April, eleven days after Khiyabani had imposed his rule over Tabriz, the new governor arrived in the city. Khiyabani refused to meet with the new governor or accept his authority. The Azerbaijani leader insisted that the Democrats of Tabriz could manage the affairs of the province without any interference from the weak and corrupt central government in Tehran. For the next two months, a cat and mouse game ensued between the new governor and the Azerbaijani leader over the control of Tabriz. The battle between Ain al-Dowleh and Khiyabani undermined the authority of the central government in northwestern Iran, especially after the governor and his entourage left Tabriz in June 1920.74 Though he had managed to force Ain al-Dowleh out of the city, Khiyabani failed to build the political organization and the military force to impose his authority beyond the confines of the provincial capital. The absence of effective governmental authority in Tabriz created a vacuum that allowed Simko to resume his raids. Reneging on his promises to Philipov, Simko raised the flag of rebellion and once again pillaged villages and towns in the districts of Salmas and Urumiyeh. Simko’s men carried off grain, cattle, and household goods. In several villages, they also killed the defenseless inhabitants. The ferocity and brutality of these attacks forced the population to flee their villages and seek protection in Tabriz. While Azerbaijan was sliding into chaos, on May 18, 1920, Soviet Red Army detachments landed at various points on the Iranian coast of the Caspian Sea, including the port of Anzali where a British detachment was in occupation. The British had no other choice but to withdraw on 31 May. The Russian force then advanced from Anzali to Rasht, the capital of the Caspian province of Gilan. On June 5, 1920, Mirza Kuchak Khan, the leader of the Jangal movement, declared the establishment of the Soviet Republic of Gilan. The Soviet military intervention was directed against Great Britain and the Anglo-Persian Agreement of August 1919. It was also intended to shake up the political situation in Tehran, where the Anglophile prime minister, Vosuq al-Dowleh, was forced to tender his resignation on June 24, 1920.
74 Ibid., p. 887.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
145
The new prime minister, Mirza Hassan Khan Moshir al-Dowleh, appointed the veteran politician, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, as the new governor of Azerbaijan. Mokhber al-Saltaneh was saddled with the task of suppressing Khiyabani’s revolt, pacifying Simko, and restoring law and order to the entire province. In August 1920, even before the arrival of the new governor, Simko used the absence of any governmental authority in western Azerbaijan to occupy the district capital of Salmas and appoint his close confidant, Teymur Agha, as its governor.75 In early autumn 1920, the Kemalist Turks furnished Simko with “arms and ammunition,” as well as military advisers “to instruct his men in the use of mountain-gun and machine-guns.”76 For Turkish nationalists, who were fighting the Armenians in eastern Anatolia at the time, Simko’s army could be used as an auxiliary force to reinforce their eastern flank, especially to counter the threat posed by Armenians and Assyrians, some of whom were planning to cross into Iranian territory from Iraq with large stores of arms. Both Simko and Kemalist Turks were becoming increasingly alarmed about the developments in British-controlled Iraq, especially after the Assyrian refugees, who lived at Baqubah refugee camp, northeast of Baghdad, declared their intention to return to their homes and communities. Both Simko and the Turkish nationalists were anxious to prevent the return of British-backed armed Christians to northwestern Iran. Simko, in particular, was determined “not to yield up an iota of the gains” which he had acquired “at the expense of the Christians” during the Great War, when the Ottoman Turks, backed by Kurdish irregular units, had chased thousands of Assyrians and Armenians out of their towns and villages.77 As a British report stated, Simko’s “primary objective” was “to oppose the return of the Christian refugees whose progress from Urumia to Kurdish districts on both sides of the frontier”
75 C.S. Edwards, Kazvin Division Report for August 1920, Doc. 368 [C 14,882/ 14882/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 270. 76 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc. 483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349. 77 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell, Review of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 69.
146
M. KIA
was “exciting lively apprehensions among the Kurds” and Iranian authorities.78 It is not surprising, therefore, that Simko, supported by Sayyid Taha II, hurriedly collected his forces in preparation of a confrontation with returning Assyrian Christians.79 The military assistance provided to Simko by nationalist Turks empowered the Kurdish chief, not only to prevent the return of Assyrians to western Azerbaijan, but also to fight the Armenians, should they attempt to advance toward the district of Van in eastern Anatolia.80 As with the Hamidiye cavalry units in the late nineteenth and early twentieth century, Simko’s tribal army was used by Turkish nationalists to patrol the Iranian-Turkish frontier, while, at the same time, preventing any Armenian or Assyrian armed band from establishing itself in western Azerbaijan at the rear of the Kemalist forces. When the nationalist Turks defeated Armenia in November–December 1920, and the Assyrian refugees in Iraq, led by their commander, Agha Petros, failed to proceed over the Iran-Iraq border, Simko once again re-directed his attention against Khoy. The Kurdish chief threatened to capture the predominantly Shi’i Azerbaijani town unless the inhabitants drove out the relative of the Khan of Maku, who served as the governor of the town, a persona non-grata to Simko and his supporters.81 By late autumn 1920, the arms and ammunition supplied by Turkish nationalists had allowed the Kurdish chief to emerge as the dominant power in the districts of Khoy, Urumiyeh, and Salmas.82
78 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, November 24, 1920, [E 2004/2004/34], No. 168, Enclosure in No. 1. in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 850. 79 Ernest Bristow, Tabriz, December 31, 1920, Report of Azerbaijan during 1920, Doc. 483 [E 3497/3497/34] in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 349. 80 Ibid. 81 Ibid. 82 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, November 24, 1920, [E 2004/2004/34], No. 168, Enclosure in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 850.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
147
Sayyid Taha II as Simko’s Ambassador With Simko resuming his revolt, Sayyid Taha II, the advocate of an independent Kurdish state, returned from Turkish Kurdistan, first to Sulduz and thence to Lahijan and Urumiyeh, all along conducting propaganda among various Kurdish tribes for the union of Turkish and Iranian Kurdistan in an independent state.83 As with Simko, Sayyid Taha II’s independence project called for unifying all Kurdish tribes behind the idea of cleansing the region of its non-Kurdish population, especially the Assyrians, Armenians, but also the Turkic Qara Papakhs, who inhabited over 110 villages in the districts of Sulduz and Sardasht.84 As part of his propaganda, the Sayyid claimed that his mission to create a Kurdish state enjoyed British support.85 In their campaign to create an independent Kurdistan, Simko, and Sayyid Taha II posited that they could not accomplish their political objectives without military and financial support from Britain, the European imperial power ruling not only India, but also a vast territory in the Middle East, including Egypt, Palestine, Transjordan, and Iraq. Acting as Simko’s ambassador and chief negotiator, Sayyid Taha II had already travelled to Iraq in spring 1919. During this visit, Sayyid Taha II pressed British officials in Baghdad “for a united Kurdistan under British auspices,” including the Kurds in Iran.86 When British authorities explained to him that their support for a Kurdish state did not include the Kurds of Iran and that he and Simko could not expect any assistance from Britain, Sayyid Taha II expressed “great disappointment” and stated that the separation of Iranian Kurdistan from Iran “was certain to come,” even if the British government withheld its consent.87 In September 1920, Sayyid Taha returned to Iraq. While the British planned to discuss repatriation for Assyrian Christians who had fled Urumiyeh in July–August
83 Ibid. 84 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, January 17, 1921, [39912004/34], No. 21, Enclosure
in No. 1., Monthly Summary for November 1920, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 855. 85 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, November 24, 1920, [E 2004/2004/34], No. 168, Enclosure in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 850. 86 Iraq Civil Commissioner, Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell, Review of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, p. 69. 87 Ibid.
148
M. KIA
1918, Sayyid Taha II intended “to obtain British support, i.e. arms and money for an independent Kurdistan.”88 The timing for Sayyid Taha II’s visit was not accidental. Inside Iran, the Azerbaijani democrat, Khiyabani, had effectively destroyed the authority of the central government in Tabriz, creating a new political entity that enjoyed independence from Tehran. In Gilan, Mirza Kuchak Khan had declared the establishment of the Soviet Republic of Gilan with direct support from the Soviet Union. Furthermore, on August 10, 1920, Britain, France, Italy, and Japan had signed the Treaty of Sèvres with the representatives of the Ottoman government. The treaty effectively abolished the Ottoman Empire and carved up its territory into new political entities. Articles 63–64 of the treaty provided for a two-step approach to the establishment of an independent Kurdish state. First, an autonomous Kurdish state was to be created “east of the Euphrates, south of the southern boundary of Armenia and north of the frontier of Turkey with Syria and Mesopotamia.”89 Within a year, Kurds could appeal to the League of Nations to seek full independence. If the League decided in their favor, the treaty stated that Turkey would “renounce all rights and title over these areas.”90 Sayyid Taha II believed that the rise of Khiyabani in Tabriz and the establishment of a Soviet Republic in Gilan signaled the beginning of the disintegration of the Iranian state. He further interpreted the Treaty of Sèvres as a new commitment by European powers, especially Great Britain, to create a Kurdish state. The British authorities in Iraq intended to use Sayyid Taha II to consolidate their authority in northern Iraq and neutralize the threat posed by Turkish nationalists to Rawanduz and Dasht-e Harir.91 Arnold Wilson, the British civil commissioner in Baghdad, offered Sayyid Taha II the governorship of the Shamdinan (in southeastern Anatolia), Rawanduz, and Dasht-e Harir districts (in northern Iraq) “in return for an allowance.”92 The Sayyid made four stipulations before he could accept 88 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918–1920, p. 308. 89 Karˇci´c, Hamza, “Sèvres at 100: The Peace Treaty that Partitioned the Ottoman Empire,” Journal of Muslim Minority Affairs, Vol. 40, No. 3, 470–479, p. 472. 90 Ibid. 91 Ihsan ˙ Serif ¸ Kaymaz, “Britain’s Policy toward Kurdistan at the End of the First World
War,” Turkish Journal of International Relations, www.alternativesjournal.net, p. 110. 92 Ibid.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
149
the offer: “first, that a general amnesty be proclaimed; second, that the country be organized in autonomous groups and that no attempt be made to set up a single chief in Kurdistan; third, that the Kurds not be placed under Armenian or Nestorian [Assyrian] domination; and fourth, that the British government provide material assistance.”93 British authorities accepted these conditions, but Sayyid Taha II was beholden to Simko and dependent militarily on the Shakak chief. Though they were well aware of Simko’s influence and military capabilities, the British authorities in Iraq did not provide him with any direct assistance. They viewed the Kurdish chief as an adventurer and opportunist who sold his services to the highest bidder. He had, after all, collaborated at one point or another with the Qajar state, Young Turks, Czarist Russia, Kemalist Turks, and even the Bolsheviks. He was also the murderer of the Assyrian Patriarch, Mar Shimun, and, as such, could not be accepted as an ally of a European power that claimed to act as the protector of the Assyrian community in Iraq. More importantly, the British were well aware that the success of Simko’s project could result in the dismemberment of the Iranian state. The defense and security of India were the paramount preoccupations of the British government, and the British, therefore, viewed Iran, Afghanistan, and the waters of the Persian Gulf as the borderlands that had to be protected from both political instability and the expansionist policies of the Soviet Union. Though imbued with some of the most condescending, pompous, and openly racist views regarding Iranians, the British colonial administrators could not ignore certain inherited maxims.94 The most important of these maxims were: (1) that the unity and territorial integrity of Iran as a buffer state between the Soviet Union and British India was essential to the defense and security of India; (2) that the requirements of Indian security and defense also necessitated the exclusion of any other great power from the Persian Gulf region; (3) that British prestige in South Asia and the Middle East rendered it impossible for Britain to relax its traditional efforts to maintain a dominant position in Iran; and (4) that the oil fields of southwestern Iran 93 Ibid. 94 See for example the following statement: “The gift of reason has not been granted
to the Persians, and the intuition on which they rely is feckless and often rudimentary.” Nicolson to Chamberlain, Gulhek, September 30, 1926, [E 5994/92/34], No. 486, in Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939, Series IA, Volume II, p. 813.
150
M. KIA
run by the Anglo-Persian Oil Company were a British imperial interest that had to be protected by force if necessary.95 Additionally, Britain had signed the Anglo-Persian Agreement in August 1919, which, if ratified by the Iranian Majlis, would have effectively converted the country into a protectorate of the British Empire. The ultimate strategy of Britain was, therefore, to prevent the disintegration of the Iranian state either under pressure from the Soviet Union or from an internal rebellion. This did not mean, however, that Britain favored the emergence of a strong and highly centralized Iran. The preservation of Iran as a loose aggregate of autonomous political and administrative entities benefited the British because it allowed them to maintain their influence through multiple power centers in the country, including the Sheikh of Mohammareh, the Bakhtiyari chiefs, the Baluchi sardars, and so on. While they opposed Kurdish nationalist activities in Iran, British officials in Baghdad encouraged Kurdish nationalistic sentiments in Iraq. Though subjected to a great deal of internal debates and disagreements, the gist of the British policy in the early 1920s was to create a Kurdish autonomous region in northern Iraq as a means of thwarting Turkish nationalist claims on Mosul and the surrounding districts.96 Thus, it is not surprising that the British officials in Iraq worked hard “to persuade the Kurds of Iraq to use their own language,” to publish a Kurdish newspaper and to employ Kurdish “for all official correspondence,”97 thereby replacing Turkish, the language used in government offices, and Persian, the language of private correspondence.98
End of Khiyabani Until late autumn of 1921, the central government in Tehran concentrated its meager military resources not in Azerbaijan, but in the Caspian province of Gilan, where the leader of the Jangal movement, Mirza Kuchak Khan, had established the Soviet Republic of Gilan with support 95 Ibid. 96 Kaveh Bayat, “Iran and the ‘Kurdish Question,’” Middle East Report 247 (Summer
2008). 97 Rupert Hay, Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918-1920, p. 44. 98 C. J. Edmonds, “A Kurdish Newspaper: Rozh-i Kurdistan,” in Journal of the Central Asian Society, 12:1, 83–90, p. 84.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
151
from the Soviet Red Army. Because of the presence of Soviet forces and the close proximity of Gilan to Tehran, the Iranian central government was focused almost exclusively on suppressing the Jangal movement. Both the British forces stationed in Qazvin, almost ninety-four miles or 152 kilometers west of Tehran, as well as the Russian commanders of the Cossack Brigade, who had remained in Iran after the victory of the Bolshevik revolution, believed that Mirza Kuchak Khan enjoyed sufficient military force with support from Moscow to march to Tehran and seize the capital. With much of its fighting force concentrated on countering Mirza Kuchak Khan, the government could only spare small detachments of Cossacks and gendarmes for the security and protection of other provinces, including Azerbaijan. The prevailing attitude in Tehran was that the situation in Azerbaijan with regard to both Khiyabani in Tabriz and Simko on the Turkish-Iranian frontier had better be left alone until the threat posed by Bolshevik forces in Gilan had been dealt with. Though slow in its response to the unfolding crisis in Azerbaijan, Tehran remained anxious to re-impose at least its nominal authority over the province. Thus, in August 1920, the prime minister, Mirza Hassan Khan Moshir al-Dowleh, dispatched the veteran politician, Mokhber alSaltaneh Hedayat, to Tabriz as the new governor of Azerbaijan. The new governor arrived in Tabriz accompanied by a small group of officers and personal attendants. These included Major Hassan Malekzadeh, who would be appointed the commander of gendarmerie forces at Savojbolagh (Mahabad).99 The new governor also dispatched an army officer, Zafar al-Dowleh (later Brigadier General Hassan Moqaddam), with a detachment to Tasuj north of Lake Urumiyeh. Mokhber al-Saltaneh’s mission was clear: he had to restore the central government’s authority in Tabriz, where Khiyabani had established himself as the unchallenged ruler. Once he had consolidated his position in Tabriz, the new governor planned to quell tribal uprisings in the province, especially the attacks by Shahseven tribes in eastern Azerbaijan and Simko’s rebellion in western Azerbaijan. Declaring himself as the sole legitimate ruler in Tabriz, Khiyabani governed the city with a small force, but he could not extend his authority beyond the confines of the city or collect any taxes; the Shahseven tribes
99 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 182.
152
M. KIA
openly flouted him, and they repeatedly defeated the military expeditions he sent against them.100 The lack of funds and his failure to suppress the powerful tribal chiefs of the province, significantly undermined Khiyabani’s prestige and power. When Mokhber al-Saltaneh arrived in Tabriz, he requested a face-to-face meeting with Khiyabani. Suspicious of Mokhber al-Saltaneh’s true intentions, Khiyabani, who had occupied ¯ Q¯apu, refused to meet.101 Instead, he the governor’s mansion at Ali dispatched some of his closest confidants to meet with the new governor and encourage him to return to Tehran, because Khiyabani and his supporters had already developed a plan for the growth and progress of Azerbaijan.102 The pro-Khiyabani forces also refused to vacate the various government offices, which they had occupied since the departure of the previous governor in June.103 At this critical juncture, Khiyabani made a fatal mistake by dispatching his most loyal military units to suppress a tribal rebellion in Qarajadagh northeast of Tabriz.104 The absence of pro-Khiyabani forces allowed Mokhber al-Saltaneh to mobilize pro-government forces and unleash them against the rebel democrat. In his memoirs, Mokhber al-Saltaneh claimed that he had tried to reach a negotiated settlement with the democrats but that Khiyabani’s supporters insisted that the governor resign his post and return to Tehran.105 The British intelligence reports indicated that after he had failed to convince Khiyabani to meet with him in person; the new governor made an arrangement with the Cossack units stationed in Tabriz to seize all government buildings and installations.106 On 12 September,
100 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, September 11, 1920, [C 14858/14858/34], No. 138., Enclosure in No. 1. in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 840. 101 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 887, p. 889. 102 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat. Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 316. 103 Report on the Gendarmarie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/ 6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 322. 104 Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, p. 490. 105 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 316. 106 Report on the Gendarmarie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/ 6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 322.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
153
the new governor left the city and visited the barracks of the Cossack division on the outskirts of Tabriz. Confident of his power, Khiyabani ignored the governor’s activities and dispatched the loyal gendarmerie units to re-open one of the roads outside the city, which had been blocked by Shahseven tribesmen. With the gendarmes leaving Tabriz, Khiyabani lacked sufficient military force even to defend himself. The following day, on 13 September, the inevitable clash between Khiyabani and the new governor backed by Cossack units and irregular tribal levies, erupted into a full-scale confrontation.107 Mokhber al-Saltaneh ordered pro-government forces to seize control of the city and detain Khiyabani. After four hours of fighting, the Cossacks routed the supporters of Khiyabani and imposed their control over the provincial capital.108 The next day, on 14 September, Khiyabani was shot and killed in the cellar of a neighbor’s house where he was hiding.109 Several decades later, Mokhber al-Saltaneh claimed that Khiyabani had committed suicide after exchange of fire with the Cossacks who had discovered his hide-out, which had been pointed out to them by a young girl.110 Khiyabani’s supporters vanished, and “the Democrats as a party disappeared for the moment, but they never forgave Mokhber al-Saltaneh,” and they sat in waiting for an opportunity to exact their revenge against a
107 Tehran Monthly Summary, September 1920, Doc. 369 [C 13012/82/34] in British
Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 272. 108 Ibid. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 892. Ali Azari, Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, p. 490, p. 494. 109 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 318. See also, Norman to Curzon, Tehran, October 13, 1920, [C 13012/82/34], No. 143, Enclosure in No. 1. in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 5, p. 844. The British intelligence report claimed that Khiyabani was killed after “offering resistance to the Cossacks” who had “attempted to arrest him.” This statement clearly indicates that the source of this report was Mokhber al-Saltaneh who intended to put the blame for Khiyabani’s death on the Azerbaijani leader rather than himself. 110 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 318.
154
M. KIA
governor they blamed for the death of their leader.111 Some of Khiyabani’s supporters who fled Tabriz established contact with Simko and encouraged the Kurdish chief, who had already restarted his rebellion against the government, to intensify his attacks. The avenging democrats dispatched a certain Aghazadeh as their envoy to Simko to negotiate an alliance with the Kurdish leader. Once the two parties had reached an understanding, Simko appointed Aghazadeh as his governor of Urumiyeh in early winter 1921. With the support and blessing of Simko, the wily democrat negotiated the surrender of the largest town in western Azerbaijan to the Kurdish chief. Thus, Simko’s position by the beginning of 1921 had improved significantly. He was in control of the districts of Salmas and Urumiyeh, and he enjoyed the support of the Tabriz democrats. Though principally focused on quelling the Jangal movement in the Caspian province of Gilan, the central government in Tehran was becoming increasingly alarmed about the spread of Simko’s rebellion in northwestern Iran. The threat posed by Simko in western Azerbaijan and the Shahseven tribes in the eastern part of the province not only challenged and undermined the power and prestige of the central government, but it also provided justification for the Bolsheviks and the nationalist Turks to interfere in the internal affairs of the country. In early January 1921, a British report estimated the strength of the Bolshevik troops in Astara in the province of Gilan on the border with eastern Azerbaijan and southern Caucasus at 500 men.112 This force, however, increased until 4,000 men were concentrated with the object of invading the Ardabil district in eastern Azerbaijan, using the punishment of unruly Shahseven tribes as the justification.113 Meanwhile, the nationalist Turks were trying to take
111 Report on the Gendarmarie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/ 6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 322. 112 Tehran, Monthly Summary for January 1921, Doc. 515 [E 6158/2004/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 386. 113 Ibid.
5
FALL OF EMPIRES AND SIMKO’S REVOLT
155
advantage of Simko’s quarrel with the Khan of Maku over control of Khoy to expand their military operations into western Azerbaijan and use the region as a base to attack Armenia and open a corridor for their future campaigns against the British in northern Iraq.114 Recognizing the presence of foreign forces on the margins of the province allowed Simko to continue his intrigue with both the Turks and the Bolsheviks, while Sayyid Taha II continued his vigorous propaganda for an independent Kurdistan.115
114 Ibid. 115 Ibid. See also, Tehran, Monthly Summary for November 1920, Doc. 487 [E 3991/
2004/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 16, p. 356.
CHAPTER 6
Simko’s Wars and the Rise of Reza Shah
With Khiyabani out of the picture, Mokhber al-Saltaneh switched his focus to tribal rebellions outside Tabriz, especially Simko’s uprising in western Azerbaijan. The reports dispatched from Azerbaijan in autumn 1920, indicated that much of the province was practically independent of the authority of the central government in Tehran. In the northwestern corner of the province, Eqbal al-Saltaneh, the Khan of Maku, had long ruled independently, conducting his own foreign policy and negotiating his own agreements with Russians and Turks. In November 1920, Eqbal al-Saltaneh allowed Turkish nationalist forces to pass freely through his territory to attack Armenian nationalists, despite repeated instructions from the Iranian government that he should observe the official policy of neutrality and prevent the passage of belligerents through his territory.1 To the south of Maku, Simko dominated the districts of Salmas and Urumiyeh. Having received arms and ammunition, first from remnants of the Ottoman 15th Corps commanded by General Kazim Karabekir, and subsequently from the Turkish nationalist movement led by Mustafa Kemal, Simko and Sayyid Taha II seized the town of Urumiyeh in
1 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, November 24, 1920, [E 2004/2004/34], No. 168., Enclosure in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p. 849.
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_6
157
158
M. KIA
December 1920.2 The Kurdish chief’s principal objectives were to free himself from the authority of the governor-general of Azerbaijan and block the return of Christian refugees, mainly Assyrians and Armenians, to their towns and villages.
Sayyid Taha II and Simko’s Revolt Despite Simko’s importance, the leading spirit in the Kurdish independence movement was Sayyid Taha II, who hailed from one of the most prominent Kurdish families of the Ottoman Empire. An advocate of an independent Kurdistan, Sayyid Taha II conducted propaganda among the Iranian Kurds for the union of Iranian and Turkish Kurdistan in an independent state.3 A capable propagandist Sayyid Taha II had spread the rumor that his mission enjoyed the full support of the British authorities in northern Iraq. The propaganda war waged by Sayyid Taha II forced the British consul in Tabriz to hand an official note to the governor of Azerbaijan stating that the British government had “no intention whatsoever of encouraging” a Kurdish national movement and that the rumor that the British government had assured the Kurdish leadership of its support was “without foundation.”4 Though the British refused to support Simko, Sayyid Taha did not give up. To gain the confidence of the British, or at least to remain in their good graces, Sayyid Taha went so far as to act as a self-appointed informant for the British. In a letter dated May 18, 1921, the Sayyid informed a British diplomat that a Kurdish delegation from Sulaymaniyah had travelled to Van to seek the support of the Turkish nationalist leader, Mustafa Kemal, against the British in northern Iraq and that the Turkish leader had provided the Kurds with fifty Turkish soldiers, artillery, and a machine gun.5
2 Tehran, Monthly Summary for December 1920, Doc. 503 [E 4923/2004/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 368. 3 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, November 24, 1920, [E 2004/2004/34], No. 168., Enclosure in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p, 850. 4 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, January 17, 1921, [E 3991/2004/34], No. 21., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p. 855. 5 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, June 17, 1921, [E 9979/2004/34], No. 97., Intelligence Summary No. 6., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 29.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
159
Sayyid Taha II’s talents were not confined to political propaganda and intelligence gathering for British authorities in Iraq. He was also a charismatic military leader with an exceptional aptitude for leading men on the battlefield. On February 18, 1921, a Kurdish force under the command of Sayyid Taha II captured the port of Haydarabad south of Lake Urumiyeh and quickly pushed toward Sulduz, thus expanding the territory under Simko’s rule.6 One of the strategic objectives of Sayyid Taha II and Simko was to establish direct contact with the Kurdish tribes of Kurdistan and Kermanshah and eventually to link up with the Lur tribal groups of western Iran. A Kurdish movement, led by Sayyid Taha II acting as its spiritual head and Simko as its military commander, could potentially convince many Kurdish tribal chiefs to abandon their tribal rivalries and throw their support behind the idea of establishing an independent Kurdistan. As Simko and Sayyid Taha II’s campaign to establish an independent Kurdish state gained momentum, a political earthquake shook the foundation of Iran’s power structure in Tehran. In the early hours of February 21, 1921, detachments of the Iranian Cossack brigade forces, under the command of Colonel Reza Khan, seized Tehran and put it under martial law. Shortly after the Cossacks occupied the capital, the former journalist turned politician, Sayyid Ziya al-Din Tabatabai, was appointed prime minister. The new prime minister ordered the imprisonment of a large number of politicians, many of whom remained in detention for the next three months. The commander of the Cossack division that had marched to the capital, Reza Khan, was elevated to the command of the Cossack Brigade, receiving the title of Sardar Sepah (Commander of the Army). In April, Sayyid Ziya reshuffled his cabinet and appointed Reza Khan as the minister of war. The February 1921 coup d’état in Tehran did not have an immediate impact on Simko’s activities. Enjoying direct support from the Turkish nationalists in eastern Anatolia, the Bolsheviks in the Caucasus, and the remnants of the Democrat Party previously based in Tabriz, Simko seized Urumiyeh, and began to threaten Khoy in January–February 1921.7 With assistance from the chiefs of Dehbokri and Mamash tribes, Simko also 6 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, March 31, 1921, [E 6160/2004/34], No. 39., Enclosure No. 1., February 1921, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 9. 7 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, February 23, 1921, [E 4923/2004/34], No. 28., Enclosure in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 5, p. 861.
160
M. KIA
organized a force of 1,000 armed men to attack Savojbolagh to the south.8 A substantial portion of Simko’s military capabilities, however, derived from the direct assistance he received from the Turkish nationalists. A British report for February 1921, stated that one Turkish officer had spent several months with Simko, while another, who represented the Turkish commander at Bayezid (present-day Do˘gubayezit) in eastern Anatolia near the Iran-Ottoman border, was “trying to settle the dispute between Simko and the Khan of Maku.”9 Late in the same year, the British consul in Tabriz wrote that many “Turkish nationalist deserters” were also “joining Simko.”10 While maintaining a close relationship with the nationalist Turks, Simko also continued his “intrigues with the Bolsheviks,”11 though the extent of Simko’s relationship with the communist regime remains uncertain. What is fascinating, however, is that the Kurdish chief’s military successes had brought him to the attention of another armed movement supported by the Bolsheviks in northern Iran. In June 1921, a messenger arrived in Azerbaijan with letters inviting Simko to join the revolution against the Iranian government staged by the Bolshevik-backed Jangal movement, which had established an independent Soviet socialist republic in the Caspian province of Gilan.12 Increasingly alarmed by the emergence of a centralizing government in Tehran and convinced that without direct support from a major European power, his project of creating a Kurdish state was doomed to fail, Simko appealed once again to British officials in Iraq for political and military support. To ensure a positive response from the British, the proud Kurdish chief humbled himself and admitted in a secret memorandum that he was well aware that his reputation was “one of treachery
8 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, March 14, 1921, [E 6158/2004/34], No. 34., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 5. 9 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, March 31, 1921, [E 6160/2004/34], No. 39., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 9. 10 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, August 25, 1921, [E 11692/2004/34], No. 163.,
Intelligence Summary No. 16., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 64. 11 Monthly Summary for January 1921, Doc. 515 [E 6158/2004/34], British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 386. 12 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, June 17, 1921, [E 9979/2004/34], Intelligence Summary No. 6., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 29.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
161
and deceit in dealing with Governments.”13 He reassured the British, however, that none of his actions had any “hostile intention with regard to the British government.”14 On the contrary, he had “a sincere desire to be on friendly terms” with British officials in Iraq, and he wished to request from them to approach British decision-makers on his behalf “for the purpose of arranging some mutual understanding.”15 To achieve this goal, he was willing to go south “as far as Ushnu [Oshnaviyeh] for the sake of meeting any British representative sent by the British government.”16 Simko’s pleas for British support remained unanswered.
Battle of Tasuj Simko’s growing power and his appeal to the British caused anxiety and fear in Tabriz. The governor of Azerbaijan, Mokhber al-Saltaneh, was convinced that Simko was nothing but a stooge of the British colonial administrators in Iraq who were determined to keep Iran unstable and chaotic by fomenting tribal rebellions. Initially, the governor tried to reach an amicable settlement with Simko through Turkish officers with close connection to the Kurdish chief, including one who had spent several months with him.17 These mediations, however, failed to produce any concrete results, partially because the governor demanded that Simko return the guns he had received from the Turkish nationalists.18 With negotiations at a standstill, Mokhber al-Saltaneh opted for the military option. He mobilized the small and poorly armed Cossack and gendarmerie units, as well as irregular tribal units, under his control. Though he had no expertise or training in military matters, Mokhber al-Saltaneh was determined to crush the Kurdish revolt by relying exclusively on his own ill-conceived and grossly flawed plans. As one Iranian army officer who participated in the campaign against Simko wrote many 13 Susan Meiselas, Kurdistan in the Shadow of History, (New York: Random House, 1997), p. 101. 14 Ibid. 15 Ibid. 16 Ibid. 17 Monthly Summary for February 1921, Doc. 516 [E 6160/2004/34], British Docu-
ments on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 390. 18 Ibid.
162
M. KIA
years later, the governor “had read a German book about the conduct of war and imagined himself able to conduct military operations against the tribes.”19 It is not surprising that all of Mokhber al-Saltaneh’s military operations proved disastrous, because he divided government forces into several detachments and scattered them in a large area extending from the district of Maku in the north to Savojbolagh in the south. According to a British intelligence report, “there was no co-ordination” among government troops, and “each detachment was ignorant of the movements of the others.”20 There was also “no definite plan of campaign, and the troops in the sphere of operations” were exceedingly small, and “ill-supplied with the ammunition of which large stores were available at Tabriz.”21 Therefore, as long as Mokhber al-Saltaneh was in charge of military operations in Azerbaijan, Simko and his much larger and betterarmed Kurdish force managed to defend the territory under their control, while at the same time inflicting humiliating defeats against government forces dispatched against them. Mokhber al-Saltaneh commenced his campaign against Simko by sending a force of about 800 Cossacks and gendarmes under the command of Zafar al-Dowleh to attack the Kurdish chief from the north.22 At the same time, a gendarmerie detachment under the command of Major Hassan Malekzadeh was ordered to sail on the ship Admiral from the port of Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh to the port of Danalu on the southeastern shore of the lake and eventually establish itself at Savojbolagh south of Lake Urumiyeh.23 By dividing his forces into two small armies, and by dispatching a single battalion to Savojbolagh without cavalry cover and
19 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 59. 20 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 38, Tehran, September 24, 1922, Doc. 86
[E 12259/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 125. 21 Ibid. 22 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 248 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on
Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 299. 23 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 182. The British intelligence reports estimated the size of the gendarmerie force in Savojbolagh to be 600.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
163
sufficient artillery, Mokhber al-Saltaneh condemned the hapless government forces to devastating defeats at the hands of Simko and his much larger and better-equipped army.24 The militarily astute and savvy Kurdish chief realized that he enjoyed a clear superiority over the smaller forces dispatched against him, both in size and quality of arms and artillery, and he could, therefore, overwhelm them, one at a time, with great ease. In his first move against government troops, Simko concentrated his forces against Zafar al-Dowleh. The units under Zafar al-Dowleh’s command consisted of a mixed body of gendarmes and cavalry detachments based in Khoy and a Cossack detachment comprising 600 infantry and 100 cavalry from Tabriz, which had set up camp at Sharafkhaneh.25 The gendarmes were ordered to march from Khoy southward toward the village of Shakar Yazi northeast of Dilman, the district capital of Salmas, while the Cossacks advanced westward from Sharafkhaneh toward the village of Alma Saray, in close proximity to Shakar Yazi.26 The two forces were to converge in Dilman and wage a coordinated attack against Simko’s home base at Chahriq. Recognizing the gap between the two armies that were approaching Dilman, Simko responded expeditiously. In late March, 1921, a Kurdish army under the command of Simko surprised Zafar al-Dowleh at Tasuj, north of Lake Urumiyeh.27 According to one report, Simko’s forces comprised 1,000 horsemen and 500 infantrymen and they carried the Turkish flag.28 Shocked by the swiftness of the attack, the small government force panicked and retreated losing “170 men, 1 gun and 4 machine guns.”29 According to the British consul in Tabriz, the Cossacks lost “2 mountain guns, 4 machine guns, 200,000 cartridges, 24 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 74. 25 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, April 3, 1921, Doc. 490 [E 4057/3997/34], in British
Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 360. 26 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 183. 27 Ibid. 28 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, April 3, 1921, Doc. 490 [E 4057/3997/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 360. 29 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 248 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 299.
164
M. KIA
all their rifles and 60 horses.”30 The humiliated army also lost 300 camels, three cannons, and a large quantity of arms. Zafar al-Dowleh saved his life by seeking refuge on the ship Admiral.31 The defeat was total. Astonishingly enough, the bungling Mokhber al-Saltaneh sent a telegram to Major Malekzadeh in Savojbolagh that could only demoralize the ill-prepared and poorly armed gendarmerie unit and its commander: “Major Malekzadeh, Zafar al-Dowleh demonstrated a total lack of experience. You need to think of yourself.”32 To fill the vacuum created by Zafar al-Dowleh’s defeated army, the central government dispatched a detachment of 1,500 gendarmes composed of three infantry units, two cavalry detachments and a machine gun squadron to Tabriz. These units arrived in August 1921. The gendarmerie detachment was to proceed to Savojbolagh where its Swedish commander, Colonel Lundberg, planned to “undertake operations against Simko in conjunction with the government troops already there.”33 On 25 August, the British consul at Tabriz informed the British military attaché in Tehran that Simko was alarmed by the arrival of the gendarmes and prevailed on the inhabitants of Urumiyeh to send a messenger to the governor-general of Azerbaijan at Tabriz, “asking that the troops may be dispersed and that the matter may be settled by peaceful negotiations.”34 Lundberg, however, showed no inclination to either negotiate or commence active operations against Simko.35 He claimed that he needed time “for training and further reconnaissance” and complained that he did not have sufficient funds to pay
30 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, April 3, 1921, Doc. 490 [E 4057/3997/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 360. 31 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat. Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 324. 32 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 183. 33 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 17 , Tehran, August 28, 1921, Doc 82 [E
11698/2004/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 121. 34 Ibid. 35 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 21, Tehran, October 2, 1921, Doc 130
(Secret) in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 166.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
165
his men.36 Colonel Lundberg’s refusal to speed up his operations against Simko allowed the Kurdish chief to switch his focus from the area north of Lake Urumiyeh to Savojbolagh, where Major Hassan Malekzadeh had established himself at the head of a small gendarmerie detachment.
Simko Captures Savojbolagh (Mahabad) For much of summer 1921, Simko remained quiet as Malekzadeh became increasingly suspicious of tribal activities in close proximity to his command post. To allay his anxieties, Malekzadeh invited two local Kurdish chiefs he suspected to a reception, “where he treacherously arrested them and sent them to Tabriz.”37 The imprisonment of the two Kurdish chiefs incensed Simko, who “made a forced march with 500 of his own tribesmen, to Savojbolagh, where he was joined by local Kurds.”38 To deceive Malekzadeh, the Kurdish chief first feigned an attack against government forces north of Lake Urumiyeh, but instead marched south to Urumiyeh and entered the city on October 4, 1921. He did not, however, remain in Urumiyeh. Immediately turning south, Simko, who had by then gathered a combined force of “3,000 mounted men and 500 infantry,” surprised Malekzadeh and his gendarmes stationed in Savojbolagh by attacking the town on 6 October.39 Malekzadeh had received repeated warnings about Simko’s movements, including a message from one of the chiefs of the Mamash, who had informed him that Simko was approaching Savojbolagh at the head of a large force.40 After several hours of fierce fighting, Simko’s men
36 Ibid. 37 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 246 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on
Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 299. 38 Ibid. 39 Ibid. See also, M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 24, Tehran, October 16,
1921, Doc 132 in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 169. See also the account of an eyewitness living in Savojbolagh at the time of Simko’s attack in Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” Atlantic Monthly, Vol. CXXX (July–December 1922). 40 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 185.
166
M. KIA
broke over the nearest hills on the morning of 7 October.41 Malekzadeh’s hesitation and lack of clear strategy, as well as the small size of his illequipped force, which was armed with a single “decrepit cannon” and four machine guns, allowed Simko to inflict a crushing defeat on the gendarmerie detachment.42 Until he surrendered, Malekzadeh was unaware that the Kurdish force that had attacked him was led by Simko, thinking instead that he had been attacked by an army commanded by Sayyid Taha II. Thus, when he sent his message of surrender, he addressed Sayyid Taha II: “Mr. Sayyid Taha, I defended the city with the last bullet, [but] the tide of the war did not favor me. I will surrender provided that my men and I are not disrespected.”43 Only after Simko responded to his message did Malekzadeh realize that he had been defeated by a formidable force led by Simko himself. Though he did not lead the attack on Savojbolagh, Sayyid Taha did assist Simko in this successful campaign, a development that greatly enhanced the Kurdish chief’s position and prestige among the neighboring tribes.44 According to an eyewitness, who lived in Savojbolagh at the time of the attack in October 1921, the dead of the gendarmerie garrison numbered “about seven hundred.”45 An Iranian officer stationed at the time in Azerbaijan claimed that 200 gendarmes were killed during the battle, while Malekzadeh and 150 of his troopers were taken prisoner.46 In another book, the same author stated that of a detachment of 800 men in Savojbolagh; 400 gendarmes had been killed and 385 men had escaped.47 British sources, however, stated that of the “700 men forming the garrison, 450
41 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, October 25, 1921, [E 14224/2004/34], No. 232., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 90. For a firsthand account of Simko’s attack on Savojbolagh, see, Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 117. 42 Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 117. See also, Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 184–188. 43 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 188. 44 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, October 25, 1921, [E 14224/2004/34], No. 232.,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 90. 45 Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 120. 46 Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, p. 119. 47 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 58.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
167
were killed or captured,”48 while 250 gendarmes were “reported to have escaped.”49 Another British report claimed that 470 out of 600 Iranian officers and soldiers had been killed, a large number of them murdered by Simko’s men with machine guns after they had surrendered.50 A more recent article claims that the force under the command of Malekzadeh consisted of 1,500 gendarmes and irregular units.51 The same source maintained that with the exception of 300 gendarmes, who managed to escape to Maragheh in eastern Azerbaijan and those who chose other routes to flee the carnage, the remainder of the garrison stationed in Savojbolagh was massacred, while Simko lost only fifty men.52 The Kurdish chief spared the lives of Malekzadeh and his deputy, ¯ Mohammad Taqi Khan Alp, and took them back with him to his headquarters at Chahriq before he allowed them to return to Tabriz, where they were court-martialed.53 The rest of the detachment was stripped naked and executed.54 As an eye witness described, “the captured Persian garrison being led forth in small parties,” was “shot down by machine gun fire. All of them were stripped to the waist and barefoot. Some were made to crouch on the ground, while the rapid fire raked them over. Others were made to stand in rows and sing the….national song of Persia. As they sang, the machine guns swept them down like some 48 Persia Annual Report 1922. Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1924, [E 8057/ 8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 409. 49 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 24, Tehran, October 16, 1921, Doc 132 in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 169. 50 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 248 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 299. 51 Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Avamel-e Moasser dar Piruzi-ye Qoshun-e Mottahad al-Shekl dar Jang-e Shakar Y¯azi,” p. 60. 52 Ibid., pp. 60–61. 53 See Malekzadeh-ye Hirbad, Hassan., Sarnevesht-e Heyratangiz, (Tehran: Bina, 1949).
See also, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Gozaresh-e Iran, (Tehran: Noghreh Press, 1985), p. 375. See also, M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 26, Tehran, October 20, 1921, Doc 150 [E 293/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 182. 54 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 188. See also, Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, p. 895.
168
M. KIA
invisible scythe….. One cannot conceive of men having so little regard for their own companions as to shoot them down in this manner….. I do not know how I remained standing when I saw this. I was transfixed with horror. A horror that would let me neither faint nor turn away.”55 Even gendarmerie officers and soldiers recuperating at a local hospital were all massacred with their throats cut.56 Simko seized “all the gendarmerie arms and munitions, including one gun and four machine-guns.”57 But the gendarmes were not the only ones who were looted, brutalized, and killed. The people of Savojbolagh including the town’s Kurdish residents and American missionaries were attacked and their homes ransacked and plundered by armed Kurds shouting “Ashirat, ashirat,” and “give money.”58 The attackers murdered prominent Kurdish dignitary, Qazi Latif. Simko’s men “tore the clothes off three Americans, the Misses Schonhood, Fossum, and Gudhard, and brutally handled M. Bachimont, a Frenchman attached to the mission.”59 Mrs. Bachimont whose husband was eventually shot and killed by Simko’s men “was found two days later in a distraught condition in a ruined house.”60 According to one eyewitness, “the dead of the garrison” were left “unburied, lying there in heaps on the river slope, numbered about 700…..while in the streets lay the dead bodies of men and horses on which the dogs came and fed. Women had been violated, and children had been left fatherless and hungry. Every house, whether Kurdish or Persian, had been sacked and looted.”61 As one British report stated, the Kurdish houses of which there were many in Savojbolagh “seemed to have fared no better than the Persian.”62
55 Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 119. 56 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 229. 57 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, October 25, 1921, [E 14224/2004/34], No. 232.,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 90. 58 Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 117. 59 Philadelphia Inquirer, Friday, December 2, 1921, p. 14 ab. 60 Ibid. 61 Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 120. 62 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 248 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on
Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 299.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
169
One source stated that after capturing Savojbolagh, Simko added the words, “Partisan of the Independence of Kurdistan” to his signature.63 Another source wrote, that after defeating the gendarmerie detachment, Simko moved his headquarters to Savojbolagh, where he published Independent Kurdistan, “a newspaper intended to serve as a mouthpiece for Kurdish aspirations.”64 This claim was repeated, albeit with a different emphasis, by another writer, who asserted that Simko founded a newspaper called Roji Kurd, which was published in Sorani, the Kurdish language of Savojbolagh, though Simko and the Shakak were Kurmanji speakers.65 And yet another source stated that Simko “chose Savojbolagh (later Mahabad) as the capital of his independent Kurdistan, though he himself did not reside there.”66 The British intelligence reports, however, stated that after plundering Savojbolagh, Simko immediately “returned to his home at Chahriq,” west of Lake Urumiyeh, “taking with him the bulk of the loot, including several machine guns and 700 horses, leaving Savojbolagh in charge of the local Kurds under one of his lieutenants.”67 These British accounts are substantiated by an eyewitness, who wrote that Simko’s army abandoned Savojbolagh after “carrying off what plunder they had gathered,” with only a small Kurdish unit “left in the city as a rear guard and to look after the wounded.”68 This statement was validated further by an Iranian officer captured by Simko’s men, who wrote that after looting the town’s bazaar and stripping its private residences of household goods, Simko left Savojbolagh for Urumiyeh and Chahriq on the same day he had sacked it.69 For weeks after the capture of Savojbolagh by Simko’s army no information about the state of things in the
63 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, November 1, 1921, [E 293/285/34], No. 250., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 96. 64 Wadie Jwaideh, Kurdish National Movement Its Origins and Development, p. 141. 65 Amir Hassanpour, Nationalism and Language in Kurdistan, 1918–1985, (San
Francisco: The Edwin Mellen Press, 1992), p. 163. 66 Farideh Koohi-Kamali. The Political Development of the Kurds in Iran: Pastoral Nationalism, p. 80. 67 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 246 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, pp. 299–300. 68 Augusta Gudhart, “The Blood of Martyrs,” p. 120. 69 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 229.
170
M. KIA
town reached the outside world, because the telegraph wires had been cut.70 Though Simko may have designated Savojbolagh as his capital, there is ample evidence that he quickly lost control over the town, which changed hands several times before it was fully recovered by government forces ten months later in August 1922. As early as 20 October, M. Saunders, the British Military Attaché in Tehran wrote that Savojbolagh was held not by Simko’s men, but by local Kurds who were “willing to come to terms with the Government” provided they were “granted an amnesty.”71 Another British intelligence report stated that government forces had reoccupied Savojbolagh “about the 10th of December” 1921.72 The government, however, quickly lost control over the town. In early March, the British intelligence reports stated that Simko had recaptured Savojbolagh once again. However, inter-tribal friction quickly erupted between Simko and the Kurds of Savojbolagh, and local tribal chiefs forced Simko’s men out of the town.73 The reports mentioned above clearly demonstrate that Simko never held Savojbolagh for any length of time, and he could not have, therefore, used the town as his capital. Additionally, the political geography of his rebellion required the Kurdish chief to concentrate his forces in Chahriq and Salmas. He could not over-extend himself southward toward Savojbolagh, despite the town’s strategic importance. Such a move would have prevented him from defending his own tribal base. Moreover, if he intended to designate Savojbolagh as his new capital, Simko would not have destroyed the 70 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 25, Tehran, October 23, 1921, Doc. 146 [E 285/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 179. 71 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 26, Tehran, October 20, 1921, Doc. 150 [E 293/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 182. 72 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 32, Tehran, December 11, 1921, Doc. 195 [E 1953/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 230. 73 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 9, Tehran, March 5, 1922, Doc. 250 [E 4737/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 315.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
171
town, looting, raping, and slaughtering so many of its residents, the overwhelming majority of whom were fellow Kurds. Similarly, if Savojbolagh were to serve as his capital, Simko and his followers would not have piled up hundreds of dead bodies in the center of the town, leaving them to be eaten by dogs. A would-be capital needed much more than a newspaper. At the very least, a ruler was required to provide law and order, as well as peace, security, and the basic sanitary conditions in order for his subjects to return to normal life. The victory over the gendarmes in Savojbolagh enhanced Simko’s prestige. According to one source, after the fall of Savojbolagh, the Kurdish tribes of the region, “including the Mamash, Mangur, Dehbokri, Piran, Gowrik, Feyzollahbegi, Poshtdari, Baneh, and Qaderkhani, joined Simko and threatened Miandoab and Maragheh.”74 A British intelligence summary also reported that at least one Kurdish tribe (i.e., Haydaranlu), as far north as Maku in close proximity to Iran’s borders with Turkey and the Soviet Union, had promised to help Simko.75 Despite the solidarity expressed by several Kurdish tribal chiefs, the British consul in Tabriz did not believe that many Kurdish tribes would accept Simko as their leader.76
Simko Defeats Amir Arshad In response to the humiliating defeat suffered by government forces at Savojbolagh, the Iranian prime minister, Qavam al-Saltaneh, ordered the governor of Azerbaijan to lend his support to the Azerbaijani tribal chief, S¯am Khan Amir Arshad, as the commander of a new force raised to suppress Simko’s rebellion. Amir Arshad and his brother, Sardar Ashayer, served as the chiefs of the Hajialilu tribe, based in the Qarajadagh or Arasbaran region of Azerbaijan. In the autumn of 1920, after the defeat of Armenian forces by the Turkish nationalists in eastern Anatolia, the
74 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, pp. 58–59. 75 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 27 , Tehran, November 6, 1921, Doc. 153
[E 445/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 188. 76 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 26, Tehran, October 20, 1921, Doc. 150 [E 293/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 182.
172
M. KIA
chiefs of Hajialilu had offered protection to Armenian fighters fleeing across the border into Iran. This allowed Amir Arshad to acquire the guns, machine guns, and several cannons, which the retreating Armenian units had transported with them into Iranian territory.77 Fully aware of its own military weakness, the central government elevated Amir Arshad to the post of the military commander of Azerbaijan and invested him with power to suppress Simko. Encouraging a “loyal” tribal chief to fight a “disloyal” one was an old ploy utilized by a central government that lacked sufficient power to impose its authority on the distant provinces of the country. In the absence of a formidable and reliable force of its own, the government handpicked the seemingly loyal Amir Arshad as the only leader capable of neutralizing the threat posed by the disloyal Simko, though the Hajialilu and Shakak chiefs remained in close contact with each other.78 By late October 1921, Amir Arshad had assembled a small force at the port of Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh. Amir Arshad’s detachment, however, lacked the size and the military capability to advance effectively against Simko. The Azerbaijani tribal chief insisted that he could mobilize a force of 2,000 men, but by 31 October, when Mokhber al-Saltaneh and Colonel Lundburg of Iran’s gendarmerie met with him, he had managed to gather only 200 fighters.79 In a meeting between the governor, the Swedish commander, and Amir Arshad, Lundburg expressed his opposition to any operation being undertaken against Simko with a force that could not match the size and military capabilities of the Kurdish chief’s army.80 A few days later, during a conversation with a British diplomat in Tehran, Iran’s minister of war, Reza Khan, echoed the Swedish officer’s assessment, stating that, to suppress Simko, the central government needed to raise a force of 5,000 Cossacks backed by “friendly irregular tribesmen.”81 The minister of war also complained that the shortage of funds, as well as the time needed to transport troops from
77 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Gozaresh-e Iran, pp. 373–374. 78 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, July 31, 1921, [E 10100/2004/34], No. 149.,
Enclosure 1 in No. 1., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 45. 79 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, November 18, 1921, [E 445/285/34], No. 274., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 98. 80 Ibid. 81 Ibid., p. 101.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
173
other parts of the country to Azerbaijan, had hampered the campaign against Simko. Until he had concentrated a sufficient number of regular troops in Tabriz, Reza Khan maintained that government forces had to avoid another confrontation with Simko. Instead, they should hold the lines of Khoy-Sharafkhaneh north of Lake Urumiyeh and MiandoabSavojbolagh south of the lake.82 Because of the absence of a unified and integrated command and the division of government forces into the Cossacks, gendarmes, and tribal units, however, Reza Khan did not exercise sufficient authority to organize a full-fledged military campaign in Azerbaijan. By the autumn of 1921, Simko commanded a significant force that included “4,000 to 4,500 men with six guns and twelve machine guns,” as well as 200 Turkish officers.83 In November, the British consul in Tabriz reported that Simko had received “reinforcements of Turkish Kurds,” increasing his total military strength to “6,000 armed men.”84 The support Simko received from the Turkish nationalists was not confined to money and military hardware. According to a British report, the Kurdish chief also enjoyed logistical support from a “pan-Islamic Kemalist” network organized and financed by the Turkish nationalists in Iran and Iraq.85 This network brought Kurdish leaders under an organizational umbrella, and it also aimed at “bringing about the fall of Reza Khan.”86 Despite the opposition of the minister of war to any future military campaigns against Simko, in November 1921, a gendarmerie squadron, under the command of Major Hassan Arfa, launched a surprise attack on the Kurdish village of Yazdekan/Ezdikan in the district of Khoy. Simko’s army immediately attacked the small government force and wiped
82 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, December 1, 1921, [E 1056/285/34], No. 306., Intelligence Summary No. 30., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 108. 83 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, November 18, 1921, [E 445/285/34], No. 274., Intelligence Summary No. 28., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 101. 84 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, December 10, 1921, [E 1947/285/34], No. 318.,
Intelligence Summary No. 31., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 114. 85 Lorraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 30, 1921, Doc. 209 [E 2517/6/34], No. 345., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, pp. 247–250. 86 Ibid., p. 248.
174
M. KIA
it out. The gendarmes lost forty troopers and left nine prisoners behind.87 Though Simko had shown no major activity after the capture of Savojbolagh in October, his movement was spreading southwards.88 A certain Bahador al-Saltaneh, the recently appointed Iranian governor of Saqqez threw in his lot with Simko.89 A force of gendarmes sent from Sanandaj (Senneh) by the governor of Kurdistan to retake the town was repulsed and forced to withdraw twenty-four miles south of Saqqez to await reinforcements.90 Though the gendarmes eventually reoccupied Saqqez, the minister of war, Reza Khan, recognized the growing popularity of Simko and ordered Khalu Qorban, the former ally of the Jangal leader, Mirza Kuchak Khan, to march his detachment from Gilan to Azerbaijan to reinforce the government troops there.91 The war minister also dispatched “the first echelon (500 strong) of men” of the Iranian Cossack Division to Tabriz on 14 November.92 His plan was to concentrate a force of five thousand Iranian Cossacks in Tabriz before attacking and destroying Simko’s army.93 Meanwhile, in Tabriz, both the governor, Mokhber alSaltaneh, and the ambitious tribal chief, Amir Arshad, were anxious to score a quick victory against Simko without waiting for the arrival of the new detachments sent from Tehran. On December 19, 1921, a force, comprising 2,000 irregular tribesmen, “some 500 horsemen of the Yurtchi tribe of the Shahsavens,” and about “400 Armenians” under the overall command of Amir Arshad, began to advance from Sharafkhaneh toward Dilman, the district capital of
87 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 60. 88 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 29, Tehran, November 20, 1921, Doc. 171
[E 1047/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17 , p. 201. 89 Ibid. 90 Ibid. 91 Ibid. 92 Ibid. 93 Ibid.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
175
Salmas.94 At the same time, a detachment of 700–800 gendarmes95 under the command of the Swedish colonel, Lundburg, began to push southwestward from Khoy toward Salmas, Simko’s territorial base.96 Before the two armies could converge, Simko struck with a force of four thousand men, surprising Amir Arshad near Alma Saray in the district of Tasuj.97 Stunned by the counterattack, Amir Arshad’s tribal levies panicked and fled, losing 200 men. Amir Arshad himself was shot and killed by his own men when he attempted “to check the rout.”98 According to an Iranian historian, Simko lost 460 men, while Amir Arshad’s army had lost 445 fighters.99 After defeating Amir Arshad’s army, Simko switched his focus to the gendarmerie detachment headed by the Swedish officer, Lundburg. Although the gendarmerie detachment stood its ground, it lost six officers and sixty troopers before it was forced to retreat toward Khoy.100 Though he had decisively defeated the government forces, Simko “made
94 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 248 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 300. See also, Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 509. 95 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 3, 1922, [E 3904/285/34], No. 8., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 128. See also Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, p. 122. Arfa gives the number of Lundburg’s force as 700, while the British Intelligence Summary of December 24, 1921, states that the number of the gendarmes was “about 800.” 96 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 230. See also, Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 3, 1921, [E 3904/285/34], No. 8., in Iran Political Diaries 1881-1965. Volume 6, Enclosure in No. 1., p. 128. 97 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 230. 98 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 3, 1922, [E 3904/285/34], No. 8., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 128. Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 230. 99 Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 509. 100 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 3, 1922, [E 3904/285/34], No. 8., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 128. See also, Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 246 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 300.
176
M. KIA
no attempt to follow up his victory,” because he had also “suffered severe casualties amongst his followers.”101 In his jumbled and misleading account of Amir Arshad’s campaign against Simko, Mokhber al-Saltaneh blamed the fallen tribal leader for not listening to his advice, and he claimed that the government forces had scored a decisive victory against the Kurds, but they had failed to complete the campaign with desired results.102 The governor of Azerbaijan also wrote that the irregular tribal units representing the central government had lost their discipline after their leader, Amir Arshad, was killed by a bullet fired by his own men. According to Mokhber alSaltaneh, Amir Arshad was murdered after the Kurds, including the Jalali Kurds of eastern Anatolia, who had rallied to Simko’s flag, had fled the battlefield.103 Back in Tehran, Reza Khan, the minister of war, rejected this mendacious account and described the battle fought against Simko as a total defeat. He blamed the failure of the campaign squarely on the governor of Azerbaijan, who had given orders “for the attack to be carried out before the arrival of the reinforcements” en route from Qazvin.104 By late autumn 1921, Simko was at the apex of his power. Confident of his ability to defeat any force sent against him by the Iranian government, the Kurdish chief was determined to project his power beyond the borders of Iran and exert pressure on the most powerful actor in the region, namely Great Britain, to lend its support to his separatist campaign. Watching the growing conflict between Turkish nationalists and the British authorities over control of Mosul, Simko sent a message to Yousif Ziya, a member of the Turkish Grand National Assembly, stating that he would provide 15,000 men should Turkey decide to invade northern Iraq.105 Aside from declaring himself a staunch supporter of Kemalist Turks, the message to the British officials in Iraq was loud and 101 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 35, Tehran, December 31, Doc. 217, in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 264. 102 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 326. 103 Ibid. See also, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Gozaresh-e Iran, p. 377. 104 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 3, 1922, [E 3904/285/34], No. 8., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 129. 105 Othman Ali, “The Career of Ozdemir: A Turkish Bid for Northern Iraq, 1921– 1923,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 53, No. 6 (2017), p. 969.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
177
clear: “if you refuse to lend your support to my campaign for an independent Kurdish state, I would cause serious headache for you by assisting your enemy, the nationalist Turks.” Thus, the end of the year 1921 found Simko “in a stronger position than ever.”106 Impressive victories at Savojbolagh in October and at Tasuj in December enhanced Simko’s prestige and converted his uprising into a popular movement with significant support from Kurdish tribal groups in northwestern Iran and across the border in eastern Anatolia. The collapse of Mirza Kuchak Khan’s rebellion in late autumn 1921 allowed Reza Khan to shift his focus from northern Iran to western Azerbaijan and Simko’s rebellion. When he met with the British military attaché in early December, the minister of war stated that “his next campaign will be against the renegade Kurd, Simko, in Azerbaijan.”107 Until December 1921, the central government in Tehran was not in a position to assemble a formidable force in Azerbaijan and concentrate on Simko’s rebellion. The governmental authorities in Tehran and Tabriz recognized that Simko’s revolt was no longer an isolated local rebellion. There was a real possibility that, if allowed to expand, Simko’s victories could ignite anti-government uprisings among “the hitherto loyal Kurdish tribes as far south as Kermanshah.”108 The defeats at the hands of Simko convinced Reza Khan that the central government could not suppress Simko and other provincial power centers as long as the Iranian armed forces remained divided into the Cossack Division, the Gendarmerie, and the South Persia Rifles, and lacked a unified command structure. Iran’s minister of war was determined to form a fully integrated national army “commanded and officered by Iranians only, without the assistance of foreign officers.”109 From the moment he had reached Tehran in command of the Cossack Brigade, Reza Khan had pursued the idea of a uniform national force.
106 Report on Azerbaijan for 1921, Doc 246 [E 4717/6/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 300. 107 Cyrus Ghani, Iran and the Rise of Reza Shah: From Qajar Collapse to Pahlavi Rule, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2000), p. 242. 108 Persia Annual Report, 1922. Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, [E 8057/ 8057/34], No. 314., Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 409. 109 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, August 25, 1921 [E 11692/2004/34], No. 163., Intelligence Summary No. 16., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 66.
178
M. KIA
With foreign armies evacuating Iranian territory, he could now carry out his dream. The Soviets withdrew their forces from the Caspian province of Gilan after Iran signed a treaty of friendship with Moscow on February 26, 1921.110 Desperate for a prompt decrease in their military commitments in the region, the British also declared their intention to withdraw their forces from Iran in April 1921, evacuating Qazvin by the 10th, and Hamadan by 21st, of the month.111 In March 1921, a joint commission of British and Iranian officials proposed that the Cossack Division “together with South Persia Rifles and Gendarmerie be transferred into uniform Regular Army” and that ordinary needs of “Civil Government” be met by the existing police force, which had to be increased in size.112 In May 1921, a number of deputies in the Majlis, backed by the press, declared their support for the idea of creating a unified and fully integrated national army. Seizing on every opportunity to his own advantage, Reza Khan declared the idea of a unified army as his most important patriotic objective. It must have been obvious to him that bringing the Cossack Division, the Gendarmerie, and the remnants of the South Persia Rifles, under one umbrella would significantly enhance his power and prestige. To establish a centralized and integrated force responsible for maintaining the security of the country under his personal command could pave the path for Reza Khan to emerge as the most powerful man in Iran.113
110 J. C. Hurewitz, Diplomacy in the Near and Middle East, Volume 2, pp. 90–94. 111 Norman to Curzon, March 16, 1921, No. 697, [E 3370/633/34], in Documents
on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , p. 741. The Military Commission had completed its first report in April 1920. This report consisted of seven chapters with the first five dealing with examination of existing conditions. Chapter six detailed proposed organization and chapter seven recommended concrete actions to be taken in order to implement scheme. Among these, were the establishment of a cadet school and the creation of an air force. See, Cox to Curzon, Tehran, April 9, 1920, No. 403, in Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , pp. 464–465. 112 Cox to Curzon, March 13, 1920, No. 387, [185352/202/34], Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , p. 450. 113 Malek al-Shoara Bahar, Tarikh-e Mokhtasar-e Ahzab-e Siyasi dar Iran, 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 2008), Volume 1, p. 171.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
179
Creating a Standing Army With the evacuation of foreign forces from Iran, Reza Khan could assume full ownership of the campaign to re-establish law and order throughout the country. The centerpiece of his policy was centralization of power in the hands of the government by disarming all tribal groups. The disarmament of the tribes was justified on the basis that peace and order could not be restored unless the tribal zones of the country had been pacified and subdued. The restoration of law and order, in turn, would create the necessary environment for reconstruction of the country and resumption of trade and commerce between various regions of Iran. In implementing these policies, Reza Khan recognized that, in a country as large as Iran, the central government could not impose its authority without a modern system of serviceable roads, highways, railroads, ports, and even airports. Absent a modern infrastructure that could facilitate the dispatching of central government forces to the four corners of the country, no centralization policy could be sustained for any length of time. Further, the government needed to increase the size and technological capabilities of the military to integrate its various units under one umbrella and to supply it with modern training and weaponry. In 1921, Iran’s armed forces consisted of approximately “12,000 gendarmes dispersed all over Iran, and 7000 Cossacks, including the newly incorporated Central Brigade Troops.”114 This tiny force was armed by “rifles and a limited number of machine-guns with a few artillery pieces” of “every make.”115 Reza Khan’s policy was “to create and maintain an efficient national standing army, capable of ensuring peace and order” at home, and “protecting the country from external aggression.”116 His efforts resulted in the creation of a highly modern and centralized army. In September 1921, the process of disbanding the South Persia Rifles, which had been created and commanded by British officers, commenced. On December 5, 1921, Reza Khan initiated the process of reorganizing the Iranian army by issuing the Army Order No. 1, which announced the creation of Iran’s Imperial Army through the unification of “the 114 Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, p. 114. 115 Ibid. 116 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia, Annual Report 1923, [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 717.
180
M. KIA
Cossacks, Gendarmerie and provincial troops.”117 The reconstituted army was “composed of five divisions: 1. Central (Tehran) Division; 2. Northwestern (Tabriz) Division; 3. Western (Hamadan) Division; 4. Southern (Isfahan) Division; 5. Eastern (Mashhad) Division; and the Northern Independent Brigade with headquarters at Rasht.”118 Each division was “to number 10,000 men, and consist of 7 infantry regiments, 1 artillery regiment, 1 cavalry regiment, and 1 engineer regiment,” with each commanded by its own administrative units and divisional headquarters staff.119 By January 1, 1923, the Iranian army was a military force of 30,000 men. Additionally, “a special Gendarmerie force was organized under the name of Amnieh (Security) for the security of roads.”120 On December 6, 1921, Reza Khan “removed all Swedish officers from their commands in the gendarmerie” and replaced them with an Iranian commander, General Amanollah Mirza Jahanbani.121 The next day on 7 December, in a speech made to a group of Iranian gendarmerie officers, the minister of war stated that “he considered it unnecessary” for Iranians any longer “to be under the command of foreigners, who took the credit for all successes themselves,” and that there were now plenty of capable Iranians “well fitted to take command.”122 In one segment of his speech, Reza Khan stated: “Gentlemen! Iran, your dear motherland and mine, has more than ever need its bravest sons. You must exert every effort like men in the service of your country and the pursuit of its independence. You
117 Hassan Arfa. Under Five Shahs, p. 126. See also, Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, December 6, 1921, Doc. 109, [E 13454/4335/34], No. 670., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 17, p. 150. 118 Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, pp. 126–127. See also, Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, Persia, Annual Report, 1922, Confidential (12221), [E 8057/8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 408. See also, Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confidential (12445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 717. 119 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, Persia, Annual Report, 1922, Confidential (12221), [E 8057/8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 408. 120 Hassan Arfa. Under Five Shahs, p. 127. 121 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, December 16, 1921, [E 1953/285/34], No. 326.,
Intelligence Summary No. 32., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 122. 122 Ibid. See also, Donald Wilber, Riza Shah Pahlavi: The Resurrection and Reconstruction of Iran 1878–1944, (Costa Mesa: Mazda Press, 2016), pp. 60–61.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
181
may be confident that the principles of concentration and unity of speech will send the best possible fruits of greatness to welcome you. Be alert! The dust of Ardeshir [the founder of the Sassanian dynasty, 224–651] is watching you. Be prepared!”123 By January 1, 1924, Reza Khan had managed to increase the strength of the Iranian army to 41,000 men, “an increase of 11,000” since January 1, 1923.124 The new army was “equipped with motor-trucks, armored cars, tanks, and airplanes.”125 It also had “a high-power wireless station at Tehran, with branch stations in the provincial centers.”126 The first seven airplanes were purchased in France by the chief of the staff, General Jahanbani. French instructors were recruited to accompany the planes, and the instructors were to remain in Tehran “until a sufficient number” of Iranian pilots had “been trained.”127 Additionally, an airport was constructed at the northwest corner of Tehran.128 In April 1923, Reza Khan presented a bill for conscription to the Majlis, making “military service compulsory” for all Iranian subjects “between 20 and 45 years of age.”129 Reza Khan’s reforms transformed the army from a small, ineffective, and disjointed body into the most organized and disciplined institution in the country, which served the role of a model and a vanguard for future governmental reforms. In addition to the new army, a modern and uniformed police force was organized in all major urban centers of the country, “with the police
123 George Lenczowski (ed.), Iran Under the Pahlavis (Stanford: Hoover Institution Press, Stanford University, 1978), p. 20. See also, Donald Wilber, Riza Shah Pahlavi: The Resurrection and Reconstruction of Iran 1878–1944, p. 61. 124 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confidential (12445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 717. 125 A. C. Millspaugh, The American Task in Persia, p. 148. 126 Ibid. 127 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, November 26, 1923, [E 257/255/34], No. 549., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 631. 128 Ibid. See also, Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confidential (12445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 718. 129 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confidential (12445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 718.
182
M. KIA
of Tehran comparing favorably with police organizations in other countries.”130 To eradicate banditry, Road Guards known as Amnieh were “stationed along the highways to ensure safety and security for travelers.”131 As one foreign visitor wrote in early 1924: “travelling over the 500 miles of road from Kasr-i Shirin [Qasr-e Shirin in western Iran on the border with Iraq] to Tehran, one is struck by the extraordinary discipline of the guards on the roads, their evident contentment and their courtesy. The traveler comes upon many a guard-house…Everywhere the same strict discipline, the sentinel on duty properly equipped and armed--a great contrast to the ragged, unkempt and unready guard of only a few years ago.”132 With security restored to all major roads, highway robbery disappeared, and trade and commerce rebounded. As part of establishing a new security apparatus, Reza Khan laid the foundation of a secret service that came to fruition in late 1923. According to a British intelligence report, the Iranian strongman “organized four intelligence centers” based in (1) Tehran; (2) Kermanshah with special attention to Kurdish tribal groups in western Iran and northern Iraq; (3) Khuzestan with special attention to Sheikh Khazal and Arab tribes of southwestern Iran; and (4) Istanbul with special focus on “Turkish affairs.”133 In addition to these centers, “army commanders at Mashhad, Tabriz, Isfahan, and Hamadan” were “responsible for the intelligence services in their own divisional areas.”134 The army officer “commanding Caspian Littoral Brigade” also had his own security organization.135 To staff the brain center of the secret service based in Tehran, Reza Khan appointed a chief of counter espionage, an assistant to the chief, and an army of agents, which included female informants.136 In December 1921, after reorganizing the Iranian military structure and integrating the Gendarmerie and the Cossack Division into 130 A. C. Millspaugh, A. C. The American Task in Persia, p. 148. 131 Ibid. 132 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 27, 1923, [E 1125/455/34], No. 610., Enclosure in No. 1., Observations by Mr. Howard on the Situation in Persia, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 662. 133 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 13, 1923, [E 682/255/34], No. 587., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 636. 134 Ibid. 135 Ibid. 136 Ibid., p. 637.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
183
one unified national army, Reza Khan handpicked Brigadier General Habibollah Sheybani as the commander of all government forces in Azerbaijan.137 The new commander’s principal task was to restore the central government’s authority in northwestern Iran by suppressing tribal rebellions, especially Simko’s revolt. By the end of 1921, Simko controlled a vast region extending from Salmas in the north to Baneh in the south. His hold was at best tenuous, however, largely because the Kurdish chief failed to institutionalize his power by creating a governmental structure capable of administering rural and urban communities under his rule. Instead, he continued to operate as the chief of a raiding party, focused primarily on looting and plundering, rather than on governing and providing law and order. It is not surprising, then, that despite Simko’s military victories, observers on the ground, including the British consul in Tabriz, did not believe that “many tribes of Kurdistan would accept Simko as a leader,” and that his rebellion was essentially part of “a wide movement” encouraged by foreign powers, especially the Turkish nationalists.138 This British analysis of Simko’s precarious support base and his subservience to the Turkish nationalists in Anatolia was shared by the minister of war, Reza Khan, in Tehran. After the battle of Tasuj in December 1921, the central government ceased all major operations against Simko. Following direct orders from Reza Khan, the government resorted to a new strategy of amassing a large force at Sharafkhaneh in anticipation of a decisive campaign against Simko in early spring 1922. Before the commencement of a military campaign against Simko, the Iranian government embarked on a diplomatic initiative to establish contact and reach an understanding with the Turkish nationalist movement led by Mustafa Kemal based in Ankara. The Iranian government, including Reza Khan, had concluded that Simko’s rebellion was part of a wider strategy designed and implemented by the Turkish nationalists in Anatolia to protect their eastern flank. Believing that Simko’s success was largely due to the military and logistical assistance he received from the Turkish nationalist movement led by Mustafa
137 Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, p. 127. 138 Bridgeman to Curzon, Tehran, November 1, 1921, [E 293/285/34], No. 250.,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 96.
184
M. KIA
Kemal, Tehran dispatched the veteran diplomat and politician, Mirza Ismail Khan Momtaz al-Dowleh, as its special envoy, to negotiate with the Turkish officials in Ankara in June 1922.
Momtaz al-Dowleh’s Mission to Ankara Born in Tabriz into a family that traced its origins to the Afshar Turks, who had settled in Azerbaijan during the reign of Nader Shah (r. 1736–1747),139 Momtaz al-Dowleh received his early education in his hometown before travelling to Istanbul, where he studied law and French language. After returning to Iran, he joined government service as a secretary and interpreter, serving at various posts in Azerbaijan and Kurdistan before joining Iran’s ministry of foreign affairs in 1896.140 In 1897, during the reign of the Qajar monarch, Mozaffar al-Din Shah (r. 1896–1907), Momtaz al-Dowleh was appointed the attaché to the Iranian embassy in Istanbul.141 In 1900, he became Iran’s consul general at the Ottoman capital.142 During his stay in Istanbul, Momtaz alDowleh became acquainted with Ottoman officialdom and established close friendships with his Turkish counterparts. In 1903, when Ain alDowleh became grand vizier, Momtaz al-Dowleh was appointed the private secretary and personal interpreter of the new prime minister.143 He accompanied Ain al-Dowleh in this capacity on Mozaffar al-Din
139 For Momtaz al-Dowleh’s life and career, see, Confidential Biographical Notices of Persian Statesmen and Notables, August 1905, compiled by George Churchill, Acting Oriental Secretary, His Britannic Majesty’s Legation, Tehran, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 2, p. 608. See also, Mirza Mehdi Khan Momtahan al-Dowleh Shaqaqi and Mirza Hashim Khan., Rejal-e Vezarat-e Kharejeh dar Asr-e Nasseri va Mozaffari, Iraj Afshar (ed.), Ganjineh-ye Asnad-e Tarikh-e Iran, No. 3, (Tehran: Asatir Press, 1986), pp. 139–140. See also, Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran. Volume 1, p. 141. Ebrahim Safaei, Rahbaran-e Mashruteh, 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Javidan Press, 1968), Volume 1, pp. 613–622. See also, British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 263. 140 Mirza Mehdi Khan Momtahan al-Dowleh Shaqaqi and Mirza Hashim Khan. Rejal-e Vezarat-e Kharejeh dar Asr-e Nasseri va Mozaffari, p. 139. 141 Ibid. See also, British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 263. 142 Confidential Biographical Notices of Persian Statesmen and Notables, August 1905,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 2, p. 608. 143 Ibid. See also, British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 263.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
185
Shah’s last European tour in 1905.144 During the constitutional revolution of 1906, Momtaz al-Dowleh was ordered by the Iranian prime minister to translate the Ottoman legal code from Turkish into Persian.145 After the victory of the revolution, he was elected as a deputy from Arak to the first Majlis, ultimately rising to the post of the speaker of the National Assembly in April 1908 after the presiding speaker, Ehtesham al-Saltaneh, resigned suddenly.146 Momtaz al-Dowleh’s tenure as the speaker of the Majlis was, however, short-lived. In June 1908, after Mohammad Ali Shah ordered the destruction of the Majlis, Momtaz al-Dowleh sought refuge in the French embassy in Tehran. With the intercession of French authorities, the shah agreed to allow Momtaz al-Dowleh to leave Tehran for Paris, where he joined the Iranian émigré community. After the abdication of Mohammad Ali Shah in July of 1909, Momtaz al-Dowleh returned to Iran and was elected as a deputy from Tabriz to the second Majlis.147 He subsequently served as the minister of finance, minister of justice, and minister of commerce in various pre-First World War cabinets.148 After Vosugh alDowleh signed the Anglo-Persian Agreement of August 9, 1921, Momtaz al-Dowleh emerged as one of the most vocal critics of the treaty. Government authorities exiled him to Kashan where he was forced to stay until Vosugh al-Dowleh resigned from office.149 After the February 1921 coup, Momtaz al-Dowleh was labeled an intriguer and an agitator. He was arrested and once again sent off into internal exile in Kashan.150 144 Ibid. 145 Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Volume 1, p. 141. 146 Browne, Edward G. The Persian Revolution 1905–1909, (Washington, DC: Mage
Publishers Inc, 2006), p. 199. See also, British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 263. 147 Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Volume 1, p. 141. 148 Mirza Mehdi Khan Momtahan al-Dowleh Shaqaqi and Mirza Hashim Khan, Rejal-e
Vezarat-e Kharejeh dar Asr-e Nasseri va Mozaffari, p. 140. 149 Cox to Curzon, Tehran, September 10, 1919, Doc. 92 [127632], No. 618., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 56. 150 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, March 1, 1921, Doc. 505 [E 4926/2/34], No. 31., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 377.
186
M. KIA
When Qavam al-Saltaneh was appointed prime minister in June 1921, Momtaz al-Dowleh joined the new cabinet as the minister of education.151 A short time later, the government appointed Momtaz al-Dowleh the head of a mission to negotiate treaties of friendship with the republics of southern Caucasus. He was subsequently directed to travel to Anatolia as Iran’s envoy to the Turkish nationalist government in Ankara. Well versed in international, as well as regional politics, and fluent in Turkish and French, Momtaz al-Dowleh was believed to be the ideal diplomat to reach an understanding with the Kemalist Turks regarding Simko and other relevant matters. Momtaz al-Dowleh and his delegation travelled from Tiflis, Georgia to Batumi and thence to northern Anatolia, arriving ˙ at the Black Sea port town of Inebolu on June 22, 1922. Two days later, on 24 June, Momtaz al-Dowleh arrived in Ankara, where he was received warmly by Turkish nationalists, as well as the ambassadors of the Soviet Union and Afghanistan. Hakemiyat-e Melliye (National Sovereignty), the newspaper that served as the organ of the Kemalists, celebrated the arrival of the Iranian delegation in Ankara in a front-page article titled, “The Representative of the Brother Country, Iran, in Our City.”152 On Friday, 30 June, after Momtaz al-Dowleh submitted his credentials to Mustafa Kemal in an official ceremony, the Iranian ambassador held a one-hour meeting with the Turkish leader. This meeting was followed by meetings with Fevzi Pasha (Fevzi Chakmak), Chief of the General Staff and Fethi Bey (Fethi Okyar), the deputy minister of internal affairs of the provisional Ankara government.153 During a reception organized by the Soviet ambassador to Ankara in honor of the Iranian delegation, Mustafa Kemal stated that the unity of the nations of the east, the Soviet Union, Turkey, Iran, and Afghanistan was causing displeasure among the western imperialists.154 He also added
151 Norman to Curzon, Tehran, June 5, 1921, Doc. 519 [E 6678/2/34], No. 326., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B, Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 16, p. 394. 152 Ali Kalirad, “Monasebat-e Siyasi-ye Iran va Turkiyeh (1297–1304 Solar/1919– 1925),” Fasl Nameh-ye Tarikh-e Ravabat-e Khareji, Years 13 & 14, Numbers 52 & 53-Autumn AND Winter 1391, pp. 121–138, p. 129. 153 Ibid., p. 130. 154 Ibid.
6
SIMKO’S WARS AND THE RISE OF REZA SHAH
187
that the government of Iran and the Iranian nation played a significant role in the balance of power in the Middle East region: I am well aware of this fact that for centuries Iran has pursued the realization of a patriotic and holy dream. The Iranian nation is a truly heroic nation.155
On 7 July, the Iranian newspaper, Vatan (Homeland), wrote that “We are informed that Kemal Pasha has stated in a telegram that as Ismail Agha [Simko] is attempting to set up an independent Kurdistan, which must of necessity create difficulties for Turkey, the Angora Government is prepared to take joint action with the Persian Government to suppress Simko.”156 The Iranian government was well aware that the reliance of Turkish nationalists on Simko and other Kurdish allies had diminished considerably, especially after the Turks had defeated both Armenian nationalist forces in November–December 1920 and the Greeks at the Battle of Sakarya in August–September 1921. The mission of the Iranian ambassador, Momtaz al-Dowleh, was to convince the Turkish nationalist leadership that their continuing support for Simko could prove detrimental to the security of both Iran and the emerging Turkish republic. According to one source, the Iranian delegation requested that the Turks recall their military advisers who worked with Simko and not allow the Kurdish chief to enter Turkish territory when Iranian forces began to chase him out of northwestern Iran.157 As early as December 20, 1921, Reza Khan had met with Jemil Bey, an agent of the Turkish nationalist movement in Tehran. An “aidede camp to Ihsan Pasha, the Turkish general officer commanding the army corps at Tabriz in 1918,” Jemil Bey was on friendly terms with
155 Ibid. 156 M. Saunders, July 15, 1922, Intelligence Summary No. 28, July 15, 1922, Doc.
45 [E 8649/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 65. 157 Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Avamel-e Moasser dar Piruzi-ye Qoshun-e Mottahad al-Shekl dar Jang-e Shakar Y¯azi,” p. 67.
188
M. KIA
Simko.158 Receiving a handsome payment from Sardar Sepah, Jemil Bey was instructed to travel to Simko’s headquarters and negotiate a peace agreement between the Kurdish chief and Iran’s central government.159 One author stated that the Soviet government, which enjoyed a friendly relationship with the Iranian government at the time, mediated with the central government in Tehran on behalf of Simko, “recommending that autonomy be conceded to the Kurds.”160 The same author also claimed that the Iranian government “whether because of the reported Soviet mediation or because of its preoccupation with the task of pacifying the disaffected elements in various parts of the country, maintained a truce with Simko during the first half of 1922” and that it even tried to come to terms with the Kurdish chief “by holding out the prospect of granting a measure of autonomy” to the Iranian Kurds.161 Around the same time, in spring 1922, there was also much talk in Tehran of an ex-officer of the Imperial Russian Army with pro-British sympathies, Captain Verba, who had been an instructor in the Iranian Cossack Division, meeting with Simko.162 Though the role played by former Russian officers and the Soviet government remains murky, the peace negotiations with Simko, through the agency of the Turkish and Russian intermediaries, seem to have been part of an overall Iranian strategy of buying time, so that the ministry of war could assemble a large force in Azerbaijan. As the central government extended a hand of peace and friendship to Simko, Reza Khan appointed Brigadier General Habibollah Sheybani as the military governor of Azerbaijan in January 1922.163
158 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 3, 1922, [E 3904/285/34], No. 8., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 129. 159 Ibid. 160 Wadie Jwaideh, Kurdish National Movement Its Origins and Development, p. 141. 161 Ibid. 162 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, pp. 114–115. 163 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 239.
CHAPTER 7
Simko’s Downfall
In late January 1922, as units of the Iranian army under the command of General Sheybani conducted reconnaissance in southern Azerbaijan, the campaign to suppress Simko suddenly unraveled after gendarmerie officers at Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh staged a revolt. Throughout the month of January, rumors had circulated in Tabriz of “increasing dissatisfaction among the gendarmes in Azerbaijan owing to their pay being many months in arrears, and also to the order….promulgated by the Minister of War that the gendarmerie were to be no longer under the Minister of the Interior but were to be merged into one force….consisting of Cossacks, gendarmes and other nondescript elements.”1 The discontent of the gendarmes seems to have originated with the lateness of their pay and was subsequently exacerbated by the order that they be integrated with the Cossacks.
1 Report on the Gendarmerie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/
6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 321.
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_7
189
190
M. KIA
Lahuti’s Rebellion On January 30, 1922, approximately 700 gendarmerie officers and troopers stationed in Sharafkhaneh, mutinied, abandoned their position, and marched first to Sufian and thence to Tabriz. By 1 February, the mutinous gendarmes commanded by Major Abolqassem Khan Lahuti (1887–1957) were in control of the provincial capital. The rebels quickly ¯ Q¯apu, where the governor resided; the Arg, where the governseized Ali ment stored grain; and the telegraph office, which served as the city’s communication center.2 Only the small detachment of 200 Cossacks left behind in the city refused to surrender. Realizing that they were powerless to stop the gendarmes, the Cossacks exchanged a few shots and then retired to their barracks on the western edge of the town.3 With government forces in disarray, the Democrats, or the former supporters of Khiyabani, who had never forgiven Mokhber al-Saltaneh for the murder of their leader in September 1920, re-surfaced and joined the rebellious gendarmes, “installing themselves as heads of various government departments,” including the police.4 They also telegraphed Tehran and demanded the removal of the governor, who was put under house arrest.5 The time to settle old scores had arrived. A British report claimed that a group of 270 Bolsheviks, mostly members of Iran’s Communist Party (Hezb-e Adalat /Justice Party), had also joined Lahuti and fought on his side.6 Although Lahuti and some of his fellow officers may have been inspired by the Bolsheviks, the majority of the troopers had joined the mutiny not to stage a socialist revolution, but to demand fair treatment on par with the Cossacks, as well as the payment of their overdue salaries. For the next seven days, Lahuti and his supporters ruled Tabriz, the provincial capital of Azerbaijan. Born into a poor working-class family in Kermanshah in western Iran on October 12, 1887, Lahuti was influenced by Iran’s constitutional revolution of 1906 and the battles fought against the Qajar monarch,
2 Ibid., p. 322. See also, Mohammad Amin Riyahi, Tarikh-e Khoy, p. 510. 3 Ibid. 4 Ibid. 5 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 332. 6 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, February 12, 1922, [E 4707/285/34], No. 71., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 153.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
191
Mohammad Ali Shah, who had bombarded and destroyed the parliament in June 1908. After Mohammad Ali Shah was forced to abdicate in July 1909, Lahuti settled in Tehran and joined the police force. In 1911, he joined the newly established Iranian gendarmerie, which had been created by Swedish officers in 1910 as a rural police force responsible for maintaining security of the country’s main roads. In 1912–1913, Lahuti served as an officer in the gendarmerie unit stationed in Qom, and he performed with distinction during military operations against armed brigands and Bakhtiyari tribesmen.7 He soon rose to the rank of the commander of his unit. As the leader of the gendarmerie detachment in Qom, Lahuti became involved in prolonged disputes with members of the local clergy and the merchant class, who filed complaints against him with the central government. One source claimed that he was court-martialed for misappropriating government funds.8 The same source claimed that, after he was warned against returning to the capital, Lahuti fled to western Iran where he sought the protection of Ali Akbar Khan, the chief of the Kurdish Sanjabi tribe, who, at the time, was embroiled in his own conflict with the Ottoman Turks.9 One Iranian scholar stated that during the First World War, Lahuti published a newspaper in Kermanshah called Bisotun.10 A British source, however, claimed that in 1915, at the instigation of Germans, Lahuti and a group of fellow gendarmes had joined the Ottoman Turks and participated in campaigns against Russian forces in western Iran.11 Another British source stated that Lahuti had joined the Ottoman forces after Kurdish tribes of western Iran made peace with the Turks, but he had written the British privately expressing his readiness to help the Allies. The same source also claimed that having gone to Kermanshah in March 1916, Lahuti had accompanied the British to Hamadan, where he received a letter of support from a British officer recommending him for employment. With the letter in hand, Lahuti went to Tehran in August 1917, where he was recommended by the British 7 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, February 19, 1922, [E 3815/285/34], No. 85., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 150. 8 Ibid. 9 British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 186. 10 Bayat, Kaveh. Kudeta-ye Lahuti, Tabriz, Bahman 1300, (Tehran: Pardis Danesh,
1997), pp. 30–31. 11 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, February 19, 1922, [E 3815/285/34], No. 85., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 150.
192
M. KIA
officer in charge of the South Persia Rifles. However, because there was no vacancy for him, Lahuti started an anti-British and an anti-Russian newspaper.12 After the end of the First World War, Lahuti joined the Iranian exile community in Istanbul, where he worked at a variety of odd jobs. He also published a newspaper and opened a bookstore with support from the Iranian expatriate community, including the deposed Qajar monarch, Mohammad Ali Mirza.13 He also composed and published a collection of poetry called Iran Nameh (Book of Iran) modeled after Ferdowsi’s Shahnameh (Book of Kings), which described the lives and careers of the kings of pre-Islamic Iran.14 Returning to Iran in October 1921, Lahuti visited Savojbolagh, the center of operations for a gendarmerie division under the command of Major Hassan Malekzadeh. Lahuti knew Malekzadeh as a fellow officer, and the two men apparently enjoyed a close friendship. The day after the arrival of Lahuti, Simko attacked Savojbolagh, but Lahuti managed to escape the town, which was sacked by the Kurdish chief. When he finally reached Tabriz, Lahuti appealed to the governor of Azerbaijan, Mokhber al-Saltaneh, for a pardon and requested to be reinstated in the gendarmerie detachments stationed in the province. In desperate need of trained officers, Mokhber al-Saltaneh agreed, and Lahuti joined the Iranian gendarmerie units headed by the Swedish commander, Colonel Lundberg, whom he knew from his previous tenure in the force.15 Lahuti was assigned to the gendarmerie detachment dispatched to Sharafkhaneh, where it was to stay until the arrival of reinforcements sent from Tehran for the purpose of suppressing Simko. Shortly after Lahuti’s arrival in Sharafkhaneh, Reza Khan, the minister of war, ordered the re-organization of the Iranian armed forces, with the Iranian gendarmerie and the Cossack Brigade merging into one military institution. The merger of the two entities caused a great deal of anxiety and opposition among a significant number of gendarmerie troopers who were already angry at the government for not paying their salaries on time. On 30 January, when the gendarmerie officers stationed
12 British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 187. 13 Kaveh Bayat, Kudeta-ye Lahuti, Tabriz, Bahman 1300, pp. 31–32. 14 Ibid., p. 32. 15 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, February 19, 1922, [E 3815/285/34], No. 85., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 150.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
193
in Sharafkhaneh staged their mutiny, Lahuti was handpicked as the leader of the rebellion. Colonel Lundberg, the Swedish officer in command of the gendarmerie units in Azerbaijan, tried to quell the revolt among the gendarmes, who had arrested their commanding officer, but he failed. As soon as he learned about the fall of Tabriz into the hands of Lahuti and his supporters, Reza Khan, who was visiting Kermanshah at the time, cut short his trip and returned to Tehran. The minister of war ordered “the 3,000 to 4,000 Cossacks who were at Miandoab, with the object of attacking Simko from the south of Lake Urumiyeh, to proceed immediately to Tabriz and quell the revolt.”16 Realizing that his short reign as the master of Tabriz was coming to a quick end, on 6 February Lahuti published a notice declaring that more Cossacks were arriving and that they intended to fight “against our liberty.”17 The gendarmerie commander called on the inhabitants of Tabriz to join him against the government forces, but Lahuti’s desperate plea failed to inspire a positive response. On February 8, 1922, the Cossack units under the command of General Sheybani, converged in Tabriz and joined up with Cossack detachments already in the city and confined to their barracks. With the arrival of government forces, fighting erupted between Lahuti’s supporters and army units loyal to the central government. After several hours of intense fighting, which commenced at about 10:00 a.m. and ended at 5:30 p.m., Lahuti and his men were defeated.18 According to one source, the intense firefight left fifty Cossacks dead and forty wounded, while the casualties among Lahuti’s supporters were, according to one report, considerably greater. Another source, however, reported that Lahuti’s losses were “somewhat less”19 than the Cossacks. Having pacified the rebels, General Sheybani imposed martial law on Tabriz. 16 Report on the Gendarmarie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/ 6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 322. 17 Ibid. 18 Ibid. 19 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, February 12, 1922, [E 4707/285/34], No. 8., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 153. See also, Report on the Gendarmarie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 323.
194
M. KIA
Lahuti and a group of his supporters, estimated to be anywhere between 200 and 350 men,20 fled the city for the Soviet Union.21 In the next chapter of his life, Lahuti emerged as a prominent literary figure in the Soviet Republic of Tajikistan. He also served for a time as Tajikistan’s minister of education. Mokhber al-Saltaneh, whose tenure as the governor of Azerbaijan had proved to be a series of disasters, was recalled to Tehran and replaced first by a certain Ijlal al-Dowleh, and soon after by Mosaddegh al-Saltaneh (the future Mohammad Mosaddegh). The revolt staged by Lahuti forced government troops to abandon their position south of Lake Urumiyeh and rush to Tabriz. The withdrawal of the Iranian military units created a vacuum that Simko attempted to fill, extending his rule to the territory east of the lake. As with the central government, however, Simko also confronted challenges in the territory under his control. In the winter of 1922, inter-tribal rivalries erupted into open conflict between Simko and several Kurdish chiefs of Savojbolagh, who drove Simko’s forces out of the district.22 This setback, in addition to the concentration of government troops, made Simko sufficiently anxious that he began to contemplate making peace gestures to Tehran.23 The
20 For the number of individuals who fled with Lahuti to the Soviet Union, see, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, Gozaresh-e Iran, p. 382. See also, Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, February 12, 1922, [E 4707/285/34], No. 71., in Iran Political Diaries 1881– 1965, Volume 6, p. 153. See also, Report on the Gendarmarie Revolt in Tabriz, February 1922, Doc. 253 [E 4753/6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 323. See also, Kaveh Bayat, Kudeta-ye Lahuti, Tabriz, Bahman 1300, pp. 31–32. 21 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat. Gozaresh-e Iran, p. 382. According to Abdollah Mostowfi, the supporters of Lahuti, who were detained by Iranian authorities, were pardoned by Reza Khan, the minister of war, after the influential Shi’i cleric, Sayyid Hassan Modarres, interceded on their behalf. The released troopers and officers were later recruited by the country’s police force and the Iranian gendarmerie. See Mostowfi, Abdollah., Sharh-e Zendegani-ye Man Ya Tarikh-e Ejtemaei-ye Doreh-ye Qajar, 3 Volumes, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1992), p. 373. 22 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, March 15, 1922, [E 4737/285/34], No. 146., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 169. 23 Ibid.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
195
prospect of an approaching conflict with a large government force intensified his desperate search for new tribal allies as far south as Sanandaj and Marivan in the present-day province of Kurdistan.24 Simko’s appeal to some of the Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan and Kurdistan received a positive response. In March 1922, the British consul in Tabriz reported that “the Mamash, Mangur, Dohbukri tribes, as well as the Kurds in the neighborhood of Saqiz [Saqqez] and Baneh” had joined Simko.25 Thus, Simko’s military strength, which was estimated by one British source at 5,000 armed men, grew in size with the addition of 1,700 Dehbokri, 700 Mangur, and 500 Mamash tribesmen.26 At least one Iranian source estimated that, at the height of his power in 1922, Simko enjoyed the support of a 10,000-man army, as well as 400 Turkish officers, who were responsible for operating his artillery, including machine guns and cannons.27 Equally alarming for the Iranian government was the growing popularity of Simko among the powerful Kurdish tribal chiefs of the province of Kurdistan. At least one of these, Sardar Rashid Ardalani, promised Simko to march on Sanandaj when the latter’s forces had occupied Saqqez.28 Another influential chief, Mahmud Khan Dizli of Marivan also promised to support Simko.29 According to the British consul in Kermanshah, the only Kurdish chief who had given a flat refusal to Simko’s overtures was Mahmud Khan Kanisanan of Marivan.30 While Simko was building a formidable force in western Azerbaijan and expanding his alliances to the tribes of Sanandaj and Marivan, the central government was busy consolidating its position in eastern Azerbaijan.
24 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, March 27, 1922, [E 4751/285/34], No. 175., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 6, p. 175. 25 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, March 30, 1922, [E 4754/285/34], No. 180., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 6, p. 178. 26 Ibid. 27 Amanollah Jahanbani, Az Tezar ta Shah: Zendeginameh va Khaterat-e Sepahbod
Amanollah Jahanbani, Edited by Mahmoud Toloui, (Tehran: Elm Publisher, 2019), p. 147. 28 Cowan to Loraine, Kermanshah, March 16, 1922, Doc. 300, Enclosure in Doc. 299, No. 5., in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 375. 29 Ibid. 30 Ibid.
196
M. KIA
By April 7, 1922, there was a significant concentration of government forces in Tabriz, Sharafkhaneh, Miandoab, and Khoy.31 The distribution of government troops was reported by the British consul in Tabriz as follows: Tabriz: Cavalry 850; Infantry 650; Guns 8; Machine guns 10; Lewis guns 13. Sharafkhaneh: Infantry 3,000; Guns 4; Machine guns 17. Miandoab: Cavalry 1,200; Infantry 800; Guns 4; Machine guns 10. Khoy: Infantry 500; Cavalry 50; Irregulars 300.32 The congregation of government forces in Azerbaijan was not, however, designed exclusively to neutralize the threat posed by Simko. The central government was also embarking on a new campaign to disarm tribal groups and concentrate all power in the hands of the central government. In the process of disarming Iran’s tribal groups, Tehran was also removing tribal chiefs as the intermediary strata standing between the state and the tribal population of the country. The central government intended to replace loyalty to tribal chiefs with loyalty to the state and substitute tribal identities with a new national identity. Instead of paying their taxes to their chief, tribesmen were now converted into full-fledged citizens, who were expected to abide by the rules and the laws of the state and pay their taxes to the agents of the central government. One of the first tribes in Azerbaijan to be disarmed was the Hajialilu of Qarajadagh, which Simko had defeated in December 1921. After the death of the Hajialilu chief Amir Arshad in battle against Simko, his brother, Sardar Ashayer, emerged as the leader of his tribe. On April 19, 1922, government authorities in Tabriz arrested Sardar Ashayer and his nephew, the son of the deceased Amir Arshad.33 The army detachment dispatched to Amir Arshad’s village seized “a large store of arms and munitions,” including “1,500 rifles, 19 Lewis guns, 6 machine guns,
31 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, April 18, 1922, [E 5238/285/34], No. 222., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 6, p. 186. 32 Ibid. 33 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, April 30, 1922, [E 5897/285/34], No. 244., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 6, p. 194.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
197
and 2 mountain guns.”34 The military operations conducted against the tribal chiefs in eastern Azerbaijan culminated in the suppression of the Aralu and Fuladlu sections of the Shahseven tribe and the execution of their chiefs in spring 1923.35 The message to the tribes of Azerbaijan, and all tribal groups across the country, was loud and clear: the days of tribes arming themselves and behaving as independent political and military entities had come to an end. No tribe, even those whose chiefs had cooperated with the central government, could escape the long arm of the Iranian state and the policy of tribal disarmament implemented by Reza Khan, the minister of war.
Khalu Qorban: yet Another Debacle for the Government Among the armed units dispatched against Simko was a small detachment under the command of the Kurdish leader, Khalu Qorban. From 1915 to 1921, Khalu Qorban had played an important role as an ally of Mirza Kuchak Khan, the charismatic leader of the Jangal movement based in the Caspian province of Gilan. He had originally travelled to Gilan with his uncle, the leader of a detachment of 150 gum workers and Kurds from Kermanshah. When his uncle was killed in a skirmish, Khalu Qorban emerged as the leader of the Kurdish unit.36 After the Jangal movement unraveled in autumn 1921, Khalu Qorban abandoned Mirza Kuchak Khan who died in December 1921 from frostbite in the Talish mountains. On 21 December, Khalu Qorban, accompanied by his lieutenant, Khalu Morad, also a Kurd, arrived in Tehran.37 34 Ibid. 35 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 13, Tehran, March 31, 1923, Doc. 203 [E
4911/69/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 294. See also, M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 22, Tehran, June 2, 1923, Doc. 262, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 373. 36 Gilak, Mohammad Ali. Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Jangal, (Rasht: Gilakan Press, 1992), p. 55. 37 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 33, Tehran, December 18, 1922, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 244.
198
M. KIA
As Simko’s rebellion gained momentum, the government conceived a plan to rid itself of Khalu Qorban by rewarding the former revolutionary with the honorific title of Salar Mozaffar (Victorious Commander) and dispatching him at the head of an expeditionary force against the Kurdish chief.38 Marching from Tehran in late autumn 1921, Khalu Qorban and his detachment reached Savojbolagh after quick stops at Miandoab and S¯a’in Qalaeh (present-day Shahin Dezh).39 The original plan called for Khalu Qorban and his Kurdish detachment to establish a base in Savojbolagh. When the gendarmes under Lahuti seized Tabriz in February 1922, however, Khalu Qorban and his Kurdish fighters were ordered to abandon their position in Savojbolagh and advance rapidly toward Tabriz to assist in the suppression of Lahuti and his supporters. After the suppression of Lahuti’s revolt, Khalu Qorban and his contingent joined the forces holding the line of defense south of Lake Urumiyeh. In May, after positioning his force northeast of Savojbolagh, Khalu Qorban received intelligence that the town’s population had joined Sayyid Taha II and his band of 800 fighters in looting raids in the vicinity of Bukan southeast of Savojbolagh.40 Believing that there was no fighting force left in Savojbolagh, Khalu Qorban advanced quickly and seized the town without any resistance. When the news of the fall of Savojbolagh reached Sayyid Taha II, the Kurdish sheikh and his fighters returned and attacked Khalu Qorban’s forces.41 On May 27, 1922, Kurdish tribal units, under the overall leadership of Sayyid Taha II, defeated Khalu Qorban’s forces. Khalu Qorban and 200 of his men were killed during the firefight.42 As Khalu Qorban’s forces fled “hurriedly towards Tabriz via Maragheh,” panic spread among government forces, which evacuated
38 Ibid. see also, Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat. Khaterat va Khatarat, p. 331. 39 Mohammad Ali Gilak, Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Jangal, p. 519. 40 Loraine to Balfour, Gulhak, June 9, 1922, [7333/285/34], No. 344., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 214. 41 Ibid. 42 Ibid. See also, Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 61.
See also, Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Avamel-e Moasser dar Piruzi-ye Qoshun-e Mottahad alShekl,” p. 63. See also, Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, Persia Annual Report, 1922, Confidential (12,221) [E 8057/8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 410.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
199
Miandoab and S¯a’in Qalaeh.43 The garrison of S¯a’in Qalaeh “consisted of 600 gendarmes,” of whom “400 fled to Tabriz and 200 retreated southward.”44 The collapse of Khalu Qorban’s forces allowed Simko to seize Miandoab and S¯a’in Qalaeh southeast of Lake Urumiyeh and to threaten Maragheh east of the lake.45 According to one source, with government forces fleeing en masse, Simko advanced toward Maragheh and sacked the town in June.46 For the first time in the history of the conflict between the central government and Simko, the Kurdish chief was in position to attack Tabriz, the provincial capital of Azerbaijan. As one British diplomat wrote almost a year later, if Simko had “scored one more victory, he would have been the chieftain of all western tribes and would have established a Republic.”47 The victory over Khalu Qorban’s detachment, followed by the capture of Miandoab and S¯a’in Qalaeh, enhanced the morale of Simko’s allies and caused a large number of Kurdish tribes to join him. Simko’s newly gained confidence was demonstrated in his appeal to the tribes of Luristan to rise and “join forces with the Kurds.”48 The central government in Tehran had no option but to sue for peace. According to one source, Simko and the delegates of the Iranian government reached an agreement under which the Kurdish leader promised to cease his attacks against Iranian government forces, as long as the government stopped its attacks against
43 Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, June 9, 1922, [E 7333/285/34], No. 344., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 214. 44 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 23, June 11, 1922, Doc. 16 [E 8373/ 285/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 21. 45 Oriente Moderno, Anno 2, Nr. 2 (15 July 1922), Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, p. 115. See also, Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, June 6, 1922, Doc. 271 [E 5752/6/34], No. 241., in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 17, p. 343. 46 Ibid. 47 Cyrus Ghani, Iran and the Rise of Reza Shah, p. 258. 48 Arnold J. Toynbee, Survey of International Affairs 1925: The Islamic World Since the
Peace Settlement, p. 539. Oriente Moderno, Anno 2, Nr. 2 (15 July 1922), Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, p. 115.
200
M. KIA
his positions.49 The government and Simko also agreed to exchange prisoners of war and allow freedom of trade. The peace agreement with Simko allowed the central government to dispatch a new and much larger army to Azerbaijan in order to restore order in northwestern Iran.50 Simko’s victories against government forces generated international reverberations, and the world media, through hyperbolic dispatches published in Turkish newspapers, took notice of the unfolding crisis in northwestern Iran. One of these embellished reports dispatched by the Associated Press on July 9, 1922, and published in the New York Times on 10 July, stated that, after defeating the Iranian army, “the bandit Simko” had “proclaimed a Kurdish Republic, assuming the Presidency himself.”51 The report also stated that Simko, who “commanded 35,000 men” and received assistance from the Turkish leader, Mustafa Kemal, was marching to Tabriz, the capital of Azerbaijan.52 According to the same dispatch, the new Kurdish republic was to incorporate the towns of Kermanshah, Salmas, and Urumiyeh.53 The news of humiliating military setbacks in Azerbaijan forced the Iranian government to offer interviews to the international press and deny that Iran’s armed forces had been defeated by Simko. In its July 19, 1922, issue, the Washington Post reported that the Iranian ambassador to the United States, Mirza Hossein Khan Alai (later Hossein Ala), had denied the news that “the Persian bandit,” Simko had proclaimed a Kurdish republic and had assumed its presidency after defeating the Iranian army.54 What the Iranian diplomat could not refute, however, was the fact that, by the end of July 1922, Simko controlled all of the territory west of Lake Urumiyeh from Khoy in the north to Saqqez and Baneh in the south.55 Indeed, “the inactivity and total absence of the offensive spirit” shown by government forces, operating against Simko for nearly 49 Oriente Moderno, Anno 2, Nr. 2 (15 July 1922), Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, p. 115. 50 Ibid. 51 The New York Times, July 10, 1922. 52 Ibid. 53 Ibid. 54 Washington Post, July 19, 1922. 55 Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, July 3, 1922, [E 8437/6/34], No., 419., in British
Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 39.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
201
six months, handed Simko the initiative and improved the morale of his troops.56 Added to this, the defeat of government forces by Simko north and south of Lake Urumiyeh gained the Kurdish chief more territory and further allies, and lowered the morale and discipline of the government forces.57 By late spring 1922, Simko’s territorial gains had assumed alarming proportions, and he was now viewed by Tehran as the principal threat to the territorial integrity of the Iranian state, a reality recognized by Iran’s minister of war, Reza Khan.58 Tehran was especially alarmed by reports that Simko was intensifying his propaganda among the Kurdish tribes of western Iran, in one case, promising governorship of Sanandaj to a Kurdish chief, Mahmud Khan Kanisanan of Marivan, if he took the town.59 The defeat suffered by government forces in May 1922, dealt a serious blow to Reza Khan’s original plan regarding the restoration of governmental authority over western Azerbaijan. Tehran newspapers accused British officials of fanning the flames of a Kurdish rebellion in general and instigating a revolt among the Kurdish tribes of western Iran led by Simko. An article published in the newspaper, Haqiqat (Truth), claimed that the British consul in Kermanshah, joined by a certain Major Greenhouse, had visited the tribes of Kurdistan as well as the representatives of Simko in an effort to organize a tribal revolt based on an alliance between the Kurdish tribes of western Iran and Simko.60 In a meeting with the British military attaché in Tehran, the minister of war, Reza Khan, stated that the disaster at Savojbolagh “was due to the fact that Khalu Qorban and the men under him were practically irregular troops
56 Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, July 3, 1922, [E 8437/6/34], No. 419., in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II , Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 38. 57 Ibid. 58 Susan Meiselas, Kurdistan In the Shadow of History, p. 104. 59 Cowan to Loraine, Kermanshah, May 25, 1922, Doc. 28 [E 8437/6/34], No.
419., in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 39. 60 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, May 24, 1922, [E 7320/285/34], No., 303., Appendix, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 206.
202
M. KIA
and they showed no fight at all.”61 He also added that the defeat would allow Simko to “gain further adherents from tribesmen” who, until then had been “sitting on the fence.”62 In consequence of Khalu Qorban’s defeat, the minister of war dispatched 5,000 reinforcements to Tabriz.63 Of these, 2,000 were to march via Qazvin and Zanjan to Tabriz, while 1,000 men were ordered to push from Hamadan toward S¯a’in Qalaeh, via Bijar in the province of Kurdistan, against Simko’s right flank.64 With promises from the Turks that they would not render any assistance to the Kurdish chief and a commitment from Ankara that, should Simko cross the frontier into Turkey, they would arrest him and hand him back to Iranian authorities, Reza Khan made up his mind to attack and crush Simko.
Amanollah Mirza Jahanbani Frustrated with General Sheybani, who was delaying his offensive against Simko, and anxious to finish the operations against the Kurdish chief before the arrival of autumn 1922 (which would have made the movement of troops and supplying them extremely difficult), Reza Khan appointed chief of staff of the army, General Amanollah Mirza Jahanbani, as the commander-in-chief of all government forces in Azerbaijan. General Jahanbani was the son of Amanollah Mirza Ziya al-Dowleh and the great grandson of the second Qajar monarch, Fath Ali Shah (r. 1797–1834). In autumn 1903, he was sent by his father to Saint Petersburg, where he attended Nikolaevsky War Academy.65 In 1907,
61 Loraine to Balfour, June 9, 1922, Doc 10, [E 7332/6/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 14. 62 Ibid., pp. 14–15. 63 Washington Post, July 19, 1922. 64 M. Saunders, Interview with the War Minister June 8, 1922, Document 11, Tehran,
June 8, 1922, Enclosure in Document 10, [E 7332/6/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 15. 65 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 28–30. Amanollah Mirza’s real name was Nosratollah, but he assumed his father’s name, Amanollah, when he was sent to Russia.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
203
he was appointed to the Nikolaevsky Cadet Corps.66 After graduation, Amanollah Mirza attended Mikhailovsky Artillery School and the War Academy.67 On February 5, 1912, while he was studying in Saint Petersburg, Amanollah Mirza’s father, Ziya al-Dowleh, who served as the commander of the Cossack Division in Tabriz and for a time as the governor-general of Azerbaijan, committed suicide in the British consulate at Tabriz. The suicide apparently resulted from his fears of Russian vengeance for his open support for Iranian constitutionalists and his sharp criticism of Russian atrocities in Azerbaijan.68 In 1916, Amanollah Mirza “entered the Cossack Division with the rank of captain, and was made aide-de-camp to the Russian general Starosselsky, then commanding officer of the Cossack Division.”69 Amanollah Mirza was then elevated to the position of “Staff Officer to Colonel Temernobouzoff when the latter commanded the Persian Cossack Brigade.”70 Though he had never taken part in politics, after the coup of February 1921, Amanollah Mirza threw his support behind Reza Khan Sardar Sepah, the head of the Cossack Brigade and later the minister of war.71 In October 1921, “Amanollah Mirza became Chief of Staff of the army,” and “in June 1922, he was appointed commander-in-chief in Azerbaijan” to lead the operations against Simko.72 66 Central Intelligence Agency, Directorate of Intelligence. Intelligence Report: Centers of Power in Iran. May 1972, No. 2035/72, p. 22. 67 Ibid. 68 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, pp. 391-392. See also, British
Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 38. See also, Barclay to Grey, Tehran, February 20, 1912, Persia Confidential, [10465], No. 37, in Iran Political Diaries 18811965, Volume 5, p. 414. In June 1911, when Mokhber al-Saltaneh, the governor of Azerbaijan resigned from his post, Ziya al-Dowleh, who served as the commander of Iranian troops in the province, was appointed governor-general. On December 27, 1911, under pressure from Russian occupation forces, Ziya al-Dowleh took bast in the British consulate in Tabriz. See, Barclay to Grey, Tehran, June 14, 1911, Persia Confidential, [25682], No. 99., in Iran Political Diaries 1881-1965, Volume 5, p. 317. See also, Townley to Grey, Tehran, March 18, 1913, Persia Annual Report, 1912. [15876], No. 66., in Iran Political Diaries 1881-1965, Volume 5, p. 466. 69 Confidential, [E 5601/1688/34], No. 212, Leading Personalities in Persia, 1947 , Le Rougetel to Bevin, Persia, June 27, 1947, p. 15. 70 British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 38. 71 Biographies of Leading Personalities in Persia, Persia Confidential [E 693/693/34],
No. 1, February 7, 1930, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 8, p. 598. 72 British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), p. 38.
204
M. KIA
Aside from regular army units he commanded, Amanollah Mirza enjoyed the support of several tribal groups of Azerbaijan. The Moghadam tribe of Maragheh, the Afshar tribe of Urumiyeh and S¯a’in Qalaeh, and the Hajialilu tribal group based in Qarajadagh (Arasbaran), joined government forces and provided irregular units as reinforcement. Simko’s military victories had caused great anxiety, not only for the central government, but also for these Shi’i Azerbaijani tribes, who viewed the rise of the ambitious Kurdish chief as a direct threat to their traditional power and privileges. In June 1922, as Amanollah Mirza prepared himself to depart for Tabriz, the minister of war dispatched a large force to reinforce the Maragheh-Miandoab-Savojbolagh line. Composed of 1,600 troops, this military unit advanced toward Azerbaijan via Hamadan.73 Another detachment from Miyaneh comprising the Qazvin Regiment of 856 men, and the Khorasan Regiment numbering approximately 2,000, brought the total of the forces in the southern front (east and south of Lake Urumiyeh) to 3,600 troops.74 Meanwhile, Amanollah Mirza left Tehran for Tabriz on June 17, 1922. On 28 June, shortly after arriving in Tabriz, he “held an inspection of troops.”75 Three weeks later, on 18 July, Amanollah Mirza left Tabriz for the port of Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh, where he set up his headquarters.76 As Amanollah Mirza was leaving Tehran for Tabriz in June, a Turkish detachment of 1,000 to 1,500 men, began to assemble in Van in eastern Turkey, in close proximity to the Iran-Turkey frontier.77 According to an agent providing reports to the British government, the Turks had demanded that Simko (1) “dismiss all Turkish Kurds” who were with him and send them back to Turkey; (2) return to the Turks “all arms
73 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko), undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 103. 74 Ibid. 75 Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, Tehran, July 13, 1922, [E 8631/285/34], No. 439., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 230. 76 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, August 8, 1922, [E 10,119/285/34], no. 497., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 241. 77 Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, July 13, 1922, [E 8631/285/34], No. 439., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 230.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
205
and munitions” he had received from Turkish sources; and (3) submit to the Iranian government and “hand over all arms and munitions in his possession” to the Iranian authorities.78 By summer 1922, British diplomatic and intelligence sources reported that the Turkish nationalists were no longer lending any support to Simko and his followers. According to the British ambassador in Tehran, the fact that Simko was in favor of an “independent Kurdistan, with possibly himself at the head of the State,” mitigated against “the prospect of assistance being rendered him” by the Ankara government.79 Nevertheless, the Kurdish leader continued to enjoy the support of “a considerable number of Turkish officers and men amongst his following,” whom the ambassador believed “to be adventurers serving him without instructions from their government.”80 Sensing that he was being sandwiched by Turkish nationalist forces from the west and an Iranian army “rejuvenated by the reforms of Reza Khan” from the east,81 Simko hurriedly dispatched three Kurdish mullahs as his representatives to Iraq to seek “assistance or intervention” from British authorities.82 On 9 July, Simko’s envoys left Urumiyeh for Mosul in northern Iraq.83 The Kurdish chief also sent an urgent summons to Sayyid Taha II, who was on his way to a meeting with British officials in Iraq.84 One British official even claimed that Simko had sent a representative to Baku to obtain Russian Bolshevik assistance, though the British consul in Tabriz could not confirm the accuracy of the report.85 Though they had supported Kurdish nationalist aspirations in northern Iraq, the British had no interest in becoming entangled in a campaign to 78 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, August 8, 1922, [E 10,119/285/34], No. 497., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 243. 79 Lorraine to Balfour, Tehran, July 3, 1922, Doc. 28 [E 8437/6/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 38. 80 Ibid. 81 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 305. 82 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, August 8, 1922, [E 10,119/285/34], No. 497., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 243. 83 Ibid. 84 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 252. 85 Lorraine to Balfour, Tehran, July 3, 1922, Doc. 28 [E 8437/6/34] in British Docu-
ments On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 38.
206
M. KIA
undermine Iran’s territorial integrity or in providing arms, money, and logistical support to a tribal chief they had dismissed as a brigand and an opportunist. Meanwhile, Amanalloh Mirza was putting the final touches on his campaign against Simko. While in Sharafkhaneh, the Iranian commander augmented the artillery capabilities of several naval vessels on Lake Urumiyeh, including the battleship, Admiral, by mounting it with two Russian rapid-fire mountain guns.86 He also waited patiently for all detachments under his command to assemble on the plain of Tasuj north of the lake. In finalizing his plans, Amanollah Mirza “consulted a Russian officer of the old Czarist army,” Colonel Andrievsky, “who had gained intimate knowledge of conditions” in Urumiyeh in 1916–1917, when the Russians were in occupation of the town.87 The Iranian commander’s plan was to attack “round the north end” of Lake Urumiyeh against Simko’s “stronghold at Chahriq,” while “leaving a sufficient force at Savojbolagh to prevent the Kurdish chief from escaping south.88 The plan was carried out with discipline, and it “proved a complete success.”89 By July 19, 1922, a formidable army had been assembled and prepared for a slow march against Dilman and ultimately Simko’s headquarters at Chahriq.90 At the last moment, General Jahanbani managed to convince Kazem Qushchi, a local landowner and brigand, who had fought Simko in the past, to join government forces in their march against Dilman.91 Kazem and his armed men controlled the village of Qushchi, situated in the Anzal district at the northwest corner of Lake Urumiyeh.92
86 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 249–250. 87 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1923, Persia Annual Report, 1922, Confidential
(12,221) [E 8057/8057/34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 410. 88 Ibid. 89 Ibid. 90 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 61. See also, Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Avamel-e Moasser dar Piruzi-ye Qoshun-e Mottahad al-Shekl dar Jang-e Shakar Y¯azi,” p. 64. 91 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 247–248. 92 Kazem Qushchi or Ghushchi and his men played an important role in the campaign
against Simko. However, after he rebelled against the government, Kazem and his small army were attacked by a government force of 700 men in December 1923. The local landlord and rebel was killed during the battle. See, Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran,
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
207
Defeat of Simko Preparations for the military campaign against Simko were completed by 5 August, when government forces began to advance toward Salmas.93 On the same day, British intelligence sources reported that “the government advance guards” had “established contact with Simko’s outlying posts,” and had driven them back.94 The attack on Simko’s positions commenced with an assault on his right flank. The battleship Admiral shelled the port of Golmankhaneh on the western shore of Lake Urumiyeh.95 A multipronged assault from water and land was intended to intimidate Simko’s forces and convince the Kurdish chief that he was fighting a superior force in a hopeless battle. On 5 August, columns of troops began to converge slowly on Salmas.96 Three days later, the actual advance into the district of Salmas commenced with a column under Bassir Divan (future General Fazlollah Zahedi) leading the push toward Dilman, the capital of Salmas.97 The battle was joined after Simko struck with the bulk of his troops northeast of Dilman, attacking one of the government units, the Arak Regiment also called Foj-e Ahmadi, named after the unit’s commanding officer, Yavar Ahmad Khan.98 The main body of government forces immediately moved
March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report 1923, Confidential 12,445, [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 720. 93 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 249–250. See also, Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, September 29, 1922, [E 12,259/285/34], No. 597., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 6, p. 276. See also, M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko), undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 101. 94 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, August 22, 1922, [E 10,848/285/34], No. 523., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 246. 95 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 249–250. 96 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko),
undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 101. 97 Ibid. 98 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 38, Tehran, September 24, 1922, Doc. 86,
[E 12,259/285/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East,
208
M. KIA
up to support the hard-pressed Ahmadi detachment and “a pitched battle was fought.”99 After several hours of intense fighting, Simko’s forces were routed, losing 250 fighters.100 According to a British intelligence report, a party of six hundred government troops was attacked and surrounded by eight hundred pro-Simko Kurds.101 Government forces who could see the fight through their field glasses rushed to rescue.102 Simko’s forces were defeated after four hours of intense fighting. Government troops lost sixty killed, fifty wounded, and six prisoners, while the Kurds lost 250 fighters.103 In a series of clashes that followed northeast of Dilman between the 8th and the 9th of August, government forces inflicted a crushing defeat on Simko’s 10,000-man army, which, by then, included 3,000 Kurds from Turkey.104 Simko’s men fought courageously and ferociously, attacking four times, “using their swords and daggers, which was most unusual” for tribesmen, but, for the first time since their defeat at the hands of Philipov in January–February 1920, they were confronting a superior force at all levels, including discipline, leadership, and fire power.105 Thus, after an intense firefight, government troops captured the capital of the district of Salmas, Dilman, which was defended by 700 Kurds under the command of the Shakak chief, Omar Agha.106 According to one source, the casualties among the defending Kurds were estimated at 500 to 600 men.107 With Omar Agha and his men fleeing Dilman, Simko’s forces retreated
1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 125. See also, Loraine to Balfour, Tehran, September 29, 1922, [E 12,259/285/34], No. 597., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 276. 99 Ibid. 100 Ibid. 101 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko), undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 102. 102 Ibid. 103 Ibid. 104 Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 62. 105 Hassan Arfa, Under Five Shahs, p. 136. 106 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 275. 107 Ibid., p. 276.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
209
toward Chahriq.108 Simultaneously, army detachments from Khoy and Maku advanced from the direction of Qotur toward Simko’s stronghold at Chahriq.109 On 10 August, government troops concentrated in the district of Salmas and marched through Dilman, the district capital, at 9:00 A.M.110 With Dilman serving as their operational base, government forces advanced toward Chahriq, Simko’s stronghold, the next day. Iranian army detachments were divided into three columns and, after an intense artillery barrage, captured Simko’s headquarters on 14 August.111 The Chahriq fortress, including the building Simko had designated as the site where he would declare the independence of Kurdistan, was blown up by the order of General Jahanbani.112 In a telegram to Reza Khan, General Jahanbani informed the minister of war that he had captured Simko’s headquarters and that the Kurdish chief had fled.113 Two days after the capture of Chahriq, government troops entered Urumiyeh after they had killed Simko’s designated governor.114 On 18 August, skirmishes were reported from Baradoost-Margavar-Oshnaviyeh line, but there was no trace of Simko and his main army.115 On 21 August, government authorities felt sufficiently confident to appoint deputy governors for
108 Ibid., pp. 275–276. 109 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko),
undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 102. 110 Ibid. 111 Ibid. 112 Ibid. See also, Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, pp. 268–269. See also, Hassan Arfa, The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, p. 62. 113 Malek al-Shoara Bahar, Tarikh-e Mokhtasar-e Ahzab-e Siyasi dar Iran, Volume 1, pp. 310–311. 114 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko), undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 102. See also, Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 313. See also, Persia Annual Report 1922. Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, July 16, 1924, [E 8057/8057/ 34], No. 314., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 410. 115 Ibid.
210
M. KIA
Urumiyeh and Savojbolagh.116 Notices were also published, which guaranteed “security for all those who wished to return” to Urumiyeh.117 A few refugees returned to their homes, but the bulk awaited an official proclamation allowing them to do so.118 The authorities were afraid to issue this proclamation as long as Simko was at large, and so to accept responsibility, for the safety of the region.119 On the same day, General Jahanbani returned from Urumiyeh to his headquarters at Sharafkhaneh on the northeastern shore of Lake Urumiyeh.120 By the time the Iranian forces arrived in western Azerbaijan, the towns of Urumiyeh and Salmas, as well as the villages in the theater of operations, had been reduced to ruins.121 Urumiyeh in particular had been knocked to pieces; only a few Muslim homes remained, while the town’s Christian quarter had been completely destroyed.122 The population of the town, the urban heart of the region, had decreased from 30,000 at the commencement of the Great War to 10,00. Even “the fields and vineyards” had been “badly damaged.”123 In late winter 1923, the central government in Tehran allowed 3,000 Assyrian refugees to return, but the population was now extremely poor and in need of “assistance in
116 Ibid. 117 Ibid. 118 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 43, Tehran, October 29, Doc. 110 [E 14,483/285/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 159. 119 Ibid. 120 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan Against Ismail Agha (Simko),
undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 102. 121 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 41, Tehran, October 15, Doc. 102 [E 13,955/285/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 144. 122 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 43, Tehran, October 29, Doc. 110 [E 14,483/285/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 159. 123 Ibid.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
211
money, grain-seed, and plough-oxen.”124 By late September 1923, the British ambassador in Tehran was able to report to London that Assyrians and Armenian refugees were steadily returning to the Urumiyeh area, and all those who were in Tabriz had been repatriated.125 Some “1,500 refugees from Hamadan” were also “reported to be on their way” to Urumiyeh “via Bijar and Maragheh accompanied by Miss Shedd, an American missionary doctor.”126 A British report for 1923 concluded that in 1922 and up to August 1923 “about 5,000 refugees had returned to Urmia [Urumiyeh] from and via Tabriz, and by the end of the year a further 3,000 had proceeded thither from Kermanshah and Hamadan, while 200 more natives of Urmia awaited at Tabriz their opportunity to return.”127 There were also about “1,000 Assyrians still in and near Kermanshah.”128 Nearly “all of them” had “found employment,” and many did not show a “keen desire to follow the rest of their brethren to Urmia.”129 The news of the suffering and destruction of urban and rural communities in western Azerbaijan during Simko’s rule devastated and outraged the population in Tabriz where the bazaars were illuminated in celebration of the Kurdish chief’s defeat.130 The campaign against Simko displayed the emergence of a new cadre of young Iranian army officers who would rise to prominent positions during the reign of Mohammad Reza Shah Pahlavi (r. 1941–1979). Haj Ali Razmara, who commanded a detachment during the fight against Simko, would graduate from the military academy at Saint-Cyr and subsequently 124 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 10, Tehran, March 11, 1923, Doc. 186 [E 4081/69/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 275. 125 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, September 29, 1923, Persia Confidential [E 10,594/ 69/34], No. 437., in Iran Political Diaries, Volume 6, p. 605. 126 Ibid. 127 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Annual Report, 1923, Confi-
dential (12,445), [E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 731. 128 Ibid. 129 Ibid. 130 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan against Ismail Agha (Simko) undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 102.
212
M. KIA
rise to the directorship of the Tehran Military Cadet College in 1938, and the rank of general in 1944. He was appointed the prime minister of Iran in June 1950. The general turned prime minister served as the head of the government until March 7, 1951, when he was assassinated by Khalil Tahmassebi, a member of the Islamist group, Fadayeen-e Islam, which enjoyed the support of the powerful clergyman, Ayatollah Sayyid Abolqasem Kashani, and a junior member of the clergy at Qom, namely Ruhollah Khomeini. Another detachment commander, Bassir Divan, would emerge as General Fazlollah Zahedi. Zahedi played an important role in several military campaigns during the reign of Reza Shah, including the one which led to the detention of the Arab ruler of Mohammareh (Khoramshahr), Sheikh Khazal. He was subsequently appointed governor of Khuzestan. He also served as the governor of Isfahan before the invasion of Iran by the British and Soviet forces during the Second World War. Suspected of collaborating with Germans, Zahedi was detained by the British and sent into exile in Palestine. Zahedi returned to Iran in 1945. In 1949, he was appointed the chief of police of Tehran. In the short-lived premiership of Hossein Ala (March–April 1951), he served as the minister of the interior. When Mohammad Mosaddeq (April 1951–August 1953) was appointed prime minister, Zahedi retained his post and continued to serve as minister of the interior until December 1951. In August 1953, military units led by Zahedi, who had been appointed by Mohammad Reza Shah as the new prime minister, overthrew the Mosaddeq government. The military takeover enjoyed the support of both the United States and Britain. Zahedi served as the prime minister until April 1955. After leaving office, Zahedi served as Iran’s ambassador to the United Nations at its European headquarters in Geneva. A third officer, Gholamali Bayandor, an artillery specialist wounded by three bullets during the battle against Simko, refused to abandon the battlefield until he was taken to hospital by force. Because of the exceptional bravery and dedication displayed during the campaign against Simko, Bayandor received the highest medal of courage. He later joined the Iranian naval forces, rising to the post of the commander of the Imperial Iranian Navy from 1931 to August 25, 1941, when he was killed on
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
213
the deck of his battleship after it was attacked by the British forces which had invaded Iran.131 Finally, the fourth officer, Hassan Arfa, who had fought Simko on several occasions before and during the August 1922 victory, rose to the rank of general and the chief of the General Staff (1944–1946) before he was appointed Iran’s ambassador to Turkey (1958–1961) and Iran’s ambassador to Pakistan (1961–1962). Arfa wrote two important books on the history of twentieth-century Iran, Under the Five Shahs, and The Kurds: An historical and political study.
Simko’s Tribal Coalition Fizzles In less than three weeks, in August 1922, the government forces seized Salmas, Urumiyeh, Chahriq, Oshnaviyeh, Savojbolagh, and Sardasht, “practically without opposition.”132 By the end of August, Simko’s army of 10,000 men had been reduced to 1,000. The Kurdish chief had no alternative but to retreat into Turkish territory. According to Iran’s minister of war, Simko had been completely crushed after one “stiff fight in which valiant resistance of Simko’s Kurdish regulars was overwhelmed” by superior Iranian numbers, who had fought well, suffering “some 250 casualties.”133 Simko lost “not only his guns, machine-guns and ammunition train” but also one of his wives, who was killed.134 In addition, his six-year-old son, “the apple of his eye,” was captured by Iranian forces.135 One Iranian author claimed that, since the Turks had learned that Simko had crossed into their territory accompanied by mules packed with money, they staged a night raid to plunder his caravan.136 During this raid, one
131 Amanollah Jahanbani, Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak, p. 258. 132 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 38, Tehran, September 24, 1922, Doc. 86,
[E 12,259/285/34] in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 125. 133 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, August 30, 1922, Doc. 48 [E 8676/6/34], No. 324., in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 71. 134 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 305. 135 Ibid. 136 Hossein Makki, Tarikh-e Bist Sale-ye Iran, Volume 2, p. 126.
214
M. KIA
of Simko’s wives and one of his sons were killed, but Simko managed to escape the ambush. According to the same source, the Kurdish chief offered General Jahanbani a bribe of 10,000 Turkish lira in return for lenient and compassionate terms of surrender, but the Iranian commander replied that he could accept no arrangements except an unconditional and immediate surrender.137 The news of Simko’s defeat spread quickly. On 16 August, the Times of London reported that the Iranian government’s offensive against Simko had been carried out successfully “thanks to the ability of Sirdar-i Sipah, Minister of War.”138 The same source reported that after a major battle, the Iranian government troops had taken the rebel fortress in Chahriq, seizing “many prisoners and rifles” and forcing Simko to flee into Turkey.139 With the disintegration of Simko’s army, his tribal allies opened negotiations for a pardon with the central government. In early September 1922, Abdullah Beyk (Beg), a cousin of Simko, sent a message to the Iranian commander saying that if he was “pardoned he would surrender” with 400 of his Shakak tribesmen.140 Then late in September, Sayyid Taha II and sixty of his men travelled to Urumiyeh “to discuss the terms of peace” with the commander of the Iranian troops.141 Following Sayyid Taha II, the powerful Shakak chiefs, Omar Khan, “the chief of the Kardar subdivision of the Shakak,” also surrendered.142 By mid-October, one British report claimed that Urumiyeh was “full of Kurds who walk about the streets fully armed and unmolested by the garrison.”143 In addition to Sayyid Taha II and Omar Khan, numerous Kurdish tribal chiefs surrendered. These included Nuri Beyk and his brother, Assad Beyk of Targavar; Haji Agha, chief of the Harki Mandan from Mavana [also in Targavar]; Taher Beyk, Kamal Beyk and Tabur Aghasi, chiefs of the Begzade in Targavar; Karim Khan Harki, chief of the Sidan Harki tribe 137 Ibid. 138 The Times of London, August 17, 1922 as quoted in Oriente Moderno, Anno 2, Nr.
4 (15 September 1922), Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, p. 243. 139 Ibid. 140 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, September 13, 1922, [E 12,245/285/34], No. 571.,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 268. 141 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, October 18, 1922, [E 13,955/285/34], No. 267., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 291. 142 Ibid. 143 Ibid.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
215
of Margavar. The whole Zarza tribe of Oshnaviyeh also surrendered.144 Additionally, Bahri Beyk, “son of Tamar Agha,” one of the chiefs of the Avdoi branch of Shakak, and “Simko’s cousin,” surrendered with fifty families, and was appointed governor of Baradoost.145 Though these tribal chiefs had supported Simko, the Iranian authorities adopted a “conciliatory policy towards the Kurds” who had participated in Simko’s army and allowed many who had been, until recently, “fighting on Simko’s side,” to return to their homes armed and “unmolested by the government troops.”146 Sayyid Taha, who had come to Urumiyeh to discuss peace terms with the Iranian commander-in-chief, and “was being kept there more or less as a hostage,” however, escaped from Urumiyeh and “fled to the mountainous region on the frontier” west of the town.147 The Iranian military expressed a willingness “to grant Simko an amnesty on conditions which will guarantee his future good behavior.”148 But, Simko, who was reported to “be in the mountainous frontier district” west of Urumiyeh “with a following of not more than 200 men,” refused to surrender to the Iranian authorities.149 Meanwhile, negotiations regarding the fate of Simko between the Turkish nationalists and the Iranian government continued. By then, the Turks were readily admitting that they had armed Simko to enable him to prevent Christian (i.e., Assyrian and Armenian) refugees from returning to Urumiyeh.150 They insisted, however, that, contrary to their objectives, Simko had used the arms they had given him for his own political objectives against the Iranian government, and that, therefore, they had in no way assisted
144 Ibid. 145 Ibid. 146 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, September 29, 1922, [12259/285/34], No. 597., in Iran Political Diaries, Volume 6, p. 275. 147 M. Saunders, October 22, 1922, Intelligence Summary No. 42, Doc. 105 [E 13,961/285/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 152. 148 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, September 29, 1922, [12259/285/34], No. 597., in Iran Political Diaries, Volume 6, p. 275. 149 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, November 3, 1922, [E 14,483/285/34], No. 651., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 304. 150 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, October 18, 1922, [E 13,955/285/34], No. 627., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 292.
216
M. KIA
Simko against Iran.151 Despite repeated pleas from Iranian authorities for security cooperation between the two countries, Turkish authorities refused to surrender Simko unless the Iranian government made a commitment to forbid the return of Assyrian and Armenian Christians to Urumiyeh.152 With Simko defeated, the Iranian army dispatched three separate detachments to three different parts of western Azerbaijan. Because the absconding Kurdish fighters had split into three separate sections with Simko and his tribe, as well as the Kurds of Somai and Baradoost retreating toward Shepiran in Salmas district, Sayyid Taha II with his men withdrawing to Margavar and Targavar districts, and the Kurds of Salmas fleeing to Qotur, the first detachment of 2,000 government troops marched from Salmas via Khoy to Qotur and thence to Maku in close proximity to Iran’s border with Turkey.153 This column attacked and burnt Qotur to deny the retreating Kurds from Salmas a source of food and supply in case they crossed the Iranian-Turkish frontier. The second detachment of 3,000 armed men proceeded from Urumiyeh directly westward in a mop-up operation, clearing up the country between Lake Urumiyeh and the Turkish frontier.154 The third army of 5,000 troopers advanced against Oshnaviyeh southwest of Lake Urumiyeh, and in close proximity to Iran’s border with both Iraq and Turkey.155 With much of his army and support network abandoning him, Simko made one last desperate maneuver, re-entering Iran with a group of his fighters who had remained loyal to him, but he was quickly repulsed. The suppression of Simko’s revolt was celebrated across the country in ceremonies organized by the Iranian armed forces. The re-establishment
151 Ibid. 152 Ibid. 153 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan against Ismail Agha (Simko) undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 103. See also, Office of the British Military Attaché, Tehran, 3rd September 1922, No. C38/ 69., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 263. 154 Office of the British Military Attaché, Tehran, 3rd September 1922, No. C38/69., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 263. 155 Ibid.
7
SIMKO’S DOWNFALL
217
of Iranian government authority in western Azerbaijan greatly strengthened Reza Khan’s position and accelerated his rise to absolute power in Tehran.156 The moral of the army, which had “suffered from the reverse at Simko’s hands in the spring and early summer,” changed overnight.157 The birth “of a new spirit and real espirit de corps ” became “apparent amongst both officers and men,” a spirit that had not been in existence in Iran “since the time of Nadir Shah in 1745.”158 The minister of war congratulated the Iranian army on the occasion of the defeat of Simko by issuing a statement: At this time when the forces in Azerbaijan have won a complete victory, eradicated the rebels, captured the town of Salmas, taken the fortress of Chahriq and cleansed all the western areas of Azerbaijan from the threat of foreign elements, I extend my appreciation to general Amanollah Mirza, the commander of the army, for his rapid, decisive action, and also express my full satisfaction to all the brave officers and men who took part in the fighting.159
By labeling Simko as an agent of foreign powers, Reza Khan presented himself as a patriotic leader who had singlehandedly defended the territorial integrity of Iran, while at the same time restoring law and order to an important frontier province that had effectively operated outside the authority of the Iranian state for nearly two decades. The consolidation of power in the hands of Iran’s central government allowed Reza Khan to destroy the last remaining vestiges of autonomous tribal power in northwestern Iran, as represented by the Shahseven tribes in eastern Azerbaijan and the Khan of Maku in western Azerbaijan. During March and April 1923, government forces attacked and killed seven prominent
156 M. Saunders, Report on the Operations in Azerbaijan against Ismail Agha (Simko) undertaken by the Persian Government from August 5 to 28, 1922, Doc. 77, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 104. 157 Ibid. 158 Ibid. 159 Donald Wilber, Riza Shah Pahlavi: The Resurrection and Reconstruction of Iran 1878–1944, p. 66.
218
M. KIA
Shahseven tribal chiefs.160 Then in January 1924, after decades of dominating Maku and the surrounding districts, Eqbal al-Saltaneh was invited to Tabriz, where he was detained. Tried for treason, the khan was found guilty.161 The villages he owned were confiscated and converted into crown lands.162 His personal property and treasures consisting of twenty camel loads of silver, ten camel loads of gold, and three locked Russian safes of unknown contents were transported from Maku to Tabriz by Iranian military authorities.163 Shortly after the end of his trial, Eqbal al-Saltaneh either died or was killed in prison. In the months that followed the Iranian army’s victory over Simko, Tehran’s newspapers published numerous articles on the underlying causes for the Kurdish insurgency. Most of these blamed foreign powers for instigating separatist movements as a means of undermining the efforts of Reza Khan to restore peace and order in the country. For example, on May 4, 1923, the Tehran newspaper, Iran, attacked the “Alien,” (i.e., the British) for instigating “the Simko insurrection, plunder of property of the poor inhabitants and disappearance of peace and security, as well as social and political difficulties,” which had “appeared in the capital and other towns.”164 But the Persian newspapers did not confine their attacks to the British. Iran’s neighbor to the north, namely the Soviet Union, was also criticized for labeling “the outrageous activities of Ismail Agha Simko…a national movement by the people.”165
160 The seven tribal chiefs were Amir Ashayer of Khalkhal, his brother, Abish Khan, Amir Firuz, Sardar Ashja’, Hajji Alaei, Noruz Khan Amir Tuman, and Ashja’ Solltan. See, M. Saunders, Tehran, June 2, 1923, Intelligence Summary No. 22, Doc. 262, in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 373. 161 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 20, 1924, [E 2417/255/34], No. 40., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 6. 162 Ibid. 163 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 15, 1924, [E 1948/255/34], No. 31., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 4. 164 M. Saunders, Tehran, May 5, 1923, Intelligence Summary No. 18, Appendix C, Doc. 227 [E 6618/69/34], in British Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 336. 165 Ibid., Appendix (D), Leading Article in the Tehran Newspaper “Mihan,” dated May 1, 1923, p. 337.
CHAPTER 8
In Search of a New Patron: Simko Sandwiched Between Iran and Turkey
With his headquarters in government hands, Simko fled across the border into Turkey, but he was betrayed by the Turks, his former backers, who captured one of his sons “and all his property and killed his favorite wife.”1 Desperate to save his life and secure British support for his cause, the Kurdish chief escaped Turkish territory and arrived in northern Iraq in October 1922.2 Simko travelled to Iraq “in the hope of finding” the British willing and ready “to champion the cause of Kurdish freedom” against the Turkish and Iranian governments.3 Simko’s brotherin-law and close confidant, Sayyid Taha II, who arrived independently a day or two later, however, seems to have understood from the very outset that the British were unwilling to lend any support to a separatist Kurdish movement in Iran. They were, however, more than happy to entertain the appointment of the charismatic Sayyid as the local ruler of the districts of “Rawanduz, Asra, and Amadiya.”4 It is not surprising, therefore, that Sayyid Taha II left Simko and flew down to Baghdad to
1 Confidential: Personalities Mosul, Arbil , Kirkuk, Sulaimani and Frontiers, (Baghdad: Government Press, 1923), p. 92. 2 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 305. See also, D. K. Fieldhouse (ed.). Kurds, Arabs and Britons The Memoir of Wallace Lyon in Iraq, p. 110. 3 Ibid., p. 307. 4 Ibid., p. 306.
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_8
219
220
M. KIA
take part in the tripartite conversations then in progress between King Faisal of Iraq, the British High Commissioner, and a delegation from Sulaymaniyah, regarding the future relationship between the autonomous Kurdish region of northern Iraq and the Iraqi government.5
Simko in Northern Iraq By autumn 1922 when Simko arrived in northern Iraq, the British in collaboration with the French had completed the process of carving new Arab states from the cadaver of the Ottoman Empire, converting themselves into the new masters of Palestine, Transjordan, and Iraq. To the north, the Turkish nationalists, led by Mustafa Kemal, had defeated the Greeks and the Armistice of Mudanya had been signed by the two warring parties on October 11, 1922. Under that agreement, Turkey had retained all of Anatolia and Eastern Thrace.6 After the victory of Turkish nationalists over the Greeks, the conservative government of Bonar Law (October 1922–May 1923) in London entered into direct negotiations with Kemalist Turks in Lausanne, Switzerland with the hope of producing a treaty of peace.7 By the time the Treaty of Lausanne was finally signed on July 24, 1923, the British had dropped their demand for autonomy of Turkish Kurdistan. To secure a durable peace agreement, London also reassured the Turkish nationalists that the Kurds of northern Iraq would not pose any threat to the security and territorial integrity of the newly established Turkish republic.8 In the midst of these transformational developments in the larger Middle East region, Simko met with British officials north of Erbil on November 6, 1922. He was accompanied by his brother Ahmad, several minor relatives, and about twenty retainers.9 According to the British officer, Cecil J. Edmonds, who negotiated with Simko in Persian, the Kurdish Aghas “were dressed in smart uniforms of British army 5 Ibid. 6 Joseph C. Grew, “The Peace Conference of Lausanne, 1922–1923,” Proceedings of
the American Philosophical Society, Vol. 98, No. 1 (February 15, 1954), pp. 1–10, p. 2. 7 Ibid., pp. 2–3. 8 Saad Eskander, “Southern Kurdistan Under Britain’s Mesopotamian Mandate: From
Separation to Incorporation, 1920–23,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 37, No. 2, pp. 153– 180, http://doi.org/10.1080/714004389, p. 172. 9 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 307.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
221
serge, Russian top-boots, and the high cylindrical felt hats of the Shikak completely hidden by the turban of silk handkerchiefs wound tightly around; the jackets were double-breasted with stand-up collars and full skirts of cavalry type, the breeches might have been cut in Savile Row.”10 Simko himself was described as a “well-knit, leanish man of middle height”; his features seeming “very European, the brown tooth-brush moustache would have graced any British officer, and the regularity of his shining white teeth was discovered by a winning, almost shy, smile.”11 In sharp contrast to Edmonds, another British officer, Wallace Lyon, who did not speak Persian and was merely an observer of the meeting, described Simko as the “greatest brigand of our time” and a leader who could have emerged as a legitimate nationalist figure had he abandoned his love for looting and plundering.12 According to Lyon, the “suave” Sayyid Taha accepted the invitation extended by the British to travel to Baghdad without any fear or hesitation, whereas “the fidgety” Simko, after travelling for a short time toward Erbil, suddenly changed his mind and returned to the border region between Iraq and Turkey.13 Lyon surmised that Simko was most probably aware that there were armed “Assyrian Levies” stationed at Erbil’s aerodrome and that they could easily shoot and kill the man they blamed for the murder of their leader, Mar Shimun.14 In his meeting with British officials in northern Iraq, Simko expressed “no particular feeling of resentment” toward the Iranians, “he had given as good as he had received—but he wanted to get even with the Turks, who had made a pretense of backing him and had then turned upon him.”15 When the British informed him that they had no intention of supporting him with arms and money, Simko expressed his astonishment with their policy of avoiding any confrontation with Iran given that the Iranian government was cooperating with the Turkish nationalists to undermine the British position in northern Iraq.
10 Ibid. 11 Ibid. 12 D. K. Fieldhouse (ed.), Kurds, Arabs and Britons the Memoir of Wallace Lyon in Iraq, pp. 111–112. 13 Ibid., p. 112. 14 Ibid. 15 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 307.
222
M. KIA
The British authorities in Iraq saw in Simko and Sayyid Taha II “a possible way out of the Kurdish imbroglio and a cheap way of re-establishing [their] authority” in the districts of Sulaymaniyah and Rawanduz.16 To achieve this end, both Kurdish leaders had to collaborate fully and wholeheartedly with British authorities in Iraq, while at the same time shifting their operational focus from northwestern Iran and southeastern Anatolia to northern Mesopotamia. Simko rejected and Sayyid Taha II accepted this proposal. The British viewed Sayyid Taha in particular as a valuable partner, who could play an important role in implementing the British strategy regarding northern Iraq. The Kurdish leader exerted a great deal of influence on the Kurdish tribes of Rawanduz in Iraq, as well as the tribes of Oshnaviyeh, Margavar, and Targavar in Iran.17 It is not surprising, therefore, that the British provided Sayyid Taha II “subsidies of 1000 rupees and the right to receive income from customs.”18 Additionally, he was sent “a gift of 5000 guns.”19 Having realized that the British had no interest in supporting his military operations in Iran, Simko appealed to Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji, the ruler of Sulaymaniyah, for assistance. Hailing from a family of prominent sheikhs, Sheikh Mahmud had inherited from his father and grandfather enormous tribal and religious influence.20 In 1918, shortly after the British occupation of Iraq, Sheikh Mahmud was made governor of Sulaymaniyah. In June 1919, however, he revolted and imprisoned the British personnel in Sulaymaniyah. In response, the British dispatched an expedition against the Kurdish leader, capturing and exiling him first to India and then to Kuwait. The region ruled by Sheikh Mahmud was then brought under direct British control and governed by English officers until September 1922, “when in consequence of Turkish infiltration and a series of tribal risings, it was evacuated.”21 After the nationalist Turks had been forced to withdraw from northern Iraq, Sheikh Mahmud 16 D. K. Fieldhouse, Kurds, Arabs and Britons: The Memoir of Wallace Lyon in Iraq, p. 111. 17 M. S. Lazarev, Kurdistan i Kurdski vopros (1923–1945) (Vostochnaia literatura, 2005), p. 40. 18 Ibid. 19 Ibid. 20 Confidential [E 8114/3/93], No. 301, Personalities in Iraq 1947 , Busk to Bevin, September 3, 1947, p. 17. 21 C. J. Edmonds, “A Kurdish Newspaper: Rozh-i Kurdistan,” p. 84.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
223
was reinstated as the governor of Sulaymaniyah.22 Once again, the Sheikh disappointed the British authorities by establishing direct contact with Kemalist Turks and proclaiming himself the King of Kurdistan in November 1922, shortly after Simko arrived in northern Iraq.23 In 1923, “armed action had to be taken against Sheikh Mahmud to check his endeavours to establish his influence in the Kirkuk and Erbil provinces.”24 Sulaymaniyah was re-occupied in 1924, “but Sheikh Mahmud was not brought to terms until 1927.”25 The prospect of an autonomous or independent Kurdish state under Sheikh Mahmud was an extremely delicate issue for the Iranian government because of fears that it would embolden the Kurdish population in western Iran. Indeed, the communication between the Iranian and British officials clearly demonstrates that Kurdish sheikh’s activities aroused considerable apprehension and anxiety in Tehran where the Iranian prime minister, Qavam al-Saltaneh, expressed his grave concern to the British ambassador about the “formation of Kurdish administration at Sulaymaniyah” and the fact that “Sheikh Mahmud was calling himself a king, appointing ‘ministers’ and sending emissaries” among Iranian Kurds “inviting their allegiance to himself.”26 On January 8, 1923, Simko, whom the local press had already celebrated as “the doughty champion of Kurdistan,” arrived in Sulaymaniyah with pomp and ceremony, including “a parade of troops, a salute of seven guns, and the proclamation of a public holiday.”27 After the British turned down his request for military and financial assistance, Simko pinned his hopes on Sheikh Mahmud. During their meeting, the Shakak chief appealed for assistance, but the Kurdish leader refused cooperation and rejected the idea of lending any support.28 Realizing that neither the 22 Confidential [E 8114/3/93], No. 301, Personalities in Iraq 1947 , Busk to Bevin, September 3, 1947, p. 17. 23 C. J. Edmonds, “A Kurdish Newspaper: Rozh-i Kurdistan,” p. 84. 24 Confidential [E 8114/3/93], No. 301, Personalities in Iraq 1947 , Busk to Bevin,
September 3, 1947, p. 17. 25 Ibid. 26 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, January 6, 1923, Doc. 130 [E 309/7/34] in British
Documents On Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 183. 27 C. J. Edmonds, Kurds Turks and Arabs, p. 313. 28 C. J. Edmonds, “A Kurdish Newspaper: Rozh-i Kurdistan,” p. 89.
224
M. KIA
British nor Sheikh Mahmud had any interest in lending their support to his cause, Simko proposed his surrender to the Iranian government in January 1923, but Tehran found the terms he had demanded unacceptable.29 By the end of January, a British intelligence report stated that, while Sayyid Taha II “had gone to Mosul,” the British “had not allowed Simko to go there.”30 The same report also claimed that Simko was near Erbil and endeavoring through a Kurdish chief named Sheikh Raghib, to come to terms with the Turks.31 The conditions demanded by the Turks, however, were rejected by Simko, who by then was in “pitiable conditions, without followers or money.”32
Simko, Turkish Nationalists, and Russian Bolsheviks Without any prospect of support from the British authorities in Iraq or any immediate reconciliation with Iran, Simko returned to Turkey and offered his services to the Turkish nationalists based in Ankara. By the end of March 1923, the Kurdish chief had joined Ozdemir Bey, the commander of Turkish nationalist forces in Rawanduz.33 The Turks intended to use the route through Iran, via Urumiyeh, and the passes leading east from Rawanduz into Iranian territory to reinforce their troops in northeastern Iraq.34 The ultimate objective of the Turkish campaign was to recapture Mosul. Ozdemir Bey appointed Simko as warden of the frontier.
29 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 17, 1925, [E 952/82/34], No. 34, W. A. K. Fraser, Intelligence Summary No. 3., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 252. 30 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 4, Tehran, January 28, 1923, Doc. 164 [E 2945/69/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 244. 31 Ibid. 32 Ibid. 33 Confidential: Personalities Mosul, Arbil , Kirkuk, Sulaimani and Frontiers, p. 92. 34 Loraine to MacDonald, Tehran, March 4, 1924, Persia Confidential, No. 12445,
[E 3362/2635/34], No. 128., Persia Annual Report, 1923, in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958. Volume 6, p. 605.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
225
Simko’s collaboration with the Kemalist Turks, however, proved to be short-lived. British forces occupied Rawanduz on 22 April.35 Ozdemir and his troops were forced to retreat into Iranian territory, where they were dully disarmed by local authorities.36 Sheikh Mahmud, who had joined the Turks, also fled across the Iranian frontier. Having witnessed the collapse of the Turkish campaign at Rawanduz, Simko retired into Turkey,37 visiting Nehri, the home of Sayyid Taha II in April.38 By the end of June, Simko was reported to be near Qotur, but “on the Turkish side of the frontier,” working with the local Kurds, who were “robbing travelers along the Van-Qotur road.”39 Simko’s decision to ally himself with the nationalist Turks severed his ties with Sayyid Taha II, whom the British appointed qaimmaqam of Rawanduz in northeastern Iraq, after they re-occupied the region in April 1923.40 The signing of the Treaty of Lausanne between Turkey and Britain, France, Italy, Japan, Greece, Romania, and the Kingdom of Serbs, Croats, and Slovenes (Yugoslavia) in July 1923,41 proved to be a turning point for many Kurdish leaders in the region, including Simko. According to the treaty, the allies recognized the boundaries of the newly established Republic of Turkey. Turkey renounced all its claims to the Arab provinces of the Ottoman Empire. Ankara also recognized British control over Cyprus and Italian control over the Dodecanese. All parties agreed that the straits of Bosporus and Dardanelles connecting the Black Sea to the Aegean had to remain open to all shipping. But as far as the Kurds were concerned, the most significant concession handed to the Turks was that the allies dropped their demands for the creation of an autonomous Kurdish state in eastern Anatolia and cession of territory by the Turks to the Armenians. The Kurds could no longer rely on the support of 35 Ibid. 36 Ibid. 37 Ibid. 38 Confidential: Personalities Mosul, Arbil , Kirkuk, Sulaimani and Frontiers, p. 92. 39 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 26, Tehran, Doc. 267 [E 8431/69/34] in
British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939. Volume 18, p. 385. 40 “Report by His Britannic Majesty’s Government on the Administration of Iraq for the Period April 1923–December 1924,” p. 17. 41 J. C. Hurewitz, Diplomacy in the Near and Middle East. Volume 2, pp. 119–127.
226
M. KIA
the British for their cause. Neither could they rely on the Turks for any assistance against the British in northern Iraq. Recognizing that he could no longer use the conflict between the British in Iraq and the Turkish nationalists in Anatolia to his advantage, and painfully aware that neither the Turks nor the British had any intention of providing him with either military or financial assistance, Simko turned his eyes to the north and appealed to the Soviet Union for support. During his meetings with Sheikh Mahmud in Sulaymaniyah, Simko had indicated that in the absence of any military support from the Turks, who were negotiating with the British for a treaty of peace and understanding, the Kurds may have no choice but to enlist the support of the Soviets. Now, with the news of a rapprochement between the British and the Turks, Simko saw no realistic alternative but to appeal to the Soviet officials for assistance. Declaring himself a zealous supporter of the communist state, Simko wrote to the Soviet consul general in Urumiyeh that: “We place all our hopes on you. When you provide us with the necessary assistance and assistance in the name of philanthropy, we are ready to carry out all your orders.”42 Simko also appealed to his Soviet contact to act as intermediary between himself and the Iranian government. If the Soviets could secure his personal safety, return his lost estates to him, and restore his leadership over the entire Shakak tribe, he would follow the wishes of Moscow “in everything.”43 By early December 1923, a British intelligence report stated that Simko was in a village in eastern Turkey only twelve miles west of Qotur on the Turkish-Iranian frontier, expecting the return of his son from Ankara where the Turks had taken him.44 A week later, Simko, accompanied by “a small band of followers,” raided the Iranian territory, “robbing goods and sheep from villages in Salmas area.”45 Simko’s raids forced the Iranian military authorities to strengthen the country’s frontier guards and try to
42 M. S. Lazarev, Kurdistan i Kurdski vopros, p. 41. 43 Ibid. 44 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 18, 1923, [E 883/255/34], No. 598., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 639. 45 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 22, 1923, [E 884/255/34], No. 606., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 644.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
227
“put a stop to further raiding of this nature.”46 Despite Simko’s incursions into Iranian territory, the new chiefs of the Shakak intensified their cooperation with Iranian authorities. In November 1923, one hundred Shakak Kurds arrived in Tabriz to offer their services to the Iranian army. Though Iran’s minister of war preferred “not to employ irregular forces in his expeditions,” having found that these had “proved of little value in previous operations in Gilan and Azerbaijan,”47 the Iranian government made an exception and accepted the offer from the Shakak.48 The 100 Shakak Kurds joined eighty Shahseven Turks to create “the nucleus of a new cavalry regiment, which was to be attached to the 3rd Tabriz Infantry Regiment.”49 Despite the cooperation between the Iranian government and the new Shakak leadership, Simko refused to stop his raids, especially after Iranian authorities decided to sell his and Sayyid Taha’s properties in the Urumiyeh region.50 The loss of his landed estates aggravated the Kurdish chief, who intensified his attacks against Iranian targets. As early as the middle of March 1924, British intelligence sources reported that Simko had attacked the village of Derik in the Salmas district.51 Beginning in the spring 1924, the situation on the Iranian-Turkish border began to deteriorate. Anxious to secure its northwestern frontiers against tribal incursions from Turkey and Iraq, the Iranian government tried to block the movement of Pizhdar Kurds, who traditionally came over the mountains from Qaladiza north of Sulaymaniyah each summer to graze their flocks in the Sardasht area of western Azerbaijan.52 With support from Kurdish tribes in western Azerbaijan, the Iranian authorities disarmed and taxed the Pizhdars and forced them to return home.53 46 Ibid. 47 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 18, 1923, [E 883/255/34], No. 598., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 641. 48 Loraine to Curzon, Tehran, December 22, 1923, [E 884/255/34], No. 606., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 6, p. 643. 49 Ibid. 50 Monson to MacDonald, Tehran, March 6, 1924, [E 3511/255/34], No. 129., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 21. 51 Monson to MacDonald, Tehran, March 26, 1924, [E 3945/255/34], No. 165., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 30. 52 M. S. Lazarev, Kurdistan i Kurdski vopros, p. 84. See also, David McDowall, A Modern History of the Kurds, p. 224. 53 Ibid.
228
M. KIA
The instability at the border offered Simko a golden opportunity to raid towns and villages inside Iran. According to one source, Simko’s men attacked Miandoab and even Maragheh in eastern Azerbaijan.54 The Iranian authorities responded quickly and a punitive expedition under the command of Major General Abdollah Khan Amir-Tahmasebi, the governor-general of Azerbaijan, re-imposed the authority of the central government on the border region with Turkey. During the campaign against Simko, Amir-Tahmasebi spread the rumor that Simko’s raids were inspired and backed by the British, who intended to destabilize the security of the Iranian state.55 Despite the military successes against the Kurdish chief, by April 1924, Simko had established himself west of Qotur on the Turkish-Iranian frontier, carrying out raids deeper into Iranian territory.56 A month later, he was reported to have paid a visit to Van in eastern Turkey before returning to Qotur again. The British intelligence sources also claimed that there were signs that Simko was preparing “to cause trouble” in the Qotur region of northwestern Iran, where there was only “a small force of government troops.”57 The first sign of Simko’s reappearance in northwestern Iran was the rapid increase in the number of raids and murders committed by the followers of Simko’s nephew on the road between Khoy and Salmas.58 On 19 July, British intelligence reports from Tabriz indicated that “occasional minor raids” were carried out in northwestern Iran “by Simko’s men,” who were acting as border guards for the Turkish nationalists, as well as Sayyid Taha II, who had also crossed the Iranian frontier west of Urumiyeh after an encounter in which he had defeated an Iranian frontier garrison.59 Sayyid Taha II justified his invasion of Iranian territory on the basis of seeking compensation for the confiscation of his landed properties in the Margavar and Baranduz
54 Ibid. 55 Ibid. 56 Ovey to MacDonald, Tehran, June 2, 1924, [E 5856/255/34], No. 272., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 65. 57 Ovey to MacDonald, Tehran, May 7, 1924, [E 5650/255/34], No. 258., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 58. 58 Ibid. 59 Ovey to MacDonald, Tehran, July 29, 1924, [E 7228/255/34], No. 356., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 89.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
229
Chai districts. Simko’s attacks, however, assumed characteristics of plundering and looting unarmed rural communities. In addition, the raids incited once again a civil war between the Kurdish, the Assyrian, and the Shi’i Azerbaijani communities. Chaos and instability in northwestern Iran threatened once again to undermine the legitimacy of Iran’s central government and to facilitate direct intervention by Turkish nationalists. In November 1924, Iranian military authorities based in Tabriz were also receiving reports that Simko “was attempting to instigate the Maku Kurds to create trouble.”60 The Iranian government officials believed that the Turks supported Simko’s incursions into Iranian territory and that they used the Kurdish chief as a convenient tool for their policy of destabilizing Iranian Azerbaijan. Simko himself readily admitted that he once again enjoyed a close friendship with the Turkish nationalist government under Mustafa Kemal. Reporting on a meeting between Simko and the governor of Van, a Turkish newspaper published in Istanbul quoted the Kurdish chief as stating that, though the British had offered every assistance, he did not intend “to be a traitor like Sheikh Taha [Sayyid Taha II]” and instead wished to help the Turks “recapture Mosul.”61 In the same article, Simko was quoted as claiming that “the majority of the Kurds preferred Turkish rule to autonomy.”62 Ankara rewarded Simko’s expressions of fidelity to the Turkish cause. The Kurdish chief was appointed to an official post in Turkey’s newly created provincial administration in eastern Anatolia.63 The Turkish support for Simko persisted despite continued pressure from Tehran on Ankara to remove the Kurdish chief to a safe distance from the Iran-Turkey frontier and in spite of the fact that the Turks themselves suspected Simko of having established communication with the Soviet government.64 A British intelligence report dated December 6, 1924, stated that the Turkish consul general in Urumiyeh had attempted to distribute among the local Kurds “photographs of
60 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, November 24, 1924, [E 11555/255/34], No. 548., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 150. 61 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, December 10, 1924, [E 82/82/34], No. 566., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, pp. 158–159. 62 Ibid., p. 159. 63 Ibid. 64 Ibid.
230
M. KIA
Simko seated with honour among Turkish officers.”65 Believing that this was “an attempt to increase Simko’s prestige” and popularity among the Kurds of western Azerbaijan, the Iranian government “ordered the confiscation of all copies.”66 As his men continued to carry out raids in the vicinity of Qotur and Salmas, Simko re-opened negotiations with Iranian authorities in Azerbaijan. As early as June 1924, there were indications that Simko was negotiating his surrender with the governor of Urumiyeh.67 On December 20, 1924, the British intelligence sources reported that negotiations were proceeding between Simko and the Iranian military authorities in Tabriz for his surrender.68 The same source reported that there were strong rumors that a meeting had already taken place between Simko and the general officer commanding the Iranian army division at or near Salmas and that Simko was already at Kohneh Shahr in Salmas district awaiting the orders of the central government in Tehran.69 By early 1924, the Turkish officials had started accusing Simko of being a British agent. In a conversation with the Soviet Plenipotentiary in Turkey, Yakov Surits, the Turkish minister of foreign affairs, Shukru Kaya, stated that the “activation of Simko who had crossed from Turkish to Iranian territory, was the work of the British.”70 According to the Turkish minister, the British were “preparing a big action in Kurdistan with the aim of encircling Sheikh Mahmud, who posed a great threat to Turkey as well.”71 In January 1925, Simko’s negotiations with Iranian authorities in Azerbaijan hit a snag. The Kurdish chief informed Iranian officials that the Turks were not allowing his family to leave Turkey, and that he was consequently unable to return to Iran.72 65 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, December 15, 1924, [E 87/82/34], No. 571., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 162. 66 Ibid. 67 Ovey to MacDonald, Tehran, June 7, 1924, [E 5858/255/34], No. 282., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 68. 68 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, December 31, 1924, [E 319/83/34], No. 582., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 172. 69 Ibid. 70 M. S. Lazarev, Kurdistan i Kurdski vopros, p. 83. 71 Ibid. 72 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, February 10, 1925, [E 1594/82/34], No. 80., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 258.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
231
Simko Returns to Iran In late winter 1925, as the Turkish government embarked on a campaign to crush a Kurdish rebellion led by Sheikh Said in eastern Anatolia, Simko became gravely concerned for his safety. It was becoming increasingly clear that there would be no future for an aspiring and ambitious Kurdish leader in Mustafa Kemal’s Turkey, where even the suggestion of the existence of Kurdish identity would become illegal. Sheikh Said’s rebellion, which had commenced in February 1925, quickly spread to several provinces with Kurdish majorities. In early April, Turkish troops suppressed the Kurdish rebellion and detained Sheikh Said and his closest followers. In May 1925, the Turkish authorities also detained the Kurdish nationalist leader, Sayyid Abdulqadir of Nehri and his son, Mohammad. Sayyid Abdulqadir was the son of the Kurdish leader, Sheikh Ubeydullah, and the uncle of Simko’s brother-in-law and former close confidant, Sayyid Taha II. Sayyid Abdulqadir was detained in Istanbul and transported to Diyarbakir, where he and his son were tried for their alleged connection to Sheikh Said. Both men were found guilty and executed on May 27, 1925. In late June, Sheikh Said and a large number of his followers were also hanged. Meanwhile, Sayyid Abdulqadir’s other son, Abdullah, fled to Iran and he subsequently made “a temporarily successful stand against the Turks in June.”73 In July, he contacted British authorities in Iraq through his cousin, Sayyid Taha II, who at the time served as the governor of Rawanduz. Abdullah asked for British help against the Turks. The British turned down the request and ordered Sayyid Taha II to inform his cousin that the Iraqi government was not at war with Turkey. In August, Abdullah was defeated by the Turks. The Kurdish leader fled to Iraq accompanied by 200 families. With the Turkish government unleashing a campaign of massive repression against the Kurds in eastern Turkey, Simko became increasingly more concerned for his and his family’s safety and security. Already in winter 1925, the Kurdish chief had re-opened negotiations with the governor of Azerbaijan on the possibility of returning to Iran as soon as possible. In
73 Great Britain, Colonial Office, “Report by His Britannic Majesty’s Government to the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq for the Year 1925,” p. 22.
232
M. KIA
a letter to Major General Abdollah Khan Amir-Tahmasebi, the governorgeneral of Azerbaijan, Simko pleaded for a pardon and the permission to return to Iran so that he could serve the shah and his homeland: I want to return to the homeland and Chahriq, the land of my forefathers and ancestors, and I want to become involved in agricultural and cultivation pursuits and serve my shah and motherland. In the midst of these dark and bleak days in which I have been trapped, I would like to ask that you agree with my request. I swear to the Quran that I will prove my loyalty. I will allow my son and two hundred members of my tribe to remain with you as hostages. All I want from you is to allow me to return to Chahriq, I request that you restore me to the leadership of my clans, so that I can serve my homeland, and under the command of the shah regain the leadership of my tribe. As with other chiefs of the clans, or Omar Khan, I also request guarantees for my life and security. If I act in violation of my promises, the government can kill my brother, my son, and other hostages. After God, you are my only hope.74
In another letter to General Amir-Tahmasebi, Simko, who was by then desperate to leave Turkey, swore loyalty to Iran and implored from the governor-general of Azerbaijan to provide him with one last opportunity to demonstrate his fidelity to his motherland, Iran: I and my companions are Iranian, and our race is also Iranian, but, because of traitorous agents and those in charge who are well known to everyone, we were forced to leave our homeland and take residence in a foreign country. I want to prove that I have never intended to betray, and I have always been mindful of the independence and pride of my homeland.75
Simko’s desperate pleas to the Iranian authorities in Azerbaijan, and especially to the governor-general of Azerbaijan, worked. In May 1925, the newspapers in Tehran announced that Simko, his family, and 200 of his followers had returned to Iran.76 Simko met General Amir-Tahmasebi before proceeding to the locality assigned to him and his retinue in the 74 As quoted in Sirwan Khosrozadeh, “Vakavi-ye Avamel-e Moasser dar Shuresh-e Dovvom-e Simko (Mehr 1305),” in Mot¯ aleat-e T¯ arikhi-ye Jang, pp. 37–38. 75 Ibid., p. 38. 76 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, May 22, 1925, [E 3405/82/34], No. 283., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 290.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
233
rural district of Somai on the Iran-Turkey frontier.77 On 8 June, Reza Khan, who had assumed the post of Iran’s prime minister in October 1923, travelled to Azerbaijan and arrived in Tabriz on 12 June.78 Among those greeting the Iranian chief minister upon his arrival in the capital of Azerbaijan was Ahmad Agha, a brother of Simko who had accompanied the Shakak chief on his visit to northern Iraq in the autumn 1922. Simko, who feared for his life, begged off, pleading illness, and refused to travel to Tabriz.79 During his trip to Azerbaijan, Reza Khan visited Tabriz, Ardabil, the Aras Bridge, Maku, Khoy, and Salmas. When the prime minister arrived in western Azerbaijan, Simko “made his submission personally,” and was granted permission to settle in his native country of Chahriq together with a “body guard of armed men.”80 According to one source, during their meeting in Salmas, Reza Khan, who did not have “any sophisticated security,” opened the door of his automobile and Simko went in to the car to welcome the Iranian prime minister.81 Shaking hands with Simko, Reza Khan reportedly told the Shakak chief, “Simko you look so young. I have heard about you for a long time.”82 He also asked Simko “if he could write. Simko said no, but Reza Khan told him that he spoke Persian very well.”83 The same source claimed that Simko had planned to assassinate Reza Khan, but he could not carry out his plan.84 Another author, with strong anti-Pahlavi sentiments, claimed that when Reza Khan arrived in Salmas, Simko was waiting for him with 800 armed Kurds.85 Upon seeing the Iranian prime minister, Simko dismounted and greeted the visitor, but Reza Khan, who had become nervous about the gathering of such a 77 Ibid. 78 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, July 3, 1925, [E 4280/82/34], No. 361., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 303. 79 Ibid. 80 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, July 31, 1925, [E 4879/82/34], No. 416., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 311. 81 Interview with Sannar Mamedi living in Sweden, October 1993, as quoted in Susan Meiselas, Kurdistan in the Shadow of History, p. 116. 82 Ibid. 83 Ibid. 84 Ibid. 85 Hossein Makki, Tarikh-e Bist Sale-ye Iran, Volume 4, pp. 470–471. Makki’s account
of Simko’s life and career suffers from a number of mistakes and inaccuracies.
234
M. KIA
large number of armed Kurds, responded to him coolly and proceeded to enter the military barrack where he was staying. Realizing that he may have walked into a trap, Reza Khan spent an anxious evening in Salmas before departing the town the next day.86 The meeting between Iran’s prime minister and Simko took place between the two individuals without a third person present. What transpired between the two is not known, but the account of the meeting has been told and re-told in great detail by a significant number of sources, each with its own embellished and exaggerated spin. Though he had militarily defeated the Kurdish chief, Reza Khan recognized that Simko’s power and influence remained intact because he had survived repeated campaigns organized against him by the Iranian army. He had now returned to Iran, where he received a red-carpet reception by the very government that had tried to destroy him. According to a British intelligence report, Simko’s prestige among the Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan had been enhanced, and he continued to cherish the dream of establishing an autonomous Kurdish state with support from Britain, “the only power,” according to the Kurdish chief, that could “save the Kurdish race from being crushed to death between the Persian and the Turk.”87 The honeymoon between the Iranian government and the Kurdish chief proved to be short lived. In summer 1926, Simko began to organize his second revolt against the Iranian government. As with his first revolt, the second one also lacked any verifiable link to the “homogenizing Persian-first” policies of Reza Shah, who had only recently crowned himself as the shah of Iran. The available evidence suggests that there were both internal and external causes for Simko’s rebellion, but none of them indicate any connection with the educational or cultural policies of the Iranian state. In fact, it seems that Simko’s anger and rage was more directed against the growing power and influence of the fellow Shakak leader, Omar Khan, rather than any governmental policy or action. There is also an indication that Simko was most worried about the rapprochement between the governments of Iran and Turkey as demonstrated by their new treaty of friendship.
86 Ibid., p. 471. 87 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, July 3, 1925, [E 4280/82/34], No. 361., in Iran
Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 303.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
235
The concrete events that triggered Simko’s revolt are murky. We know that the Kurdish chief had received a message from the commander of the northwestern division that he had to immediately disband his small army or else expect severe repercussions for his disobedience. Simko rejected the ultimatum, and, when summoned to a meeting with the local army commander stationed in Salmas, arrived at the gathering “with an escort of several hundred cavalry,” and refused “to dismiss them when told to do so.”88 Simko’s defiant attitude toward the central government and its military authorities, impressed Kurdish tribal chiefs of western Azerbaijan, who began to display signs of restlessness, manifested in particular by their refusal to pay their taxes.89 Though Simko continued to disobey the orders issued by government authorities in Azerbaijan, and although the British intelligence sources both in Iraq and Iran were reporting that the Kurdish chief intended to stage a tribal rebellion, the Iranian government did not take any action against him. Simko’s troubles were not confined to his tense and volatile relationship with representatives of the Iranian government in Azerbaijan. The arrival of Simko in western Azerbaijan had also ignited an intense conflict over the leadership of the Kurdish tribes of the region between Simko and the Shakak chief, Omar Khan. The cause of “the quarrel between the two was Omar Khan’s refusal to acknowledge Simko as his chief.”90 During Simko’s absence in eastern Anatolia and Iraq, Iranian authorities had treated Omar Khan “as the paramount Kurdish chief in Azerbaijan.”91 Naturally, Omar Khan resented being outshined and stripped of that position “by the returned rebel.”92 When fighting erupted between the followers of the two Kurdish chiefs, the military authorities tried “to patch up a peace” with an understanding that if peaceful resolution
88 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, September 12, 1925, [E 5914/82/34], No. 482., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 320. See also, Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, October 21, 1925, [E 6931/82/34], No. 552., in Iran Political Diaries 1881– 1965. Volume 7, p. 333. 89 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, October 21, 1925, [E 6931/82/34], No. 552., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 333. 90 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 14, 1926, [E 773/95/34], No. 28., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 456. 91 Ibid. 92 Ibid.
236
M. KIA
proved impossible, they would support Omar Khan.93 One of the reasons for their support was that shortly after his arrival in Iran, Simko had returned to his favorite vocation, namely plundering villages to feed his followers, who according to the Shakak chief, were “on the verge of starvation.”94 Though the local military authorities in Azerbaijan favored supporting Omar Khan, the minister of war, General Abdollah Khan Amir-Tahmasebi, threw his support behind Simko because, as the former commander of the northwestern division, he was personally responsible for securing the Kurdish chief’s return.95 Thus, when Omar Khan collected a significant number of his followers with the intention of attacking Simko, instructions were sent from Tehran that Omar Khan had “to be summoned to Tabriz.”96 When Omar Khan refused to comply with instructions from the government, he was attacked by Simko, who received support from “a contingent of government troops.”97 The attack by Simko and the local army units forced Omar Khan to flee and seek refuge with the Harki tribe, “who handed him over to Simko on promise of pardon.”98 Simko, in turn, delivered Omar Khan to the military authorities, who imprisoned him in Tabriz.99 The incarceration of Omar Khan, who had been loyal to the Iranian government since the suppression of Simko in August 1922, caused “considerable apprehension in Azerbaijan” regarding the government’s policy toward Simko.100 More eyebrows were raised when the ministry of war removed the military commander of the Salmas district because the Iranian colonel had advocated “the limitation of Simko’s liberty.”101 Even more shocking was the report that the new shah had sent a “khalat ” (robe
93 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, December 17, 1925, [E 95/95/34], No. 670., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 347. 94 Ibid. 95 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 14, 1926, [E 773/95/34], No. 28., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 456. 96 Ibid. 97 Ibid. 98 Ibid. 99 Ibid. 100 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, February 10, 1926, [E 1443/95/34], No. 80., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 462. 101 Ibid.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
237
of honor) to Simko, and that the Kurdish chief was “collecting money from the Kurds, nominally to send a return present” to Reza Shah.102 These interactions between the government and Simko were locally interpreted as an indication that the government was afraid of the Kurdish chief.103 The central government had several reasons for its cautious, and at times supportive, approach toward Simko. First, after his return to Iran, Simko had repeatedly expressed his loyalty, not only to the Iranian government, but especially to the person of Reza Khan. For example, in a meeting with a chief of the police in western Azerbaijan, Simko “disclaimed all connection with the Turks” and proclaimed his devotion to Iran’s prime minister “Reza Khan Pahlavi.”104 On a few occasions, he even went one step further and provided military support to the Iranian army in its operations against fellow Kurdish chiefs. As long as he expressed his loyalty to Reza Khan and joined the Iranian forces in their military campaigns against unruly Kurdish tribes, the Iranian authorities were willing to turn a blind eye to his activities, including his raids against “Kurdish villages, which had neglected to show him proper degree of subservience.”105 Second, for much of the year 1925, the Iranian army was busy suppressing revolts by Turkmen tribes in northern Khorasan and Lur tribal groups in western Iran. The central government lacked sufficient military power to focus on Simko and his supporters. Additionally, plans for transfer of power from the Qajar monarchy to the new Pahlavi dynasty were well underway by the summer 1925. Reza Khan did not wish to mar the festivities surrounding his ascendency to the throne of Iran by a risky military campaign in the northwestern corner of the country. Any campaign against Simko could be construed as a reminder that, though he had defeated the Kurdish chief, Reza Khan had failed to pacify him fully. Finally, the delay in a campaign to punish Simko may be partially explained by the fact that the Iranian government was in the process of concluding its negotiations for a peace treaty with the Turkish government in Ankara. The conclusion of an agreement between the two
102 Ibid. 103 Ibid. 104 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, November 19, 1925, [E 7535/82/34], No. 608., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 340. 105 Ibid.
238
M. KIA
neighbors obligated Turkey to shut down Simko’s escape route in the west. After long and protracted negotiations, Iran and Turkey signed a treaty of security and friendship on April 22, 1926. The treaty signed by the Iranian prime minister, Mohammad Ali Forughi, and the Turkish ambassador in Tehran, Memduh Shevket, signaled the beginning of a new era in the relationship between the two neighbors, culminating in Reza Shah’s visit to Turkey in 1934. According to the terms of the treaty, each country guaranteed its neutrality “in the event of an attack by a third power on the other party.”106 Both countries promised not to participate in any “financial, economic, or political agreement with other powers which may be inimical to the other party,” and “to preserve by force of arms the strict neutrality of its territory against any power waging war against the other party.”107 Both the Turkish and Iranian governments also made a commitment “to prevent the formation” within their borders “of any organization of which the design” was “to disturb the peace of the other country” and to “take all necessary steps to restrain the tribes each on its own side of the common frontier from any movement likely to endanger the peace of the other’s territory.”108 Finally, both countries “agreed to negotiate commercial, customs, postal, and telegraph conventions within six months.”109 Once Reza Shah had seized the throne in April 1926, and shortly after Iran had signed the treaty of security and friendship with Turkey in the same month, the central government in Tehran began to intensify its pressure on Simko to disarm.
Simko and Salar al-Dowleh The eruption of a new season of conflict between the central government and Simko corresponded with the appearance of the Qajar prince, Salar al-Dowleh (1881–1961), on the Iran-Iraq frontier. The third son of the Qajar monarch, Mozaffar al-Din Shah (r. 1896–1907), Abolfath 106 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, June 4, 1926, [E 4065/95/34], No. 268., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 485. See also, Rouhollah K. Ramazani, The Foreign Policy of Iran, 1500–1941, (Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1966), p. 270. For the full text of the treaty, see, League of Nations Treaty Series, CVI, 261–265. 107 Ibid. 108 Ibid. 109 Ibid.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
239
Mirza known by his title, Salar al-Dowleh, had a long and uninspiring record of abortive and ruinous revolts against the central government, first in 1907, and again in 1911.110 In 1907, during the reign of his brother, Mohammad Ali Shah, the Qajar prince “claimed the throne, came out in open revolt, and was finally defeated and captured after a pitched battle lasting three days” at Nahavand in western Iran.111 In July 1911, when his deposed brother returned to Iran to reclaim his throne, Salar al-Dowleh staged his second revolt with backing from the chiefs of the Kurdish Kalhor tribe of Kermanshah. After the deposed shah’s army was defeated near Tehran, Salar al-Dowleh persisted in his campaign. Seizing the provinces of Kermanshah and Kurdistan, the young prince proclaimed himself the shah and minted coins with his name inscribed as “al-Sultan Abolfath Shah Qajar.”112 In late September 1911, the rebel prince advanced eastward toward the capital, reaching Saveh, roughly seventy-six miles or 122 kilometers southwest of Tehran, where he was defeated by a government force.113 The prince, did not, however, give up. In May 1912, he raised an army and marched from Kermanshah toward Tehran, but he was defeated, yet once again. One of the Iranian army officers, who participated in the campaign against Salar al-Dowleh at the time, was Reza Khan or the future Reza Shah. Among the casualties of the war against the Qajar prince was the Armenian chief of Tehran’s police force, Yeprem Khan (Efrem Khan). In 1925, after a thirteen-year respite, Salar al-Dowleh returned to western Iran through Iraq determined to stage yet another rebellion against Iran’s central government. Though he may have entertained a dream of restoring the Qajar monarchy, the ultimate objective of the firebrand prince was more immediate and personal. When banished in 1912 for his rebellions, Salar al-Dowleh had received a handsome pension from the Iranian government in return for a promise that he would cease and desist from staging another revolt against the government. As an extravagant person living in Switzerland, however, the prince was unable to 110 For the life and career of Salar al-Dowleh, see, Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), pp. 350–351. See also, Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Volume 1, pp. 48– 50. See also, Willem Floor, Salar al-Dowleh: A Delusional Prince & Wannabe Shah, (Washington, DC: Mage Publishers, 2018). 111 Edward G. Browne, The Persian Revolution 1905–1909, p. 141. 112 Mehdi Bamdad, Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran, Volume 1, p. 50. 113 Ahmad Kasravi, Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azerbaijan, pp. 188–194.
240
M. KIA
live in accordance with his means, so he contracted numerous debts.114 With his monthly expenditures far exceeding his income, and his accumulated debts reaching a new height, Salar al-Dowleh left his retreat and his numerous creditors in Switzerland and proceeded to Iran. Once he had arrived in Iran, Salar al-Dowleh fomented a revolt by appealing to the Kurdish tribes of Kermanshah and Kurdistan with whom he enjoyed a close relationship. The principal objective of organizing a revolt against the Iranian government was, however, to importune the British government to bring pressure to bear on the Iranian government to pay him more money and settle his debts.115 In other words, by making himself a nuisance and a security concern, Salar al-Dowleh intended to compel the Iranian authorities to increase his pension and erase his debts. For Salar al-Dowleh, who lacked any ideology or political objectives, staging tribal rebellions was a profitable business that settled his private affairs and restored his financial health. In this scheme, the Kurdish tribes played the role of a convenient tool. Their rebellion caused anxiety in Tehran and forced the British and Iranian authorities to address the Qajar prince’s financial concerns. In January 1925, the Qajar prince established himself in Damascus, where he contacted British officials and requested that they intercede on his behalf. He hoped that the British could convince the Iranian government to restore his pension and make their payments on a regular basis. To deny Salar al-Dowleh a pretext to stage a revolt, the British, through their ambassador in Tehran, approached the Iranian prime minister, Reza Khan Pahlavi, and inquired about the status of the prince and his pension. Clearly annoyed by the British intercession on behalf of the rebellious prince, Reza Khan told the British ambassador that Salar al-Dowleh was “lucky to get his pension and could not expect more.”116 Further, the Iranian prime minister warned that “if the Prince attempted another of his foolhardy expeditions, it would probably be cut off altogether.”117 As early as the summer 1925, the agents of the Qajar prince had linked up with Simko to explore the possibility of the Kurdish chief joining 114 Persia Annual Report. 1925, Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, April 8, 1926, Confidential (13017), [E 2635/2635/34], No. 186., in Iran Political Diaries. Volume 7, pp. 399–400. 115 Ibid., p, 400. 116 Ibid. 117 Ibid.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
241
Salar al-Dowleh in what would amount to the restoration of the Qajar monarchy. Though Salar al-Dowleh’s campaign in the spring and summer 1925 unraveled, the Qajar prince refused to abandon hope. Living in Syria and Lebanon under French surveillance, Salar al-Dowleh managed to skip town in disguise and found his way once again to the IranIraq border during May–June 1926. By late summer, the British sources were reporting that Salar al-Dowleh, who was in Owraman, had once again established contacts with Simko.118 He also joined Jafar Sultan (Sardar Moa’tazed), the most powerful tribal chief of Owraman, who had been for some time awaiting for a favorable opportunity to revolt against the Iranian government.119 The Qajar prince and the Kurdish chief appealed to the Kurdish tribes of western Iran, especially those in Owraman, Marivan, and Kermanshah, to rally to their flag and rise against Reza Shah.120 When the news of the rebellion spread, some Kurdish tribes of western Iran and the outlying regions of Iraq assembled an army, and a Kurdish committee was created for joint actions in Iranian territory.121 The committee consisted of several prominent Kurdish leaders from northern Iraq and western Iran, including Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji and Simko.122 Attacks against government troops commenced on a wide front stretching from Posht-e Kuh, in the western-most part of the historical Luristan, all the way to central areas of Iranian Azerbaijan.123 The direction of the main attack by the rebels was the Baghdad–Hamadan highway, with a special focus on capturing Kermanshah, which came under direct attack by the rebels. In September, as the rebel army commenced its attacks, a cousin of Simko named Taj al-Din met with the Qajar prince. By October 1926, the rumor had spread that Salar al-Dowleh himself was planning to travel to western Azerbaijan in order to meet with Simko.
118 Willem Floor, Salar al-Dowleh: A Delusional Prince & Wannabe Shah, p. 140. 119 Persia Annual Report. 1926, Confidential (13186), [E 870/870/34], No. 41.,
Clive to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 26, 1927, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965, Volume 7, p. 597. For Jafar Sultan, see, British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), First Edition, p. 165. 120 Ibid. 121 M. S. Lazarev, Kurdistan i Kurdski vopros, p. 86. 122 Ibid. 123 Ibid.
242
M. KIA
As part of their offensive, Salar al-Dowleh and Jafar Sultan advanced toward Sanandaj, the capital of the present-day province of Kurdistan, and Ravansar, in the present-day province of Kermanshah in western Iran.124 After defeating a small government force, however, the campaign fizzled quickly. Government reinforcements arrived in time to block the advance of the rebel army toward Sanandaj. The government troops were “altogether too formidable a force for Jafar Sultan’s men, so, after looting some villages on the Sanandaj plain, they returned to their own country to quarrel over the spoils, Salar al-Dowleh going with them.”125 Recognizing the hopelessness of his military adventures, Salar alDowleh retired into Iraq, where he was detained promptly “by Iraqi police and removed to Baghdad.”126 The British feared that if released in Iraq, the penniless and seditious prince would make an attempt to reach the Iranian frontier in order to organize another rebellion against the Iranian government.127 After protracted negotiations, Tehran agreed to pay Salar al-Dowleh’s debts and provide him a subsistence allowance. Once his financial issues had been settled, the Qajar prince left Baghdad for Haifa in Palestine on June 23, 1927.128 By then, Salar al-Dowleh’s rebellion had disintegrated; the Kurdish population of western Iran had shown little appetite for fighting and dying in the name of Qajar restoration. Almost simultaneously with Salar al-Dowleh’s revolt, the Pizhdar Kurds attacked the Sardasht district in western Azerbaijan. The principal objective of the Pizhdar attack was to regain possession of their grazing land in Sardasht, which Iranian authorities had confiscated.129 After capturing and disarming a government detachment of 400 men,
124 Persia Annual Report, 1926, Confidential (13186), [E 870/870/34], No. 41., Clive to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 26, 1927, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 597. 125 Ibid. 126 Great Britain, Colonial Office, Report by His Britannic Majesty’s Government to
the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq For the Year 1927, p. 61. 127 Ibid. 128 Ibid. 129 Persia Annual Report, 1926, Confidential (13186), [E 870/870/34], No. 41., Clive to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 26, 1927, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 597.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
243
the Pizhdars seized Sardasht in August 1926.130 From Sardasht they advanced northward toward Savojbolagh “creating considerable panic there and in Tabriz.”131 The tribes in the region, however, remained loyal to the Iranian government, and when troops arrived from Tabriz, the Pizhdars eventually retired to their homes.132 Salar al-Dowleh’s rebellion in 1926, the simultaneous incursion by the Pizhdar Kurds, as well as the lackluster performance of the Iranian army units, may have provided the necessary impetus for Simko to revolt against the government. As early as April 1926, reports indicated that Simko had “fallen out with the military authorities in Azerbaijan owing to the arrest of one of his subordinate leaders” within the Shakak tribe.133 A skirmish occurred between Kurds and troops at the time of the arrest, and some Kurds were wounded.134 The same reports also claimed that Simko’s father-in-law had arrived in Salmas with 200 refugees from Turkey, which was rumored to be carrying out “a deliberate policy of massacring Kurds in the area south of Van.”135 Less than a month later, in May, military authorities in Azerbaijan arrested the chiefs of the Kurdish Harki tribe, Haji Agha and Haji Hamzeh, both friends and allies of Simko.136 In August, Simko formed an alliance with the Begzade Kurds based in the region of Somai-Baradoost. The alliance was joined by the Harki whose territory lay west of Urumiyeh, in close proximity to both the Shakak and the Begzade. As in the past, the Shakak and the Harki began a campaign of raiding non-Kurdish villages, which inevitably brought them into direct conflict with government forces.137 Although 1,700 to 2,000 Iranian troops were concentrated in the Salmas-Urumiyeh area, the active fighting against Simko was carried out by his rival, Omar
130 Ibid., pp. 597–598. 131 Ibid., p. 598. 132 Ibid. 133 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, April 8, 1926, [E 2634/95/34], No. 178., in
Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 474. 134 Ibid. 135 Ibid. 136 Loraine to Chamberlain, Tehran, May 7, 1926, [E 3193/95/34], No. 223., Intelligence Summary No. 9, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 479. 137 Persia Annual Report, 1926, Clive to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 26, 1927, [E 870/870/34], No. 41., in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 598.
244
M. KIA
Khan, who had assumed the command of a force of pro-government Kurds and Turkic Shahsevens.138 Even before the battle was joined, successful scheming and secret negotiations with some of Simko’s supporters ensured their defection and the defeat and downfall of the Shakak chief.139 Sections of the Harki, who had supported Simko in the past, defected and joined government forces.140 When Omar Khan, supported by government troops, began to advance against Simko’s operational base northwest of Urumiyeh on 17 October, two of Simko’s lieutenants also abandoned him.141 There was nothing left for Simko to do but to flee. During the military operations against Simko, the Turkish military attaché in Iran accompanied Iranian troops, and “acted as liaison officer with the commander of the Turkish forces,” who “had undertaken to block the passes by which Simko might flee into Turkey.”142
End of Simko On October 22, 1926, the Iranian “military authorities in Tabriz announced that after three days’ fighting, from the 17th to the 19th October government troops had completely defeated Simko’s forces” and that the Kurdish chief himself “was a fugitive across the border.”143 According to a British report, however, the truth was that “when it was seen that Simko was receiving no help from any quarter,” his adherents turned against him and they had joined his tribal rival Omar Khan.144 Regardless of which version one accepts, there is no denying that, with the disappearance of Simko, the situation in western Azerbaijan rapidly calmed down.145
138 Ibid. 139 Ibid. 140 Ibid. 141 Ibid. 142 Ibid. 143 Nicolson to Chamberlain, Tehran, November 4, 1926, [E 6476/95/34], No. 542.,
in Iran Political Diaries. Volume 7, p. 516. 144 Ibid. 145 Ibid.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
245
At the time, it was generally believed that after his defeat, Simko would take refuge with Sayyid Taha II at Rawanduz, in northeastern Iraq.146 Sandwiched between Turkey and Iran, Simko together “with about a hundred followers” fled to Iraq via Turkish territory, and “crossed the border south of Nehri into the Rawanduz district” in late October 1926.147 By then, Iranian authorities had occupied the villages he owned in Somai, in western Azerbaijan.148 The revolts of Salar al-Dowleh and Simko created an atmosphere of “suspicious irritation” in Tehran.149 These suspicions embittered the new monarch, Reza Shah, who was convinced that both the Qajar prince and the Kurdish rebel were “deliberately being assisted by the British authorities in Iraq as part of a policy of Kurdish autonomy under British protection.”150 The Iranian government “applied for Simko’s extradition,” but Baghdad did not consent, because “the extradition of political offenders” was not “permitted under the Extradition Law of Iraq.”151 At the close of 1926, the question of the fate of Simko was still under discussion.152 In an attempt to hasten a decision, the Iraqi authorities agreed to allow an Iranian government official to meet Simko in Iraq to communicate to him Tehran’s terms for his pardon.153 Though the Iraqi government and the British authorities in the country continued to claim that they wished to remove Simko from Iraq, Tehran and Baghdad failed to reach an agreement on the fate of the Kurdish chief. In a report to the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq, the
146 Ibid. 147 Great Britain, Colonial Office, “Report by His Britannic Majesty’s Government to
the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq For the Year 1926”, p. 27. 148 Clive to Chamberlain, Tehran, November 20, 1926, [E 6828/95/34], No. 559.,
in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 7, p. 518. 149 Persia Annual Report. 1926, Clive to Chamberlain, Tehran, January 26, 1927, Confidential (13186), [E 870/870/34], No. 41., in The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958. Volume 6, p. 655. 150 Ibid. 151 Great Britain, Colonial Office, “Report by His Britannic Majesty’s Government to
the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq For the Year 1926”, p. 27. 152 Ibid. 153 Ibid.
246
M. KIA
British authorities stated that, at the beginning of 1927, they hoped that the Iranian government “would adopt a suggestion which had been made in Tehran that they should send a special representative to meet Simko on the border and discuss terms with him and that such a meeting might lead to his return” to Iran.154 These hopes were, however, “disappointed and no such meeting took place.”155 The Iranian government “offered to pardon Simko if he would agree to live peacefully on lands which they would give him outside the Kurdish districts,” but, as Simko “insisted on being permitted to return to his old tribal area, this offer produced no results.”156 He consequently remained in the Rawanduz district of Iraq where, according to the same report, he continued to be “a menace to good order on both sides of the frontier.”157 In May 1928, Simko departed Iraq for Turkey. A British report stated that “the embarrassment, which had been caused to Perso-Iraq relations by Simko taking refuge in Iraqi territory in October 1926, was removed by his voluntary departure from Iraq into Turkey.”158 The Kurdish chief, however, returned to Iraq “a little over a year later.”159 Late in July 1929, Simko crossed the Turkey-Iraq border with about fifty followers and established himself in a village a few miles south of the frontier in the Rawanduz district.160 Anxious to avoid any embarrassment or conflict with the governments of Turkey and Iran, the Iraqi authorities informed Simko that “his presence in Iraq could only be permitted if he
154 Great Britain, Colonial Office, Report by His Britannic Majesty’s Government to the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq For the Year 1928, pp. 61–62. 155 Ibid., p. 62. 156 Ibid. 157 Ibid. 158 Great Britain, Colonial Office, “Report by His Majesty’s Government in the United
Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland to the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq for the Year 1928,” (Colonial No. 44/1929) (London: Printed and Published by His Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1929), p. 40. See also, Wadie Jwaideh, Kurdish National Movement Its Origins and Development, p. 143. 159 Great Britain, Colonial Office, “Report by His Majesty’s Government in the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland to the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq for the Year 1929,” (Colonial No. 55), p. 44. 160 Ibid.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
247
consented to reside wherever the Iraqi government” had designated.161 The Kurdish chief was also invited to meet Iraqi officials in Rawanduz, but he declined the invitation.162 Instead, Simko withdrew once again into Turkish territory, and he remained there until the end of the year.163 Despite the military victory they had scored against Simko, the Iranian authorities had concluded that they could not restore law and order to the Kurdish-populated regions of northwestern Iran as long as Simko remained alive and active. In 1929, Simko received a letter sent from Tabriz, offering him a full pardon and the governorship of Oshnaviyeh, a town in close proximity to the Iran-Iraq border.164 Accompanied by 300 of his supporters, Simko returned to Iran in July 1930.165 Once he had arrived at Oshnaviyeh, Simko was “given command of the garrison and invested as the governor.”166 The Iranian authorities also put a house “at his disposal, and special Persian clothes were issued to him and his followers.”167 According to a British report, the Kurdish chief was invited to Tehran, but he turned down the invitation.168 For three days after his return, Simko received the local Kurdish tribal chiefs who paid their respects and congratulated him on his new position. Meanwhile the garrison was secretly increased and the Iranian authorities “laid their plan.”169 On 18 July, Simko expected to welcome General Hassan Moqaddam, the Iranian army commander, who had expressed a desire to meet the Kurdish chief in person. Ironically, Brigadier General Moqaddam, formerly known as Zafar al-Dowleh, was the very army commander Simko
161 Ibid. 162 Ibid. 163 Ibid. 164 A. M. Hamilton. Road Through Kurdistan: Travels in Northern Iraq, (London:
Faber and Faber Limited, 1937), p. 111. 165 Persia, Annual Report, 1930. Confidential [E 3067/3067/34], No. 276, May 22, 1931, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 8, p. 645. 166 A. M. Hamilton, Road Through Kurdistan, p. 111. 167 Ibid. 168 Persia, Annual Report, 1930. Confidential (13929), [E 3067/3067/34], No. 276., Clive to Henderson, Tehran, May 22, 1931, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 8, p. 645. 169 A. M. Hamilton, Road Through Kurdistan, p. 111.
248
M. KIA
had defeated at Tasuj, north of Lake Urumiyeh, in March 1921, a humiliation the Iranian commander could not have forgotten. After all, he had saved his life by abandoning his troops and seeking refuge on the ship Admiral. Following the established tradition, Simko, Khorshid Agha, a chief of the Harki, and a group of their bodyguards went to the outskirts of Oshnaviyeh to welcome the Iranian general, but after a long wait they were informed by a messenger that the meeting had to be postponed because the car transporting the Iranian general had broken down.170 Accompanied by Khorshid Agha, Simko rode back into town unaware that, in his absence, the roof tops of homes surrounding his residence had been occupied by Iranian soldiers armed with rifles and machine guns.171 As Simko and Khorshid Agha approached the Kurdish chief’s residence, the Iranian troops waiting in ambush opened fire, mowing down the Shakak leader, Khorshid Agha, and several other Kurdish chiefs accompanying them.172 Iranian officers responsible for killing Simko then took photographs of the Kurdish chief’s body riddled with bullets. The plot hatched by Iranian officials to murder Simko eerily resembled the ambush set by the Shakak chief to kill the Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun in March 1918. On July 21, 1930, Iran’s ministry of war announced the defeat and killing of “the Kurdish brigand leader Simko,” who, in 1922, had caused serious disturbances in Iranian Kurdistan.173 The announcement of Simko’s death was followed by articles in Persian newspapers that Simko had for the fourth time, asked for forgiveness from the Iranian government, and had promised to report to the headquarters of the Iranian army to prove the sincerity of his repentance, but then he had broken his promise. He was then attached to Oshnaviyeh by three
170 Ibid. 171 Ibid. See also, Persia, Annual Report, 1930, Clive to Henderson, Tehran, May
22, 1931, Confidential (13929), [E 3067/3067/34], No. 276, May 22, 1931, in Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. Volume 8, p. 645. See also, D. K. Fieldhouse, Kurds, Arabs and Britons the Memoir of Wallace Lyon in Iraq, p. 112. 172 Ibid. 173 The Times of London, July 22, 1930 as quoted in Oriente Moderno, Anno 10, Nr.
8 (August 1930), Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, p. 380.
8
IN SEARCH OF A NEW PATRON: SIMKO SANDWICHED …
249
columns and killed with many of his followers.174 The Iranian government had gotten its revenge on a Kurdish leader it viewed as a lethal threat, and the international press gloated. On July 22, 1930, the Times of London printed a report filed on 21 July, in Tehran, announcing “the defeat and death of the notorious Shakak Kurdish brigand chief, Simko,” who had “caused great trouble in Persian Kurdistan in 1922,” and after that had “marauded in the Turkish and Iraqi sections of Kurdistan.”175 As expected, the treacherous murder of Simko turned him into a martyr for the Kurdish cause.
174 Le Messager de Téhéran, July 23, 1930 as quoted in Oriente Moderno, Anno 10, Nr. 8 (August 1930), Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, p. 380. 175 The Times of London, p. 13, July 22, 1930.
CHAPTER 9
Conclusion
A popular joke in the former Soviet Union declared that “the future is certain; it is only the past that is unpredictable.” This joke reminds one of George Orwell’s famous statement that “who controls the past, controls the future,” and “who controls the present controls the past.”1 The old Russian joke as well as Orwell’s statement points to attempts by totalitarian states to manipulate and control the historical narrative and employ it for their own political objectives. History is a delicate and fragile creature and can easily be manipulated, used, and abused by governments, political movements, politicians, and ideologues. The battle over the narrative can at times become as important as the actual conflict over power. As with many other personages in Iranian history, the story of Simko has also been subjected to this game of political football. Those who believed that Simko posed a direct threat to the national unity and territorial integrity of the Iranian state denounced the Kurdish chief as a violent and brutal brigand, a robber and a murderer, who caused immeasurable destruction, chaos, and human suffering in northwestern Iran. Highlighting Simko’s violence and brutality before, during, and after the First World War allowed these authors to ignore the underlying causes of Simko’s revolt. Thus, they failed to transcend the gory details and answer the fundamental question; why did Simko revolt in the 1 George Orwell, Nineteen Eighty-Four, (London: Penguin Books, 2013), p. 40.
© The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4_9
251
252
M. KIA
first place and what were the reasons for a Kurdish tribal chief to resort to a proto-nationalist discourse in order to justify his rebellion against the authority of Iran’s central government. To the direct opposite, those who advocated some form of autonomy or independence for the Kurds appropriated Simko as a national hero who stood up to the injustices perpetrated by Iran’s central government. In their attempt to manufacture a national icon out of a frontier warlord, these writers reduced the complex and multi-faceted causes for Simko’s rebellion to a reaction by the Kurdish chief against the Persianist policies of Reza Shah the founder of the Pahlavi dynasty. Such an analysis faces several problems. First, Simko’s revolt commenced in late 1918 when an ethnically and linguistically non-Persian Turkic dynasty, namely the Qajars, ruled Iran. Second, when Simko staged his rebellion, Reza Khan, a non-Persian Mazandarani, was a junior officer in Iran’s Cossack division without any real power or authority. There was no inkling of any pro-Persian policy propagated by the weak and inept Qajar state, which could not defend its own capital, let alone devise cultural policies for the Kurds of northwestern Iran. Third, at the time that Simko’s revolt was spreading in northwestern Iran, Reza Khan did not have the authority or the power to impose any Persianization policies. The best outcome the central government could hope for at the time was to disarm powerful tribal groups and impose its nominal authority over the tribal zones of the country. Though later in his reign as Reza Shah Pahlavi, he advocated the supremacy of Persian language as a means of creating a unified nation-state, in 1922, there was no trace of such policies. Instead of using Simko as a means of promoting an ideological agenda, I have tried to present an in-depth account of the Kurdish chief’s ideas and political career without constructing a narrative that would either dehumanize or glorify him. Without discounting his violent and destructive attacks against urban and rural communities, I have tried to understand why Simko staged his revolt, what forces were at work in his immediate periphery to create the pre-conditions for a massive rebellion, and why he initially succeeded but eventually failed. In this book, I have discussed Simko’s life and political career in the context of historic events that transformed Iran and its immediate neighbors to the north and the west in the first three decades of the twentieth century. Within this framework, I have divided Simko’s life into several distinct periods. The first period extends from 1905, when he emerged as the head of the Avdoi branch of the Shakak tribe, to 1914, when the First
9
CONCLUSION
253
World War commenced. For Simko, the year 1905 proved to be a turning point. Iranian authorities in Tabriz treacherously murdered his brother, Jafar Agha, and shortly thereafter, in 1907, his father died in an Ottoman prison in Istanbul. During this period, Simko became increasingly sandwiched between the Ottoman Turks, who invaded western Azerbaijan in 1905 and the Russians who occupied large portions of the province after 1909. Enraged by the betrayal of Iranian authorities, Simko initially sought the patronage and protection of the Ottoman Turks, who had invaded western Azerbaijan in October 1905. He and a group of his followers fled to eastern Anatolia, where they settled near Van. Simko’s alliance with the Turks did not last very long, however, and he returned to Iran in 1907. In the months immediately after his return to Iran, Simko acted as the lieutenant and protégé of Eqbal al-Saltaneh, the Khan of Maku. In the battle between the pro-shah and pro-constitution forces that erupted after Mohammad Ali Shah attacked and destroyed the Iranian parliament on June 23, 1908, Simko joined the Khan of Maku, who called on the tribes of western Azerbaijan to throw their support behind their sovereign. Simko and a group of Kurdish chiefs responded positively to Eqbal al-Saltaneh’s call. They raised a large army and slaughtered the proconstitution forces in Salmas and Khoy. In return for his loyalty to the shah and his participation in the suppression of constitutionalists, Simko was appointed governor of Qotur, a rural district on the border between the Ottoman Empire and Iran. After Russia invaded and occupied Azerbaijan in 1909, Simko gradually emerged as a stalwart client of Czarist authorities and went as far as to stage raids and organize tribal rebellions against Ottoman Turks, which he did with Russian backing. In return for his services to Russia, the governor-general of the Caucasus decorated Simko and appointed him the governor of the frontier district of Somai in western Azerbaijan. Through his Russian contacts, Simko also established a close working relationship with prominent pro-Russia Kurdish leaders, including Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan and Sayyid Taha II. It was through his contacts and interactions with highly educated, well-travelled, and politically experienced Kurdish leaders from the Ottoman Empire that Simko became acquainted with Kurdish nationalist ideas. The second period of Simko’s life overlapped with the tumultuous years of the First World War. It began in late 1914 and ended in late 1918. This period intensified the Kurdish chief’s nationalistic sentiments,
254
M. KIA
which were increasingly directed against Assyrian and Armenian Christians. At the beginning of the war, Simko served Russia as a reliable client. When the Russian forces evacuated Azerbaijan in early January 1915, however, Simko switched his loyalty, this time from the Russian Czar to the Young Turks. He utilized the Ottoman invasion of northwestern Iran as an opportunity to plunder and massacre the Assyrian and Armenian communities of Salmas. He and his men also lay in ambush at the Qotur Pass and attacked the Armenian refugees who were fleeing Ottoman territory. For Simko, the Assyrians and Armenians of northwestern Iran posed an existential threat to the security and privileges of Kurdish tribal elites of the region. In his view, the establishment of an independent Assyrian or an Armenian state contested the autonomy of Kurdish tribal life and reduced the Kurds to the status of a subservient group. After the Russians re-occupied Azerbaijan in the winter and spring 1915, Czarist authorities banished Simko to Tiflis because of his collaboration with the Ottoman Turks. In 1916, Simko returned to western Azerbaijan as a paid agent of Russia. After the collapse of the Czarist Empire and the withdrawal of Russian forces from Iran in late 1917, Simko worked for a short time with British military intelligence officers, who were endeavoring to buttress the Black Sea-Baghdad line of defense, especially in south Caucasus and Azerbaijan, against an Ottoman Turkish invasion. In this effort, the British tried to induce Armenian and Assyrian groups to work with Simko in order to defend northwestern Iran against the impending Turkish attack. Though he supposedly joined the Britishbacked alliance, Simko undermined the united front against the Turks by murdering the Assyrian leader, Mar Shimun, in March 1918. The assassination of Mar Shimun touched off a deadly civil war between the Christian (i.e., Assyrians and Armenians) and the Muslim communities (i.e., Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks) of the region. Though armed Assyrians captured his stronghold at Chahriq, Simko managed to escape with a group of his followers to Khoy, where he continued to attack and slaughter Assyrian refugees. The Ottoman invasion of northwestern Iran in summer 1918 allowed Simko to resume his attacks against the Assyrian and Armenian communities in Salmas and Urumiyeh. The Turkish invaders backed by local Iranian officials and Kurdish chiefs, including Simko, chased the Assyrian and Armenian Christians out of their towns and villages. The expulsion of the Christian population of Urumiyeh and Salmas districts transformed the demographic composition of western Azerbaijan in favor of the Kurds and Azerbaijani Turks.
9
CONCLUSION
255
With the disappearance of armed Assyrian and Armenian bands, Simko emerged as the most powerful local leader in northwestern Iran. The third period of Simko’s life, extending from late 1918 to late summer 1922, witnessed the eruption of Simko’s revolt and his attempt to establish an independent Kurdish state. The end of the First World War in late October 1918 found western Azerbaijan free of foreign occupation forces and stripped of its Assyrian and Armenian communities. After four years of intense fighting and violence, foreign armies and their allies had vanished, while the Iranian government remained as impotent and feeble as before. The disappearance of the Ottoman and Russian armies created a vacuum that the Qajar state could not fill. Simko moved into the void. The end of the Great War ushered in a new chapter in Simko’s political career. The disappearance of foreign armies and the complete absence of Iranian governmental authority convinced Simko that he could create an independent Kurdish state in western Azerbaijan. With support from the remnants of the disbanded Ottoman army units, Simko created a strong and well-equipped military force that could prevent the return of Assyrian and Armenian refugees. His refurbished army also allowed him to beat back the badly organized and poorly trained armies sent against him by the Iranian government. In his attempt to unify the neighboring Kurdish tribes around his flag, Simko employed Kurdish nationalism as a convenient tool. He also sought and received military assistance from Turkish nationalists, who were fighting Armenians in eastern Anatolia. Simko’s appeal to nationalism, however, proved to be incompatible with the seminomadic and internally fragmented tribal society in which he operated. Tribal loyalties resisted transformation into a coherent national movement. The internally loose and divided organization of tribal groups also predisposed Simko’s movement to intense rivalries and fissiparousness. The participation of numerous tribal chiefs served as a source of strength and power for Simko, but it also undermined his ability to transform his uprising into a cohesive movement with concrete political objectives. His alliance with Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan allowed Simko to increase the size of his army, but the convergence of numerous tribal identities under one flag also fragmented Simko’s support base and divided it into opposing factions and loyalties. Indeed, at the zenith of his power, Simko’s army was at best a makeshift collection of armed bands lacking a unified and integrated command structure or a coherent ideology. Though “a brave fighter,” Simko was “ignorant of modern
256
M. KIA
military tactics, and his irregular forces were naturally at a great disadvantage when opposed by a properly equipped and organized force.”2 The tribesmen fighting under Simko’s flag were not paid other than in plunder from the enemies they defeated and the towns and villages they sacked. It is not surprising, therefore, that the loyalty of Kurdish tribal chiefs of western Azerbaijan remained fragile and transient. Simko’s fate was sealed once the Iranian state managed to organize a standing army under the leadership of its minister of war, Reza Khan, and after Tehran and Ankara resolved their disputes through direct negotiations. When Simko suffered a devastating military defeat at the hands of Iranian government forces in August 1922, his tribal coalition collapsed, and his rebellion fizzled. Simko’s defeat was followed by a mass defection by the very tribal chiefs who had rallied to his cause. During the last period of his life, extending from his defeat at the hands of the Iranian army in August 1922 to his assassination by Iranian authorities in July 1930, Simko tried to revive his power and stage another rebellion against the Iranian government, but he failed. In October 1922, the Kurdish chief travelled to northern Iraq and appealed to the British authorities for support. When the British rejected his request for assistance, Simko sought Sheikh Mahmud Barzanji’s backing, but his pleas did not produce any positive results. Having failed in his efforts in northern Iraq, Simko returned to Turkey and joined the Turkish nationalists. He also returned to his favorite vocation of raiding merchant caravans and plundering rural communities on the Iranian-Turkish frontier. After the Turks suppressed Sheikh Said’s rebellion in the spring 1925, Simko returned to Iran in 1925. In 1926, the Kurdish chief revolted against the authority of the Iranian state, but he was quickly defeated by his principal rival within the Shakak tribe. After 1926, Simko became a homeless nomad travelling between Iraq and Turkey, while the Iranian and Iraqi governments negotiated about his fate. In July 1930, he finally returned to Iran only to be killed in an ambush organized by Iranian authorities. Throughout his career, Simko utilized an imperial framework or a patron-client relationship to ensure his political survival. He served the
2 M. Saunders, Intelligence Summary No. 38, Tehran, September 24, 1922, Doc. 86 [E 12,259/285/34], in British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers From the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volume 18, p. 125.
9
CONCLUSION
257
Ottoman Turks as a client between 1905 and 1907, and again intermittently during the First World War, as the situation demanded. He also enjoyed Russian patronage and protection for several years before and for a short time during the First World War. The only period during which Simko acted as a semi-independent leader was the four years immediately following the conclusion of the Great War; the Russian and Ottoman empires had collapsed, and the British, despite their enormous power and influence in Iran and the greater Middle East, were unwilling to become involved in the conflict between the Iranian state and Kurdish tribes of northwestern Iran. Even then, Simko relied heavily on support from Turkish nationalists, who provided him with considerable military and logistical support. The patron-client system did not allow Simko to develop a political agenda independent of his patrons. For example, before the commencement of the First World War, the Kurdish chief joined Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan and Sayyid Taha II in promoting Kurdish nationalism. Their “nationalistic” activities, were not, however, aimed at creating a viable and independent state for the Kurdish communities of the region. Instead, their principal objective was to undermine the authority of the Ottoman government in eastern Anatolia, while at the same time building Russia’s influence inside the Kurdish-populated regions of Iran and the Ottoman Empire. As clients of the Czarist state, neither Simko nor the other two Kurdish leaders enjoyed the freedom to devise an independent nationalist agenda. Was Simko a Kurdish nationalist? Or more correctly, could Simko be a nationalist given the tribal society in which he operated and his propensity for selling his services to the highest and most powerful regional bidder? The Kurdish communities in northwestern Iran were predominantly rural and tribal. The majority of the Kurdish population lived either as semi-nomads or peasant cultivators. The region lacked a middle class with sufficient economic power to exert its political influence. There was also no urban intelligentsia or an urban-based educated strata engaged in articulating modern ideas and objectives for a political movement. Nationalistic sentiments were, therefore, confined to an extremely small group of tribal chiefs and local notables, who enjoyed a tenuous relationship with Kurdish intellectuals and political leaders in the Ottoman Empire, the birthplace of Kurdish nationalism. The early impulses of Simko’s nationalism were inspired by Kurdish nationalist leaders across the border in the Ottoman Empire, including
258
M. KIA
Abdurrezzak Bey Bedir Khan and Sayyid Taha II, who acted as interlocutors and the means of transmission for the introduction of Kurdish nationalism in northwestern Iran. This embryonic form of nationalism became increasingly more relevant as Kurdish anxiety and insecurity in western Azerbaijan was aroused in reaction to the ascendency of nationalistic organizations and armed groups among Assyrian and Armenian communities in northwestern Iran. Initially, Simko did not fear a distant Iranian government, which was practically non-existent at the time. The Kurdish chief’s primary concern was the emergence of an Assyrian or an Armenian state that could dominate the Kurdish tribes of western Azerbaijan with direct assistance from Russia and other European powers. In other words, Simko’s nationalism was shaped by a deep sense of anxiety about the possibility that his tribe, as well as neighboring Kurdish tribal groups, would be reduced to a subservient minority community under Assyrian rule. Simko was a tribal chief in search of an independent state. Despite his call for the creation of a Kurdish state, Simko and his army lacked the most rudimentary elements of a coherent nationalist movement. Nationalist movements were often represented by an educated intelligentsia (i.e., scholars, teachers, journalists, poets, and writers), which critiqued the traditional culture of the society and proposed new ideas, policies, and political objectives. This factor was clearly missing in Simko’s case. The geographical setting of Simko’s revolt was mountainous and tribal. Cities and towns were targets of attacks rather than the social base of the revolt. It is not surprising, therefore, that Simko’s revolt suffers from a paucity of articles and books written by Kurdish intellectuals in its support. Raiding and plundering rather than writing and publishing were the favorite pursuits and pastimes of the leaders. This was not a nationalist movement that fit the traditional theoretical model. And yet, Simko’s revolt contained strong elements of a proto-nationalist movement. The Kurdish chief’s uprising was separatist in nature. Caught on the borderlands of age-old empires, it possessed little affinity for either Iran or Turkey. Instead of viewing the British or the Russians as the evil colonizers, as was the case in the Iranian nationalist discourse, Simko viewed the Iranian state as the oppressor of his people, and he sought to defeat it with support from either the Turks, the British, or the Russians. There is no evidence to suggest that Simko’s opposition to the Iranian state was based on some form of cultural nationalism, but there is ample evidence to argue that he viewed the centralizing policies of the Iranian
9
CONCLUSION
259
government, especially after the creation of a modern standing army, as a direct threat to his political and economic privileges. His reaction to the policies of the government in Tehran was, therefore, the reaction of a feudal lord and a tribal chief rather than the response of a Kurdish nationalist intellectual worried about the loss of his/her cultural and linguistic identity. His complaints about the Iranian government’s policies focused on the erosion of power for himself and other chiefs to run their territories as autonomous potentates; such complaints were rarely directed at the lack of democracy or human, cultural, and linguistic rights. Simko’s scattered and inconsistent appeal to Kurdish nationalism lacked a commitment to a program of improvement for Kurdish life in Iran. Rather, it was for the most part, a tactical ploy to rally the neighboring Kurdish tribes around a unified flag. The Kurdish chief did not possess any religious legitimacy or spiritual appeal. He also did not have any new political ideas that could generate excitement and support among the neighboring Kurdish tribal chiefs. The only idea that he could use as a convenient tool was the removal of state authority, which would have allowed the ruling tribal elite of the region to run their affairs without intervention from the central government. Simko lacked any attachment to the concept of Iran as a nation-state. He lived all his life in the borderlands, where he shifted his identity and loyalty in accordance with the needs of the moment. He expressed his loyalty at one point or another to Iran, the Ottoman Empire, the Russian Empire, the Turkish republic, and even to the Soviet state. The sole aim of these fluid and flimsy loyalties was political survival in a region where the balance of power shifted on a frequent basis. Unlike his contemporaries, Mirza Kuchak Khan in Gilan, Khiyabani in Tabriz, and Pessyan in Khorasan, Simko did not view himself as an Iranian patriot fighting against the injustices of a corrupt and pro-British establishment in Tehran. Indeed, he had no problem with the corruption and the pro-British policies of the Iranian government, which he had manipulated to his own advantage. He even tried to throw in his lot with the British when it proved convenient. His problem was with the existence of a country called Iran, and a government that could maintain the independence and territorial integrity of the Iranian state. He intended to destroy its authority in western Azerbaijan so that he could carve out a new state under his own leadership. For Simko, his nation was principally the Shakak tribe, a segment of which he led since the death of his brother and father. The members
260
M. KIA
of his tribe shared a common territory, as well as a common language, religion, and culture. When he realized that the rise of Assyrian and Armenian nationalism posed a threat to the status and position of his tribe, Simko responded by targeting these two communities and murdering Mar Shimun, the most powerful and influential Christian leader in the region. Simko believed that the Assyrian leader and his supporters posed a direct threat to the supremacy of the Shakak as the most powerful tribe in northwestern Iran. After Tehran tried to re-impose its authority over western Azerbaijan, Simko built a strong army and fought against Iran’s central government. The principal objective in fighting the Assyrians, Armenians, and later the Iranian government was the preservation of the tribe for which he was responsible and with which he identified. In staging his revolt, Simko did not appeal to Islam. Islam and the distinction between the Sunni Kurds and the Shi’i Azerbaijanis and Persians did not serve as the primary unifying force or the impetus for military action. Even his closest confidant, Sayyid Taha II, who enjoyed enormous prestige and influence, refused to use an Islamic discourse in support of Simko’s movement. Instead, he appealed to unity among the Kurdish tribes of northwestern Iran as the first step toward the realization of the dream of an independent Kurdish homeland. In place of religion, both Simko and Sayyid Taha II relied primarily on kinship and cross-border tribal solidarity as focal points in their campaign. Simko’s politics and political worldview were those of a traditionalminded tribal chief and landowner. As a leader who had been raised as a member of a tribal aristocracy, he opposed any change to the status quo, including any political and economic reform that could pose a threat to the integrity of the traditional social order. Any alteration in the power structure or any modification in the relationship between the ruler and the ruled undermined the privileged status that he enjoyed. Thus, concepts and categories such as democracy, equality before the law, and social justice were fundamentally alien to his thought process. As a landowning tribal chief, Simko operated within a multi-layered social order comprising several principal classes, that is, the landlord and the peasant, and the tribal chief and the ordinary tribesman. The Kurdish chief’s political base was the warrior caste of his tribe and several neighboring Kurdish tribal groups. Simko’s uprising was, therefore, a revolt of a small minority that lacked a broad social base. Neither peasant cultivators nor any segment of the urban population, Kurd or non-Kurd, was mobilized to play any significant role in Simko’s revolt. Simko’s
9
CONCLUSION
261
intense anti-Assyrian and anti-Armenian stance, as well as his propensity for looting and plundering defenseless inhabitants, almost irrespective of ethnicity, made it impossible for the Kurdish chief to find any support or legitimacy among the rural and urban population in northwestern Iran. Simko and the tribal chiefs who supported him drew their power and wealth from land and the peasant cultivators who worked it. As far as they were concerned, peasant cultivators had to remain wedded to the land and work so that they could feed their land-owning/semi-nomadic masters. Simko’s revolt was, therefore, a rebellion of a traditional-minded tribal-landowning elite that had no intention of empowering the masses and creating a more open and egalitarian social order. Simko was the creation of the borderlands, where his tribe functioned as an autonomous entity with its own army and political organization. He conducted his own foreign policy and formed alliances with neighboring tribes and states. When Reza Shah tried to convert the fragmented entity that he had inherited from the Qajars into a modern nation-state called Iran, he ran into strong resistance from the tribal chiefs, such as Simko, who equated the emergence of an Iranian nation-state under a strong central government as tantamount to the destruction and disappearance of their own autonomous tribal existence. Simko was fighting to preserve a privileged way of life that was disappearing fast as tribes and tribal chiefs came under attack by the newly emerging “nation-states” of the region. The Kurdish chief was born and raised when multi-ethnic, multi-linguistic, and multi-religious empires reigned supreme. He developed his political skills in the borderlands of such empires, which had been born of war with their frontiers fashioned by centuries of conquest and conflict. Moreover, these borderlands contained vast contested territories claimed by imperial bureaucracies that did not in fact control them. The contested territories lying between the rapidly declining empires allowed tribal chiefs to carve out autonomous political entities, where they survived by playing one imperial power against another. Acting as a devastating tsunami, the giant waves of the First World War transformed the political geography of the Middle East. In addition to the tragic loss of millions of lives, the Great War uprooted the imperial regimes that had dominated the region for centuries. With the break-up of the age-old empires, new countries with recognized borders proliferated throughout the Middle East. These states emerged as the principal repositories of political loyalty and legitimacy.
262
M. KIA
Simko was a tribal chief. Submission to the authority of a tribal chief was based on custom. Beginning in 1922, the Iranian state tried to disarm the tribes and transform Iran from a loose aggregate of autonomous enclaves into a modern nation-state with a uniform army, a centralized tax system, and a homogeneous national identity, concepts that were alien to and opposed by tribal notables. For the new leadership in Tehran, Iran could not be really independent and orderly until the whole country was brought under a single and unchallenged authority, which meant the establishment of a highly centralized national government that enjoyed the power to disarm the tribal population, so that all physical power could rest in the hands of the state. The implementation of this nationalist project converted the government into the only institution that enjoyed a monopoly on the legal use of force. In introducing its centralizing policies, the Iranian government tried to replace the customary control of the tribal chiefs with a new political order based on the unchallenged supremacy of the state. The creation of a centralized nation-state meant that multiple centers of authority could no longer compete for power as was the case under the Qajars. The conflict between the central government and the tribal periphery was bound to end with the victory of the state because it possessed greater military and administrative power, a coherent ideology, and vast financial resources, while the coalition led by Simko was internally fragmented and lacked the ideological cohesion, the financial base, and the managerial skill to fight and win. Simko was the product of borderlands between empires, and borderlands were bloody places. Further, powerful forces shaped Simko and his career: the collapse of age-old empires, the destructive impact of the First World War, and the emergence of new nationalisms (given even greater impetus by the Great War and its aftermath). These dynamic circumstances led Simko to ally himself at different times with the Qajar state in Iran, the Ottoman Empire, Russia, Turkey, and even Great Britain. Ultimately, the warlord flirted with a Kurdish proto-nationalism—at least when it was convenient. This multiplicity of identities and alliances has allowed historians to cast him in ways that meshed with their own interpretations. Historians undoubtedly will continue to make of him what they will. As for this author, the reader will recognize a reluctance to reach broader conclusions regarding other Kurdish political movements based
9
CONCLUSION
263
on the unique story of Simko and his revolt. The reason for this hesitation is very clear. The Kurdish tribal leadership in northwestern Iran operated in a political environment fundamentally different from Kurdish tribal chiefs in the Ottoman Empire. In Qajar Iran, the Kurdish chiefs enjoyed far greater autonomy than their brethren across the border. As a result of centralizing policies implemented by the Ottoman Empire throughout the nineteenth century, the Kurdish tribal groups of eastern Anatolia had become far more integrated into the state’s power structure, and many functioned as the direct arm of the state, supporting the Ottoman government in its campaign to suppress Armenian nationalists. Iran witnessed a reverse process, because the power of the Qajar state was in a rapid decline throughout the same period, especially in the tribal zones of the country. Lacking the military and bureaucratic institutions that the Ottomans possessed, the Qajar state, which was in reality a loose confederation of tribal groups and landowning families, maintained the fragile balance of power by adopting a policy of minimal intervention. Instead of acting as an extension of the central government, Kurdish tribal groups such as Simko’s Shakak operated as autonomous entities that maintained their own power structure and conducted their own foreign policy with neighboring states, namely, the Ottoman Empire and Russia. The Ottoman state was not only more centralized and bureaucratic, but it was also more ideological than its counterpart to the east. The Ottoman sultan functioned not only as the temporal but also as the religious and spiritual head, or the caliph, of his Sunni Muslim subjects, including the majority of the Kurdish population in eastern Anatolia. In the last two decades of the nineteenth century, the Ottoman appeal to Pan-Islamism enjoyed the support of many Kurdish tribal chiefs and notables in eastern Anatolia. Even after the defeat and collapse of the Ottoman Empire at the end of the First World War, many Kurdish leaders continued to display a willingness to support the efforts of Mustafa Kemal and his fellow officers in removing foreign occupation troops from Anatolia as long as the leader of the movement remained a Gazi who fought the infidels in the name of Islam and the sultan-caliph. In sharp contrast to the Ottoman sultan, the Qajar shahs lacked the religious legitimacy to rule their subjects. This may explain why they relied heavily on the support of the Shi’i religious hierarchy to maintain their control. The situation for the Qajar state worsened in the Sunnipopulated regions of the country, especially in the Kurdish-populated areas where a Shi’i monarch did not enjoy any automatic legitimacy or
264
M. KIA
support. The only means for the state to win over the Kurdish tribes of Iran was through bribes and threats. The state often bought the loyalty of Kurdish chiefs by bestowing honorific titles and increasing the amount of land and taxes a tribal leader controlled. When the Ottoman Empire and Russia invaded northwestern Iran in 1905 and 1909, the authority of the Qajar dynasty vanished, and after the end of the First World War and the increasing militarization of the country’s tribal zones, it became impossible for the Iranian state to secure her authority even with bribes and threats. Finally, as a result of institutional reforms, including the introduction of a modern educational system, a Kurdish intelligentsia emerged under late Ottoman rule. Highly educated and well-travelled, the members of this intelligentsia served at various levels of the Ottoman state bureaucracy, including its palace and foreign policy establishment. The rise of Kurdish nationalism was partially linked to the rise of this intelligentsia, which was exposed to a variety of modern European ideas and ideological schools. The members of the Kurdish intelligentsia also witnessed the eruption of nationalist movements, first among the Christian subjects of the sultan in southeastern Europe and later among the Armenian and Arab subjects of the empire. If the Armenians and Arabs of the empire could demand their own nation-states why couldn’t the Kurds, an ancient people with their own unique identity? This intellectual ferment was absent among the Kurdish communities in Iran, which were dominated by tribal chiefs whose political horizons did not transcend political survival as well as petty tribal jealousies and rivalries. Though rooted in his experience with the Qajar state, as well as in his deep anxieties and insecurities regarding the activities of Assyrian and Armenian nationalists, Simko’s unique proto-nationalism was an extension of Kurdish nationalistic ideas that had already been cultivated in the Ottoman Empire. Without his interactions with prominent Kurdish notables and intellectuals from the Ottoman state, Simko’s revolt would have remained another isolated tribal rebellion by a frontier warlord who lacked any formative ideology or overarching political objectives.
Bibliography
Adamiyat, Fereydoun., Amir Kabir va Iran, (Tehran: Kharazmi Press, 1982). Afshar Sistani, Iraj., Negahi beh Ilam, (Tehran: Nashr-e Honar, 1985). Afshar Sistani, Iraj., Moghadameie bar Shenakht-e Ilha, Chadorneshinan va Tavayef-e Ashayeri-ye Iran, (Tehran: Homa Press, 1987). Ahmad, Chnor Jaafar., “The Dilemma of Kurdish Nationalism as a Result of International Treaties and Foreign Occupations Between the Years 1850 to 1930,” (University of Glasgow MA Thesis, April 2019). Ahmad, Kamal Madhar., Kurdistan During the First World War, translated by Ali Maher Ibrahim, (London: Saqi Books, 1994). Ahmadzadeh, Hashem and Gareth Stansfield., “The Political, Cultural, and Military Re-Awakening of the Kurdish Nationalist Movement in Iran,” Middle East Journal, Vol. 64, No. 1 (Winter, 2010), pp. 11–27. Ali, Othman., “The Career of Ozdemir: A Turkish Bid for Northern Iraq, 1921– 1923,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 53, No. 6 (2017), pp. 966–985. Allen, William Edward David and Paul Muratoff., Caucasian Battlefields: A History of the Wars on the Turco-Caucasian Border 1828–1921, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1999). Amanat, Abbas (ed.)., Cities and Trade: Consul Abbott on the Economy and Society of Iran 1847–1866, (London: Ithaca Press, 1983). Arfa, Hassan., Under Five Shahs, (New York: William Morrow & Co, 1965). Arfa, Hassan., The Kurds: An Historical and Political Study, (London: Oxford University Press, 1966). Asatrian, Garnik., “Prolegomena to the Study of the Kurds,” Iran and the Caucasus, Vol. 13 (2009), pp. 1–57.
© The Editor(s) (if applicable) and The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4
265
266
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Astarabadi, Mirza Mohammad Mehdi., Tarikh-e Jahangosha-ye Naderi, (Tehran: Soroush Press, 1991). Atabaki, Touraj (ed.)., Iran and the First World War: Battleground of the Great Powers, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2006). Atabaki, Touraj and Erik J. Zürcher., Men of Order: Authoritarian Modernization Under Atatürk and Reza Shah, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2017). Ates, , Sabri., The Ottoman-Iranian Borderlands: Making a Boundary, 1843–1914, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2015). Atmaca, Metin., “Fragile Frontiers: Sayyid Taha and the Role of Kurdish Religiopolitical Leadership in the Ottoman East During the First World War,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 54, No. 3 (2018), pp. 361–381. Atmaca, Metin., “Treaty of Sèvres, August 10, 1920,” in Maisel, Sebastian (ed.)., The Kurds: An Encyclopedia of Life, Culture, and Society, (Santa Barbara: ABC-CLIO, 2018). Atmaca, Metin., “The Road to Sèvres: Kurdish Elites and Question of SelfDetermination After the First World War,” International Journal of Conflict and Violence, Vol. 16 (2022). ˙ ˙ ˙ Atnur, Ibrahim Ethem., “Ismail A˘ga Simko’nun A¸sireti, Ailesi ve Reisli˘ginin Ilk Yılları,” Tarihte Türkler ve Kürtler Sempozyumu/Bildiriler (Ankara, 09–10 Ocak 2014), IV, Türk Tarih Kurumu Yayını, Ankara 2014. Austin, H. H., The Baqubah Refugee Camp, (Piscataway, New Jersey: Gorgias Press, 2006). Azari, Ali., Qiyam-e Sheikh Mohammad Khiyabani Dar Tabriz, (Tehran: Safi Alishah Press, 1983). Bahar, Malek al-Shoara., Tarikh-e Mokhtasar-e Ahzab-e Siyasi dar Iran, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 2009). Bahrami, Abdollah., Khaterat-e Abdollah Bahrami az Akhar-e Saltanat-e Nasser od-Din Shah ta Avval-e Kudeta, (Tehran: Elmi Press, 1985). Balfour, J. M., Recent Happenings in Persia, (London: William Blackwood and Sons, 1922). Bamdad, Mehdi., Sharh-e Hal-e Rejal-e Iran Dar Qarn-e 12th, 13th, and 14th Hejri, 6 Volumes, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1979). Bayat, Kaveh., Kudeta-ye Lahuti, Tabriz, Bahman 1300, (Tehran: Pardis Danesh, 1997). Bayat, Kaveh., “Ismael Aqa Semitqu”, in Farhang-e Namavaran-e Moaser Iran, Volume 1, (Tehran, 2002), pp. 578–580. Bayat, Kaveh., Ravabet-e Iran va Turkiyeh: Az Soqut-e. Dolat-e Osmani ta baramadan-e Neza.m-e Jomhuri (1297–1302 Shamsi), (Tehran: Pardis-e Danesh, 2015). Bedirhan, Abdurrezzak., Otobiyografya, translated by Hasan Cuni, (Istanbul: Perî Yayinlari, 2000).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
267
Berberian, M., and J. S. Tchalenko., “Field Study and Documentation of the 1930 Salmas (Shahpur-Azarbaidjan) Earthquake,” Imperial College, (London: Geological Survey of Iran, 39, 271–342, 1976). Bidwell, Robin (ed.)., British Documents on Foreign Affairs: Reports and Papers from the Foreign Office Confidential Print, Part II, Series B Turkey, Iran, and the Middle East, 1918–1939, Volumes 16, 17, 18, 19, (University Publications of America, 1990). Bird, Isabella., Journeys in Persia and Kurdistan, Volume III, (The Perfect Library, 1891). Bitlisi, Amir Sharaf Khan., Sharafnameh: Tarikh-e Mofassal-e Kurdistan, (Tehran: Elmi Press, 1964). Borzoi, Mojtaba., Oza’a-e Siyasi-ye Kurdistan az 1258 ta 1325 Hejri-ye Shamsi, (Tehran: Nashr-e Fekr-e No, 1999). British Intelligence: Who’s Who in Persia (Volume II), First Edition. (Simla: Superintendent, Government Central Press, 1923). British Library: Asian and African Studies, Kurdistan and the Kurds, (GS Palestine: Intelligence Branch, c1919). Browne, Edward G., The Persian Revolution 1905–1909, (Washington, D.C.: Mage Publishers, 2006). Bryce, Viscount., The Treatment of Armenians in the Ottoman Empire 1915–16, (G. Doniguian & Sons, 1916). Buchanan, George., My Mission to Russia and Other Diplomatic Memories, (Devon: A & F Publications, 2020). Burrell, R. M. (ed.)., Iran Political Diaries 1881–1965. 14 Volumes, (London: Archive Editions Ltd, 1997). Butler, Rohan, J. P. T. Bury, and M. E. Lambert (eds.)., Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939. First Series, Volume XIII , (London: Her Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1963). Central Intelligence Agency, Directorate of Intelligence. Intelligence Report: Centers of Power in Iran. May 1972, No. 2035/72. Chaqueri, Cosroe., The Soviet Socialist Republic of Iran, 1920–1921, (Pittsburgh: University of Pittsburgh Press, 1995). Chupani, Ahmad., Masale-ye Ismail Agha Semko dar Azerbaijan va Mokrian, (Tehran: Nashr-e Ana, 2015). Clark, James D., “Constitutionalists and Cossacks: The Constitutional Movement and Russian Intervention in Tabriz, 1907–11,” Iranian Studies, June 2006, Vol. 39, No. 2 (June 2006), pp. 199–225., Published by: Taylor & Francis, Ltd. On behalf of International Society of Iranian Studies. Coan, Frederick G., Yesterdays in Persia and Kurdistan, (Claremont: Saunders Studio Press, 1939). Confidential: Personalities Mosul, Arbil, Kirkuk, Sulaimani and Frontiers, (Baghdad: Government Press, 1923).
268
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Congress of Berlin., Les Protocoles du Congrès de Berlin Avec le Traité Préliminaire de San-Stefano, (St Albans: Wentworth Press, 2019). Cronin, Stephanie., Tribal Politics in Iran: Rural Conflict and the New State, 1921–1941, (London: Routledge, 2007). Curzon, George N., Persia and the Persian Question, 2 Volumes, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2015). Çakir, Mehmet Saki., Seyyid Tâhâ Hakkârî ve Nehrî Dergâhi, (Istanbul: Nizamiye Akademi, 2017). Dastak Niya, Farhad., “Dolat-e Qajar va Borhan-e Urumiyeh dar Jang-e Jahani-ye Avval,” Motaleat-e Tarikhi-ye Jang, Vol. 2, No. 4, Winter 1397 Solar (2019), pp. 49–76. D’Bait Mar Shimun, Surma., Assyrian Church Customs and the Murder of Mar Shimun, (London: The Faith Press, 1920). Disney, Jr., Donald Bruce., “The Kurdish National Movement and External Influences,” (Master’s Thesis, Naval Postgraduate School, Monterey, California, December 1980). Dolatabadi, Yahya. Hayat-e Yahya, 4 Volumes, (Tehran: Ferdowsi Press, 1984). Donboli, Abd al-Razzaq Maftun., Maaser-e Soltaniyeh, Tarikh-e Jangha-ye Iran va Russ, (Tehran: Ibn Sina Press, 1972). Driver, G. R., “The Kurdish Question,” Persia Magazine (London) Vol. 1, No. 3 (September 1921), pp. 107–117 Dubois, Georges., La Question Assyro-Chaldéenne: études et notes, novembre et décembre 1920-janvier 1921, (Paris: Imprimerie Henry Maillet, 1921). Eagleton, William J., The Kurdish Republic of 1946, (London: Oxford University Press, 1963). E’atemad al-Saltaneh, Mohammad Hassan Khan., Tarikh-e Montazam-e Nasseri, (Tehran: Donya-ye Ketab, 1988). E’atemad al-Saltaneh, Mohammad Hassan Khan., Merat al-Buldan, 4 Volumes, (Tehran: Tehran University Press, 1989). E’atemad Moghadam, Mehdi., Yadi az Gozashteh beh Zamimeh-ye Seh Faghareh Nameha-ye Tarikhi, (Tehran: Iran Press, 1974). Edmonds, C. J., Kurds Turks and Arabs, (London: Oxford University Press, 1957). Elder, John., History of the Iran Mission, (Literature Committee of the Church Council of Iran), 1960. Entessar, Nader., Kurdish Politics in the Middle East, (Lexington Books, 2009). Eskandar Niya, Ebrahim., Sakhtar-e Sazman-e Eilat va Shive-ye Maeishat-e Ashayer-e Azerbaijan, (Urumiyeh: Anzali Press, 1987). Eskander, Saad., “Southern Kurdistan Under Britain’s Mesopotamian Mandate: From Separation to Incorporation, 1920–23,” Middle Eastern Studies, Volume 37, No. 2 (2001), pp. 153–180, DOI: 10. 1080/714004389.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
269
Estelami, Hooman., The Americans of Urmia: Iran’s First Americans and Their Mission to the Assyrian Christians, (New York: Bahar Books, 2021). Eudin, Xenia Joukoff and Robert C. North., Soviet Russia and the East 1920– 1927 A Documentary Survey, (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1957). Fieldhouse, D. K. (ed.)., Kurds, Arabs and Britons: The Memoir of Wallace Lyon in Iraq, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2002). Fisher, John., “Man on the Spot: Captain George Gracey and the British Policy Towards the Assyrians, 1917–45,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 44, No. 2 (March 2008), pp. 215–235. Floor, Willem., Salar al-Dowleh: A Delusional Prince & Wannabe Shah, (Washington, DC: Mage Publishers, 2018). Forbes, Rosita., Conflict Angora to Afghanistan, (New York: Frederick A. Stokes Company, 1933). Fraser, James Baillie., Narrative of a Journey into Khorasan, in the Years 1821 and 1822 Including Some Account of the Countries to the North-east of Persia; With Remarks Upon the National Character, Government, and Resources of that Kingdom, (London: Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme, Brown, and Green, 1825). Ghani, Cyrus., Iran and the Rise of Reza Shah Pahlavi: From Qajar Collapse to Pahlavi Power, (London: I.B. Tauris, 1998). Ghassemlou, Abdul Rahman., Kurdistan and the Kurds, (Prague: The Czechoslovak Academy of Sciences, 1965). Gilak, Mohammad Ali., Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Jangal, (Rasht: Gilakan Press, 1992). Gilbert, Martin., The Churchill Documents, Volume 9, Disruption and Chaos, July 1919-March 1921, (Hillsdale: Hillsdale College Press, 1977). Great Britain, Colonial Office, “Report by His Majesty’s Government in the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland to the Council of the League of Nations on the Administration of Iraq for the Year 1928,” (Colonial No. 44/1929), (London: Printed and Published by His Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1929). Grew, Joseph C., “The Peace Conference of Lausanne, 1922–1923,” Proceedings of the American Philosophical Society, Vol. 98, No. 1 (February 15, 1954), pp. 1–10. Gudhart, Augusta., “The Blood of Martyrs,” Atlantic Monthly, Vol. 130 (July– December 1922), pp. 115–121. Gunter, Michael M., Historical Dictionary of the Kurds, (Lanham, Maryland, and Oxford: The Scarecrow Press, Inc., 2004). Günther, R. T., “Contributions to the Geography of Lake Urmi and Its Neighborhood,” The Geographical Journal, Vol. 14, No. 5 (November, 1899), pp. 504–523. Hajialilu, Jahanshah (ed.)., Majmuah-ye Asnad-e Sardaran-e Qaradagh, (Tehran: Zarrin Press, 2010).
270
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Hamilton, A. M., Road Through Kurdistan: Travels in Northern Iraq, (London: Faber and Faber Limited, 1937). Hassaniyan, Allan., Kurdish Politics in Iran: Crossborder Interactions and Mobilisation Since 1947 , (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2021). Hassanpour, Amir., Nationalism and Language in Kurdistan, 1918–1985, (San Francisco: The Edwin Mellen Press, 1992). Hawar, Muhammad Rasul., Simko u bzutnaway natawayatiy Kurd, Hikumeti Herêmi Kurdistanê, (Silêmanî, Wazarati Roshnbiri, 2005). Hay, Rupert., Two Years in Kurdistan: Experiences of a Political Officer 1918– 1920, (Washington, D.C.: Westphalia Press, 2016). Hedayat, Mokhber al-Saltaneh., Khaterat va Khatarat, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1982). Hedayat, Mokhber al-Saltaneh., Gozaresh-e Iran, (Tehran: Noghreh Press, 1985). Hedayat, Reza Qoli Khan., Tarikh-e Rozat al-Safa-ye Nasseri, 10 Volumes, (Qom: Hekmat Press, 1960). Henning, Barbara., Narratives of the History of the Ottoman-Kurdish Bedirhani Family in Imperial and Post-imperial Contexts: Continuities and Changes, (Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 2018). Hurewitz, J. C., Diplomacy in the Near and Middle East, 2 Volumes, (Princeton: D. Van Nostrand Company, Inc., 1956). Imperial War Museum., Operations in Persia, 1914–1919, (London: Her Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1987). Ivanov, W., “Notes on the Ethnology of Khurasan,” The Geographical Journal, Vol. 67, No. 2 (February 1926), pp. 143–158. Jackson, A. V. Williams., Persia Past and Present a Book of Travel and Research, (London: The Macmillan Company, 1906). Jahanbani, Amanollah., (Parviz Jahanbani, ed.), Sarbaz-e Irani va Mafhum-e Ab va Khak: Zendeginameh-ye Khodnevesht-e Sepahbod Amanollah Jahanbani, (Tehran: Ferdows Press, 2001). Jahanbani, Amanollah., Az Tezar ta Shah: Zendeginameh va Khaterat-e Sepahbod Amanollah Jahanbani, (Tehran: Elm Press, 2019). Jahangir Mirza., Tarikh-e No, (Tehran: Ali Akbar Elmi Press, 1948). Jones, Geoffrey., “The Imperial Bank of Iran and Iranian Economic Development, 1890–1952,” Business and Economic History, Vol. 16 (1987), pp. 69–80. Joseph, John., The Nestorians and their Muslim Neighbors: A Study of Western Influence, (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1961). Joseph, John., Muslim-Christian Relations and Inter-Christian Rivalries in the Middle East: The Case of the Jacobites in an Age of Transition, (Albany: State University of New York Press, 1983). Jwaideh, Wadie., Kurdish National Movement Its Origins and Development, (Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 2006).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
271
Kalirad, Ali., “Monasebat-e Siyasi-ye Iran va Turkiyeh, (1297–1304 Solar/1919– 1925),” Fasl Nameh-ye Tarikh-e Ravabat-e Khareji, Years 13 & 14, Vol. 52 & 53 (Autumn & Winter 1391), pp. 121–138. Karabekir, Kâzim., Hayatim, (Istanbul: Kronik Kitap, 2019). Karˇci´c, Hamza., “Sèvres at 100: The Peace Treaty that Partitioned the Ottoman Empire,” Journal of Muslim Minority Affairs, Vol. 40, No. 3 (2020), pp. 470–479. Kasravi, Ahmad., Tarikh-e Hijdah Sale-ye Azarbaijan, (Tehran: Amir Kabir Press, 1978). Kasravi, Ahmad., Tarikh-e Mashruteh-ye Iran, (Tehran: Amir Kabir Press, 1978). Katouzian, Homa., Iranian History and Politics: The Dialectic of State and Society, (London: Routledge, 2003). Katouzian, Homa., State and Society in Iran: The Eclipse of the Qajars and the Emergence of the Pahlavis, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2006). Kaviyanpoor, Ahmad., Tarikh-e Rezaeiyyeh, (Tehran: Asia Press, 1964). Kaymaz, Ihsan Serif., ¸ “Britain’s Policy Toward Kurdistan at the End of the First World War,” Turkish Journal of International Relations, www.alternativesjou rnal.net, Vol. 10, No. 2–3 (Summer-Fall, 2011). Kieser, Hans-Lukas, Margaret Lavinia Anderson, Seyhan Bayraktar, and Thomas Schmutz (eds.)., The End of the Ottomans: The Genocide of 1915 and the Politics of Turkish Nationalism, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2021). Khosrozadeh, Sirwan., Shekaste Ordu-ye Ahanin, Gozareshi az Hamleh-ye Simko beh Mahabad va Enhedam-e Hang-e Chahardahom-e Jhanadermeri, (Mehr 1300 Shamsi), (Tehran: Shirazeh Ketab-e Ma). Khosrozadeh, Sirwan., “Avamel-e Moasser dar Piruzi-ye Qoshun-e Mottahad alShekl dar Jang-e Shakar Y¯azi (Mordad-e 1301),” in Mot¯ aleat-e T¯ arikhi-ye Jang, Vol. 4, No. 3 (Autumn 1399 (Solar), 2020), pp. 55–73. Khosrozadeh, Sirwan., “Vakavi-ye Avamel-e Moasser dar Shuresh-e Dovvom-e Simko (Mehr 1305),” in Mot¯ aleat-e T¯ arikhi-ye Jang, Vol. 6, No. 3 (1401 (Solar), 2021), pp. 35–46. Kinnane, Derk., The Kurds and Kurdistan, (London: Oxford University Press, 1970). Koohi-Kamali, Farideh., The Political Development of the Kurds in Iran: Pastoral Nationalism, (London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2003). Kutschera, Chris., Le Mouvement National Kurd, (Paris: Editions Flammarion, 1979). Lady Shiel., Glimpses of Life and Manners in Persia., (London: John Murray, 1856). Lazarev, M.S., Kurdistan i Kurdski vopros [Kypdictan i kypdckiй voppoc] (1923–1945) (Kurdistan and the Kurdish Question), (Vostochnaia literatura, 2005).
272
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Lenczowski, George., Russia and the West in Iran 1918–1948., (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1949). Lenczowski, George (ed.)., Iran Under the Pahlavis, (Stanford: Hoover Institution Press, Stanford University, 1978). Lewis, Mary. [Mrs. W.A.] Shedd Papers, 1918, Columbia University Libraries Archival Collections. Lord Ironside (ed.)., High Road to Command: The Diaries of Major-General Sir Edmund Ironside., (London: Leo Cooper Ltd, 1972). Madani, Hussein., Kurdistan u stratejiy dewletan, Volume 2, (Stockholm: Spartryck. 2001). Maisel, Sebastian (ed.)., The Kurds: An Encyclopedia of Life, Culture, and Society, (Santa Barbara: ABC-CLIO, 2018). Makki, Hossein., Tarikh-e Bist Sale-ye Iran, 8 Volumes, (Tehran: Kaviyan Press, 1983). Malekzadeh, Mehdi., Tarikh-e Enqelab-e Mashrutiyat-e Iran, 7 Volumes, (Tehran: Elmi Press, 1980). Malekzadeh-ye Hirbad, Hassan., Sarnevesht-e Heyratangiz, (Tehran: Bina, 1949). Mango, Andrew., Atatürk: The Biography of the Founder of Modern Turkey, (New York: Abrams Press, 2002). Marten, Kimberly., “Warlordism in Comparative Perspective,” International Security, Vol. 31, No. 3 (Winter, 2006/2007). McCarthy, Justin., The Ottoman Turks, (London & New York: Longman, 1997). McDowall, David., A Modern History of the Kurds, (London: I.B. Tauris, 1996). Medlicott, W. N., Douglas Dakin, and M. E. Lambert (eds.)., Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939, Series IA Volume I, (London: Her Majesty’s Stationary Office, 1966). Medlicott, W. N., Douglas Dakin, and M. E. Lambert (eds.)., Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939, Series IA, Volume II, (London: Her Majesty’s Stationery Office, 1968). Medlicott, W. N., Douglas Dakin, and M. E. Lambert (eds.)., Documents on British Foreign Policy 1919–1939, Series IA, Volume VII, (London: Her Majesty’s Stationery Office, 1975). Medlicott, W. N., The Congress of Berlin and After: A Diplomatic History of the Near Eastern Settlement, (London: Methuen & Co, 1938). Meiselas, Susan., Kurdistan in the Shadow of History, (New York: Random House, 1997). Millspaugh, A. C., The American Task in Persia., (New York & London: The Century Co., 1925). Minorsky, V., “Shakak,” in Th. Houtsma, T. W. Arnold, R. Basset, and R. Hartmann (eds.), Encyclopaedia of Islam, First Edition (1913–1936). Minorsky, V., “S.om¯ai,” in Th. Houtsma, T. W. Arnold, R. Basset, and R. Hartmann (eds.), Encyclopaedia of Islam, (1913–1936).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
273
Minorsky, V., “The G¯ ur¯an,” in Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, University of London, Vol. 11, No. 1 (1943), pp. 75–103, Cambridge University Press on behalf of School of Oriental and African Studies. Minorsky, V., “The Tribes of Western Iran,” The Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute of Great Britain and Ireland, Vol. 75, No. 1/2 (1945). Moatamed al-Vozara, Rahmatollah Khan (Kaveh Bayat, ed.)., Urumiyeh dar Moharebeh-ye Alamsouz az Moghaddameh-ye Nesara ta Balva-ye Ismail Agha, 1298–1300, (Tehran: Shirazeh Press, 2001). Momtahan al-Dowleh Shaqaqi, Mirza Mehdi Khan, and Mirza Hashim Khan (Iraj Afshar, ed.)., Rejal-e Vezarat-e Kharejeh dar Asr-e Nasseri va Mozaffari, (Tehran: Ganjineh-ye Asnad-e Tarikh-e Iran, No. 3, Asatir Press, 1986). Morris, Benny and Dror Zeevi., The Thirty-Year Genocide: Turkey’s Destruction of Its Christian Minorities 1894–1924, (Cambridge, Massachusetts: Harvard University Press, 2019). Moshir al-Dowleh, Mirza Ja’afar Khan (Mohammad Moshiri, ed.)., Resale-ye Tahqiqat-e Sarhaddiyeh, (Tehran: Bonyad-e Farhang-e Iran Press, 1969). Mostowfi, Abdollah., Sharh-e Zendegani-ye Man Ya Tarikh-e Ejtemaei-ye Doreh-ye Qajar, 3 Volumes, (Tehran: Zavvar Press, 1992). Naby, Eden., “Abduction, Rape, and Genocide: Urmia’s Assyrian Girls and Women,” in Hannibal, Travis (ed.)., The Assyrian Genocide: Cultural and Political Legacies, (New York: Routledge, 2018), pp. 158–177. Nassiri, Mohammad Reza (ed.)., Asnad va Mokatebat-e Tarikhi-ye Iran, 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Keyhan Press, 1987). Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯afi, Hossein Qoli Khan., Khaterat va Asnad, Ma’asumeh M¯afi and Mansureh Etehadiyeh (Nezam M¯afi) (eds.), 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Nashr-e Tarikh-e Iran, 2007). Nicolson, Harold., Curzon: The Last Phase 1919–1925: A Study in Post-War Diplomacy, (New York: Harcourt, Brace and Company, 1939). Nikitine, Basile., “Le vie domestique des Assyro-Chaldeens du plateau d Ourmiyah,” (Ethnographie, 1925), pp. I–25. Nikitine, Basile., Les Kurdes. Étude Sociologique et Historique, (Paris: Imprimerie Nationale, Librairie C. Klincksieck, 1956). Olson, Robert W., Emergence of Kurdish Nationalism, (Austin: University of Texas Press, 1989). Oriente Moderno, Anno 10, Nr. 8, Istituto per l’Oriente C. A. Nallino, August 1930. O’Shea, Maria T., Trapped Between the Map and Reality: Geography and Perceptions of Kurdistan, (London: Routledge, 2004). ˙ Ö˘gün, Tuncay., “Osmanli Basininda Cihad-i Ekber: Iran Örne˘gi,” Journal of Turkology, pp. 91–114, 2018.
274
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Özo˘glu, Hakan., Kurdish Notables and the Ottoman State: Evolving Identities, Competing Loyalties, and Shifting Boundaries, (Albany: State University of the New York Press, 2004). Phillips, David L., The Kurdish Spring: A New Map of the Middle East, (New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 2015). Public Record Office, Kew, London. Ramazani, Rouhollah K., The Foreign Policy of Iran, 1500–1941, (Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1966). Razmara, Hajj Ali., Joghrafiya-ye Nezami-ye Iran, (Tehran, 1984). Reynolds, Michael A., Shattering Empires: The Clash and Collapse of the Ottoman and Russian Empires 1908–1918, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2011). Riyahi, Mohammad Amin., Tarikh-e Khoy, (Tehran: Tarh-e No, 1999). Romano, David and Mehmet Gurses (eds.)., Conflict, Democratization, and the Kurds in the Middle East, Turkey, Iran, Iraq, and Syria, (New York: Palgrave MacMillan, 2014). Safaei, Ebrahim., Rahbaran-e Mashruteh, 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Javidan Press, 1968). Sanasarian, Eliz., Religious Minorities in Iran, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2000). Sani al-Dowleh, Mohammad Hassan Khan., Matla’ al-Shams, 2 Volumes, (Tehran: Farhangsara, 1984). Schauffler Platt, Mary., The War Journal of a Missionary in Persia. (New York: The Board of Foreign Missions of the Presbyterian Church, 1915). Schofield, Richard (ed.)., The Iran-Iraq Border 1840–1958, 11 Volumes, (Oxford: Archive Editions, 1989). Schwartz, Richard Merrill., The Structure of Christian-Muslim Relations in Contemporary Iran, Occasional Papers in Anthropology No. 13, (Halifax: Saint Mary’s University, 1985). Shahbaz, Yonan H., The Rage of Islam An Account of the Massacre of Christians by the Turks in Persia, (Philadelphia: The Roger Williams Press, 1918). Shams, Ismail., “Ta’asir-e Monazeat-e Russiyeh va Osmani bar Vazeiyat-e Savojbolagh (Mahabad-e Konuni) da Jang-e Jahani-ye Avval ba Takiyeh bar Matbuat-e va Asnad,” Tarikh Nameh-ye Iran-e Ba’ad az Islam, Vol. 13, No. 32 (Autumn 1401) Shedd, Mary Lewis., The Measure of a Man: The Life of William Ambrose Shedd Missionary to Persia, (New York: George H. Doran Company, 1922). Shuster, Morgan., The Strangling of Persia, (New York: The Century Co., 1912). Sijjadi, Alaauddin., Kurdish Revolutions, Kurds and the Iraqi Republic (in Kurdish), (Baghdad,1959). Silverfarb, Daniel., Britain’s Informal Empire in the Middle East, (New York: Oxford University Press, 1986).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
275
Soane, E. B., To Mesopotamia and Kurdistan in Disguise with Historical Notices of the Kurdish Tribes and the Chaldeans of Kurdistan, (Boston: Small, Maynard and Company, 1914). Soleimani, Kamal., Islam and Competing Nationalisms in the Middle East, 1876– 1926, (London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2016). Soleimani, Kamal., “The Kurdish Image in Statist Historiography: The Case of Simko,” Middle Eastern Studies, Vol. 53, No. 6 (February 2017), pp. 949– 965. Solhkhah, Norman (ed.)., The Assyrian Martyr Mar Benjamin Shimun Patriarch of the Church of the East, (Chicago: The Assyrian Genocide Studies, 2008). Somakian, Manoug., Empires in Conflict: Armenia and the Great Powers, 1895– 1920, (London: I.B. Tauris, 1995). Spottiswoode, William., “Sketch of the Tribes of Northern Kurdistan,” Transactions of the Ethnological Society of London, Vol. 2 (1863), pp. 244–248, Royal Anthropological Institute of Great Britain and Northern Ireland. Sykes, Mark., “Tribes of the Ottoman Empire,” The Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute of Great Britain and Ireland, Vol. 38 (July–December 1908), pp. 451–486. Sykes, Percy., A History of Persia, 2 Volumes, (London: Macmillan & Co Ltd, 1958). Tamaddon, Mohammad., Oza’a-e Urumiyeh da Jang-e Avval ya Tarikh-e Rezaeiyeh, (Rezaeiyeh: Tamaddon Press, 1971). Tapper, Richard., The Conflict of Tribe and State in Iran and Afghanistan, (London: Croom Helm, 1983). Tchalenko, John., Images From the Endgame, (London: Saqi Books, 2006). Towfiq, Rahmatollah., Tarikhcheh-ye Urumiyeh Yaddashthaei az Salha-ye Jang Avval-e Jahani va Ashub-e Ba’ad az An, (Tehran: Pardis-e Danesh, 2010). Toynbee, Arnold J., Survey of International Affairs 1925, Volume I, The Islamic World Since the Peace Settlement, (London: Oxford University Press, 1927). Travis, Hannibal., The Assyrian Genocide: Cultural and Political Legacies, (London: Routledge, 2017). Vali, Abbas., Kurds and the State in Iran the Making of Kurdish Identity in Iran, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2011). van Bruinessen, Martin., “Kurdish Tribes and the State of Iran: The Case of Simko’s Revolt,” in Richard Tapper (ed.), The Conflict of Tribe and State in Iran and Afghanistan, (London: Croom Helm, 1983). van Bruinessen, Martin., Agha, Shaikh and State: The Social and Political Structures of Kurdistan, 2nd edition., (London: Zed Press, 1992). van Bruinessen, Martin., “Shakak,” in C. E. Bosworth, E. van Donzel, W. P. Heinrichs, and G. Lecomte (eds.), Encyclopaedia of Islam, New Edition, (Leiden: Brill, 1997), Volume IX, pp. 245–246.
276
BIBLIOGRAPHY
van Bruinessen, Martin., Kurdish Ethno-Nationalism Versus Nation-Building States, Collected Articles, (Istanbul: ISIS Press, 2000). van Bruinessen, Martin., Mullas, Sufis and Heretics: The Role of Religion in Kurdish Society, (Istanbul: The Isis Press, 2000). van Bruinessen, Martin., “The Sâdatê Nehrî or Gîlânizâde of Central Kurdistan,” Journal of the History of Sufism, Vol. 1–2 (2000), pp. 79–91. van Bruinessen, Martin., “A Kurdish War Lord on the Turkish-Persian Frontier in the Early Twentieth Century: Isma’il Agha Simko,” in Touraj Atabaki (ed.), Iran and the First World War: Battleground of the Great Powers, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2006, pp. 69–93). van Bruinessen, Martin., and Julia Day Howell, Sufism and the ’Modern’ in Islam, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2007). Volkov, Denis V., Russia’s Turn to Persia: Orientalism in Diplomacy and Intelligence, (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2018). Waterfield, G., Professional Diplomat: Sir Percy Loraine of Kirkharle Bt. 1880– 1961, (London: Butler & Tanner Ltd, 1973). Wigram, W. A., Our Smallest Ally: A Brief Account of the Assyrian Nation in the Great War, (New York: The Macmillan Company, 1920). Wigram, W. A., The Cradle of Mankind: Life in Eastern Kurdistan, (London: A & C Black Ltd., 1922). Wilber, Donald., Riza Shah Pahlavi: The Resurrection and Reconstruction of Iran 1878–1944, (Costa Mesa: Mazda Press, 2016). Wilson, S. G. Rev., Persian Life and Customs, (New York: Fleming H. Revell Company, 1900). Wilson, Arnold T., Loyalties Mesopotamia, Volume II 1917–1920 A Personal and Historical Record, (London: Oxford University Press, 1936). Wilson, Arnold Talbot and Gertrude Lowthian Bell., Iraq Civil Commissioner, Review of the Civil Administration of Mesopotamia, (Franklin Classics, 2018). Wishard, John G., Twenty Years in Persia a Narrative of Life under the Last Three Shahs, (London: Fleming H. Revell Company, 1908). Wratislaw, A. C., A Consul in the East. (Edinburgh: William Blackwood and Sons, 1924). Yeselson, Abraham., United States-Persian Diplomatic Relations, 1883–1921, (New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 1956). Zaken, Mordechai., Jewish Subjects and Their Tribal Chieftains in Kurdistan: A Study in Survival, (Leiden: Brill, 2007). Zaki, Muhammad Amin., Khulasat Tarikh al-Kurd wa Kurdistan, (Baghdad: Dar al-Islami Press, 1931). Zaki, Muhammad Amin., Tah.qiqi Tarikhi dar Bareh-ye Kurd va Kurdistan, translated by Habibulah Tabani, (Tabriz: Aydin Press, 1998). Ziba Kalam, Sadeq., Reza Shah, (Tehran: Rozaneh Press, 2019).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
277
Zirinsky, Michael., “American Presbyterian Missionaries at Urmia During the Great War,” Iran Chamber Society. Zirinsky, Michael P., “Harbingers of Change: Presbyterian Women in Iran, 1883– 1949,” American Presbyterians: Journal of Presbyterian History, Vol. 70, No. 3 (1992), pp. 173–186. Zürcher, Erik., Turkey: A Modern History, (London: I.B. Tauris, 2001).
Index
A Abdulhamid II, 73, 88 Abdullah Beyk, 214 Abdurrezzak Bedir Khan, 6, 83–87, 90, 93, 96, 253, 257, 258 Afshar, 48, 61, 204 Ahmad Shah Qajar, 31, 99 Ain al-Dowleh, 143, 144, 184 Alasht, 41 Amir Arshad, S¯am Khan, 171, 172, 174, 196 Amir-Tahmasebi, Abdollah Khan, 228, 232, 236 Amnieh, 180, 182 Andrievsky, Colonel, 206 Anglo-Persian Agreement of 1919, 38 Anglo-Persian Oil Company, 150 Anzal, 47, 51, 206 Arasbaran, 136, 171, 204 Arbil , 89, 219, 224, 225 Ardabil, 82, 154, 233 Arfa, Hassan, 1, 60, 65, 107, 108, 113, 114, 122, 132, 133, 136, 138, 162, 163, 166, 171,
173–175, 179, 180, 183, 188, 198, 206, 208, 209, 213 Armenians, 5, 7, 9, 11, 14, 47, 48, 52, 55, 59, 95, 97, 98, 100, 102, 103, 106, 108, 111, 113, 114, 120, 123, 128, 132, 145–147, 158, 225, 254, 255, 260, 264 Armenia, Republic of, xiv Assad Beyk of Targavar, 214 Assyrians, 5, 7–9, 11, 14, 47–52, 55, 59, 95, 97, 98, 100, 104–108, 111–116, 118, 120–123, 135, 145–147, 158, 211, 254, 260 Avdoi, 60, 65, 68, 79, 84, 252 Azadistan, 35 Azerbaijan, 4–17, 19–21, 26, 27, 29, 31, 33, 35, 36, 46–55, 57, 59, 61, 63, 65–67, 70–73, 75–82, 85–93, 95–103, 105, 107, 108, 110, 111, 113–115, 117, 120–123, 125, 129, 131, 133, 134, 136, 138–146, 150–152, 154, 155, 157, 158, 160–162, 166, 167, 171–174, 176, 177,
© The Editor(s) (if applicable) and The Author(s), under exclusive license to Springer Nature Switzerland AG 2023 M. Kia, The Clash of Empires and the Rise of Kurdish Proto-Nationalism, 1905–1926, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-031-44973-4
279
280
INDEX
183, 184, 188–190, 192–197, 199–204, 210, 211, 216, 217, 227–237, 241–245, 253–256, 258–260
B Bahri Beyk, 215 Baqer Khan, 29 Baradoost, 48, 72, 74, 89, 90, 215, 216 Barzanji, Sheikh Mahmud, 18, 92, 126, 132, 222, 241, 256 Bassir Divan, 207, 212 Bayandor, Gholamali, 212 Begzade Kurds, 90, 243 Brest Litovsk, Treaty of, xiii Britain, 5, 8, 11, 12, 20, 25–28, 30, 31, 34, 40, 41, 71, 75, 88, 109, 110, 126, 131, 132, 144, 147–150, 176, 212, 225, 231, 234, 242, 245, 246, 262
C Chahriq, 3, 13, 20, 47, 48, 58–63, 65–69, 74, 77–80, 92, 109, 112, 113, 115, 121, 134–136, 139, 140, 163, 167, 169, 170, 206, 209, 213, 214, 217, 232, 233, 254 Committee of Union and Progress (CUP), ix, x Constitutional revolution of 1905–1906, 5, 12, 28, 44, 75, 185, 190 Cossack Brigade, 3, 34, 40, 42, 75, 138, 140, 151, 159, 177, 192, 203 Cossack Division, 26, 34, 35, 40, 42, 153, 159, 177, 178, 182, 188, 203, 252
D D’Arcy, William Knox, ix Dehbokri tribe, 99 Dilman, 47, 58, 59, 76, 80, 100, 103, 104, 115, 120, 137–139, 163, 174, 206–209 E Edmonds, Cecil J., 10, 89, 150, 205, 213, 219–223 Enver Pasha, 99 Eqbal al-Saltaneh, 74, 75, 77, 92, 157, 218, 253 F Fethi Bey, 186 Fevzi Pasha, 186 First World War, 5, 6, 8, 11, 12, 14, 15, 21, 22, 30, 33, 34, 46, 49, 50, 58, 67, 91–93, 96–99, 102, 104, 105, 125, 126, 131, 132, 191, 192, 251, 253, 255, 257, 261–264 Forughi, Mohammad Ali, 238 G Gilan, Soviet Republic of, 35, 144, 148, 150 Golmankhaneh, 137, 207 Gracey, George, 112–114, 116, 119 H Haji Agha, chief of the Harki, 214, 243 Hajialilu tribe, 171 Hamadan, 33, 97, 109, 111, 123, 178, 180, 191, 202, 204, 211 Hamidiye regiments, 73 Hussein-McMahon Correspondence, xiii
INDEX
281
I Iran, 2–38, 40–47, 50, 52–54, 58, 61, 62, 64–69, 71–76, 78–82, 85–93, 95–99, 104–111, 113, 120, 122, 123, 125, 126, 128–131, 136, 138, 142–145, 147–151, 154, 159–161, 172, 173, 176–179, 182–188, 190–192, 196, 200, 201, 206, 212, 213, 216–219, 221–224, 227–232, 234–242, 244–247, 251–264 Iraq, 3, 5, 8, 9, 11, 16, 18, 21, 35, 48, 71, 89, 91, 92, 112, 126, 131, 134, 136, 137, 145–150, 155, 158–161, 173, 176, 182, 205, 216, 219–227, 231, 233, 235, 238, 241, 242, 245, 246, 256
Khiyabani, Sheikh Mohammad, 15–17, 35, 141–145, 148, 151–154, 157, 190 Khoi, 82 Khuzestan, 212 Kohneh Shahr, 59, 115–117, 119, 230
J Jafar Agha Shakak, 67, 69 Jahanbani, Amanollah Mirza, 1, 17, 111, 139, 151, 162–169, 175, 180, 181, 188, 195, 202, 206–210, 213, 214
M Mahabad, 47, 151, 165, 169 Majlis, 28–30, 35, 37, 44, 75, 141, 142, 150, 178, 181, 185 Maku, 6, 19, 47, 74–77, 87, 92, 93, 96, 99, 129, 146, 155, 157, 162, 171, 209, 216–218, 229, 233, 253 Malekzadeh, Hassan, 151, 162, 164–167, 192 Mamash tribe, 159 Mangur tribe, 70, 99, 171 Maragheh, 17, 99, 167, 199, 204, 211, 228 Margavar, 47, 48, 61, 64, 72, 78, 81, 89, 90, 113, 215, 216, 222, 228 Mar Shimun, 9, 14, 95, 97, 105–108, 112–121, 135, 149, 221, 248, 254, 260 McDowell, Robert, 113 Mehmed V, xi Memduh Shevket, 238
K Kamal Beyk, 214 Kardar, 60, 214 Karim Khan Harki, 214 Kazem Qushchi, 206 Kazim Karabekir, 157 Kemal, Mustafa, 5, 9, 10, 46, 127, 157, 158, 183, 184, 186, 200, 220, 229, 231, 263 Kermanshah, 33, 111, 159, 182, 190, 191, 193, 195, 197, 200, 201, 211, 239–242 Khalu Qorban, 17, 174, 197, 198, 201
L Lady Surma, 116–120 Lahuti, Abolqassem Khan, 17, 190–194, 198 Lausanne, Treaty of, 15, 220, 225 Law, Andrew Bonar, 220 Liakhov, Colonel, 75 Luristan, 199, 241 Lyon, Wallace, 221
282
INDEX
Miandoab, 47, 171, 193, 196, 198, 199, 228 Mirza Kuchak Khan, 15, 16, 35, 144, 148, 150, 151, 174, 177, 197, 259 Moghadam tribe, 204 Mohammad Agha Shakak, 65–67, 69, 73, 74 Mohammad Ali Shah, 6, 12, 13, 19, 29, 30, 75, 78, 80, 92, 93, 141, 185, 191, 239, 253 Mokhber al-Saltaneh Hedayat, 2, 16, 17, 69, 131, 145, 151–153, 157, 161–164, 167, 172, 174, 176, 190, 192, 194, 203 Momtaz al-Dowleh, Mirza Ismail Khan, 184–187 Mosaddeq, Mohammad, 212 Moshir al-Dowleh, Mirza Hassan Khan, 39, 145, 151 Mosul, 5, 18, 71, 91, 127, 150, 176, 205, 224 Mozaffar al-Din Shah, 12, 26, 67, 71, 75, 184, 185, 238 Mudros, Armistice of, 34, 132 N Nasser al-Din Shah Qajar, 26, 42, 63, 88 Nehri, 64, 87, 88, 91, 225, 245 Nezam al-Saltaneh M¯afi, 67 Nicholas II, 91, 107, 109 Nuri Beyk, 214 O Omar Khan, 214, 232, 234–236, 244 Oshnaviyeh, 18, 47, 61, 78, 161, 213, 215, 216, 222, 247, 248 Ottoman Empire, 3–6, 9, 11, 12, 15, 21, 22, 27, 31, 34, 46, 48, 52–54, 58–60, 64–66, 68, 75,
79, 81, 82, 84, 88–90, 92, 93, 96–99, 105, 106, 123, 126, 127, 129, 132, 133, 148, 158, 220, 225, 253, 257, 259, 262–264 Ozdemir Bey, 224
P Pahlavi, Mohammad Reza shah, 211, 212 Pahlavi, Reza Khan, 13, 18, 42, 237, 240 Pahlavi, Reza Shah, 13, 18, 37, 252 Paris Peace Conference (1919–1920), 132 Pasha, Sherif, 132, 133 Pessyan, Mohammad Taqi Khan, xvi, 36 Petros, Agha, 121, 122, 146 Philipov, Colonel, 138, 140, 141, 144, 208 Pizhdar Kurds, 227, 242, 243
Q Qaradagh, 136 Qarajadagh, 136, 152, 171, 196, 204 Qara Papakhs, 7, 47, 51, 52, 147 Qavam al-Saltaneh, Mirza Ahmad Khan, 36, 171, 186, 223 Qotur, 6, 13, 60, 61, 74, 76, 78, 79, 84, 85, 92, 93, 209, 216, 225, 226, 228, 230, 253
R Rasht, 30, 35, 38, 144 Rawanduz, 89, 92, 148, 222, 224, 225, 231, 245–247 Razmara, Hajj Ali, 211 Reza Khan Sardar Sepah, 40, 203 Russia, 4, 6, 11–14, 19, 21, 25–28, 30, 31, 38, 51, 65, 67, 71, 75,
INDEX
80, 82–87, 89–91, 93, 95, 96, 98, 99, 105–108, 113, 125, 126, 202, 253, 254, 257, 258, 262–264 Russian Bolshevik Revolution, xiii Russo-Japanese War, 27, 70 S Saint Petersburg Convention, 28, 29, 125 Salar al-Dowleh, Abolfath Mirza, 239 Salmas, 6, 10, 11, 14, 15, 29, 46–49, 51, 53, 58, 59, 61, 62, 67, 68, 74–77, 80, 81, 99, 100, 102–108, 111, 113, 115, 116, 119, 121, 122, 133–135, 137, 138, 140, 144–146, 154, 157, 163, 170, 175, 183, 200, 207, 209, 210, 213, 216, 217, 226–228, 230, 233–236, 243, 253, 254 Sardasht, 51, 81, 147, 213, 227, 242, 243 Sattar Khan, 29 Savojbolagh, 47, 50, 71, 82, 104, 151, 160, 162, 164–171, 174, 177, 192, 194, 198, 201, 206, 210, 213, 243 Sayyid Abdulqadir of Nehri, 231 Sayyid Taha II of Nehri, 5, 35 Sayyid Ziya al-Din Tabatabai, 40, 159 Sèvres, Treaty of, 15, 127, 148 Shahseven tribe, 36, 151, 154, 197, 217 Shakak Kurds, 7, 29, 58, 59, 61, 63, 66, 87, 97, 111, 227 Shakar Yazi, 163 Sharafkhaneh, 17, 111, 138, 162, 163, 172, 174, 183, 189, 190, 192, 193, 196, 204, 206, 210 Sheikh Khazal, 182, 212 Sheikh Raghib, 224
283
Sheikh Said, 231, 256 Sheikh Ubeydullah of Nhri, 7, 65, 87 Sheybani, Habibollah, 183, 188, 189, 193, 202 Simko, Ismail Agha, 27 Society for the Advancement of Kurdistan, 132 Somai, 63, 64, 72, 74, 77–79, 86, 87, 92, 216, 233, 245, 253 South Persia Rifles (SPR), 34, 41, 177–179, 192 Soviet Union, 11, 36, 38, 41, 126, 148–150, 171, 186, 194, 218, 226, 251 Sulaymaniyah, 18, 71, 158, 220, 222, 223, 226, 227 Sykes-Picot Agreement, xiii Syria, northern, 148 T Tabriz, 15–17, 27, 29, 30, 35, 49, 65, 66, 68–70, 75, 80, 82, 97, 99–101, 103, 104, 110, 111, 134–138, 140–144, 148, 151–154, 157–161, 163, 164, 167, 171, 173, 174, 177, 180, 182–185, 187, 189, 190, 192–196, 198–200, 202–205, 211, 218, 227–230, 233, 236, 243, 244, 247, 253, 259 Tabur Aghasi, 214 Taher Beyk, 214 Tahir Pasha, 73, 74 Talat Pasha, xii Targavar, 47, 48, 58, 61, 72, 78, 89, 113, 214, 216, 222 Tasuj, 151, 161, 163, 175, 177, 183, 206, 248 Tazeh Shahr, 59 Tehran, 3, 11, 12, 15–17, 23, 25, 26, 28, 30–32, 35, 36, 38–40, 43, 46, 65, 67, 69, 78, 81, 83, 104,
284
INDEX
128–131, 135, 138, 139, 141–144, 148, 150–152, 154, 157, 159, 160, 164, 170, 172, 174, 176, 177, 180–185, 187, 188, 190–194, 196–199, 201, 204, 205, 210–212, 217, 218, 223, 229, 230, 232, 236, 238–240, 242, 245–247, 249, 256, 259, 260, 262 Tiflis, 14, 83, 84, 86, 90, 97, 107, 112, 114, 186, 254 Tobacco Régie, ix Turkey, Republic of, 225
165, 169, 172, 173, 189, 193, 194, 198–201, 204, 206, 207, 210, 216, 248 Ushnu, 47, 161
U Urumiyeh, 11, 31–33, 46–51, 58, 59, 61, 62, 67, 72, 73, 77, 79, 80, 86, 89–91, 97, 99–101, 104, 106, 107, 111, 113–115, 117, 119–123, 133, 134, 137, 140, 144, 146, 147, 154, 157, 159, 164, 165, 169, 200, 205, 206, 209–211, 213–216, 224, 226–230, 243, 254 Urumiyeh, Lake, 17, 31, 46, 48, 49, 52, 58, 59, 69, 70, 77, 99, 101, 102, 105, 111, 112, 129, 134, 137, 138, 151, 159, 162, 163,
W Wilson, Woodrow, xiii
V Van, 7, 63, 64, 73, 74, 83, 86, 91, 96, 102, 105, 106, 111, 112, 114, 123, 133, 146, 158, 204, 228, 229, 253 Vorontsov-Dashkov, 86, 98 Vosuq al-Dowleh, Mirza Hassan khan, 37–39
Y Yeprem Khan, 239 Young Turks, 76, 77, 84, 108, 132, 149, 254 Z Zafar al-Dowleh, 151, 162–164, 247 Zahedi, Fazlollah, 207, 212 Zarza tribe, 215